Byzantium in The Seventh Century - The Transformation of A Culture (Revised Edition) PDF
Byzantium in The Seventh Century - The Transformation of A Culture (Revised Edition) PDF
Byzantium in The Seventh Century - The Transformation of A Culture (Revised Edition) PDF
opments within Byzantine culture, society and the state in the crucial for-
mative period from c. 610 to 717. Since its original publication in 1990, the
text has been revised throughout to take account of the latest research.
The seventh century saw the final collapse of ancient urban civilisation
and municipal culture, the rise of Islam, the evolution of patterns of thought
and social structure which made imperial iconoclasm possible, and the
development of state apparatuses - military, civil and fiscal - typical of the
middle Byzantine state. Over the same period, orthodox Christianity finally
became the unquestioned dominant cultural and religious framework of
belief, to the exclusion of alternative systems, which were henceforth mar-
ginalised or proscribed.
Conflicting ideas of how these changes and developments are to be under-
stood have proliferated in the past fifty years. This book is the first serious
attempt to provide a comprehensive, detailed survey of all the major changes
in this period.
BLANK PAGE
BYZANTIUM IN THE SEVENTH CENTURY
BLANK PAGE
BYZANTIUM
IN THE SEVENTH
CENTURY
The transformation of a culture
Revised edition
J.F. HALDON
Professor of Byzantine History
Director of the Centre for Byzantine,
Ottoman and Modern Greek Studies,
University of Birmingham
CAMBRIDGE
• UNIVERSITY PRESS
Published by the Press Syndicate of the University of Cambridge
The Pltt Building. Trumplngton Street, Cambridge CB2 1RP
40 West 20th Street. New York. NY 10011-4211, USA
10 Stamford Road, Oakleigh, Melbourne 3166, Australia
Introduction 1
1 The background: state and society before Heraclius 9
2 The East Roman world c. 61Q-717: the politics of
survival 41
3 Social relations and the economy: the cities and the
land 92
4 Social relations and the economy: rural society 125
5 The state and its apparatus: fiscal administration 173
6 The state and its apparatus: military administration 208
7 Society, state and law 254
8 The imperial church and the politics of authority 281
9 Religion and belief 324
10 Forms of social and cultural organisation: infra-
structures and hierarchies 376
11 Forms of representation: language, literature and the
icon 403
Conclusion The transformation of a culture 436
Addendum: Further observations on the question
of the late ancient city 459
Bibliography 462
Index 482
ix
Plates
ACKNOWLEDGEMENTS
Reproduction of the plates has been possible through the courtesy of the
following:
The Barber Institute of Fine Arts, University of Birmingham (plates 1.1-5,
2.1-10, 11.4(a) and (b) and ll.S(aHh))
The Michigan-Princeton-Alexandria Expedition to Mount Sinai (plates
9.1-3 and 11.3)
A. Mlchalakis. Athens (plates 11.1 and 2(b))
The Courtauld Institute of Art and the British School at Athens (plate
11.2(a))
Maps
xii
Preface and acknowledgements
xvii
xviii Abbreviations
CFHB Corpus Fontinum Historiae Byzantinae (Washington 1967-
(Series Washingtoniensis): Berlin and New York 1967-
(Series Berolinensis ): Vienna 19 7 5- (Series
Vindobonensis): Rome 1975- (Series Italica): Brussels
1975- (Series Bruxellensis))
Cl Codex lustinianus
ClC Corpus luris Civilis
CM Classica et Medievalia (Copenhagen 1938-)
CMH Cambridge Medieval History (Cambridge 1913-)
CPG Clavis Patrum Graecorum, Ill: A Cyrillo Alexandrino ad
lohannem Damascenum, ed. M. Geerard (Turnhout 1979):
IV: Concilia Catenae, ed. M. Geerard (Turnhout 1980)
csco Corpus Scriptorum Christianorum Orientalium (Paris and
Louvain 1903-)
CSEL Corpus Scriptorum Ecclesiasticorum Latinorum (Vienna
1866-)
CSHB Corpus Scriptorum Historiae Byzantinae (Bonn 1828-97)
De Cer. De Cerlmonlis
JIBE .deATiov rii~ 10TOP£"ij~."ai nfJIIOAO}'£"ij~ "ETepe(a~
T1j~ ·EAAa8o~ (Athens 1883-)
DOP Dumbarton Oaks Papers (Cambridge, Mass., and
Washington 1941-)
JXAE JeA Tiov Tij~ Xp£DT£aV£xij~ ilpxa£oAo}'£"1j~ "ETatpeia~
(Athens 1892-): 1repioooc; A', vols. 1-10 (Athens
1892-1911): 1repioooc; B', vols. 1-2 (Athens 1924-5):
1repio8oc; f', vols. 1-4 (Athens 19 33-9): 11'Epio8oc; 4',
vols. 1fT (Athens 1960-)
EEBI 'E'ITeTepi,lj 11Ta£peia~ Bv(avT£vciJv I1rov8tiJv (Athe1 ts
1924-)
EHR English Historical Review (London 1885-)
El Encyclopaedia of Islam, new edn (Leiden and London
1960-)
EO Echos d'Orient, 1-39 (Paris, Constantinople and Bucharest
1897-1941/2)
ERE See Bury, A History of the Eastern Roman Empire
FHG Fragmenta Historicorum Graecorum, ed. C. and Th. Muller, 5
vols. (Paris 18 74-8 5)
FM Pontes Minores (Frankfurt am Main. 1976-)
GCS Die griechlschen christlichen Schriftsteller der ersten (drei)
]ahrhunderte (Leipzig and Berlin 1897-)
GRBS Greek, Rotnan and Byzantine Studies (1: Greek and Byzantine
Studies) (San Antonio, University of Mississippi,
Cambridge, Mass., and Durham 1958-)
Abbreviations xix
The sources for the period with which we shall be dealing are, in com-
parison with those for the sixth century, or the tenth and eleventh cen-
turies, for example, both limited In number and difficult to use. But I should
like to stress at the outset that these. difficulties ought not to be over-
estimated, nor should they be used as a justification for refusing to ask
questions. In fact, it is less the paucity of the sources than their nature
which is problematic. There are, effectively, only two 'histories' of the
period compiled by Byzantines, ·both of which date from the early ninth
century, although based in large part on earlier material. One, the Brief
History of the patriarch Nlcephorus, has virtually nothing to say on the
reign ofConstans 11 (641-68). While both use wh~t may well be material
contemporary with many of the events they describe, it is an immensely
difficult task to sort out the different and sometimes very contradictory
traditions bound up in the two histories. 'rhe other, the Chronography of
the monk Theophanes the Confessor, was compiled between A.D. 810 and
814, and continues the Chronicle of George the Sygkellos. It is written
around a carefully worked-out chronological framework, divided into
sections by the year on an annalistlc basis, at the head of each of which
Theophanes lists the year according to the age of the world, from the birth
of Christ, and according to the lengths of the reigns of the emperor, caliph.
the pope and the four patriarchs of the East. It has been shown that the
dates are one year out for the entries from the year 6102 (A.D. 609-10) to
6265 (A.D. 772-3), except for the period 6207 (A.D. 714-15) to 6218
(725-6), as the result of an Incorrect division in the text. But this is the
only blemish on a fundamental text, upon which our own chronology of
the seventh and eighth centuries Is based. 1
1 See G. Ostrogorsky. 'Dle Chronologle des Theophanes im 7. und 8. Jahrhundert'. BNJ 7
(1930). 1-56: Ostrogorsky, art. 'Theophanes', ln RE V/A2 (1934), 2127-32: for further
discussion and literature. see H. Hunger. Die hochsprachllche profane Lluratur der Byzantlner
(2 vols. Handbuch der Altertumswlssenschaft XII. 5.1 and 2 = Byzantlnlsches Handbuch 5, 1
xxi
xxii The sources
The Brief History of Nicephorus (patriarch from 806 until 815) covers
the period from 602 to 769, apart from the gap already mentioned for
most of the reign of Constans 11. It is based in part on the same sources as
the Chronography of Theophanes. The gap seems to be the result of a loss
of some folios from the manuscript tradition. Nicephorus wrote also a
Short Chronicle which is of only limited historical value, covering the
period from Adam to 829, in which year he died. 2
Last, and for the beginning of our period, there is the so-called Paschal
Chronicle. originally covering the period from Adam to the year A.D. 629
but, due to the loss of the final folios, ending in 628. It was compiled by a
priest or monk in the 630s and built around a chronological framework
intended to fix the Easter cycle and the reckoning for a purely Christian
chronology. 3
Th.ese Greek sources can be supplemented from a very wide range of
other sources in other languages. And, indeed, one of the difficulties facing
the historian of this period is precisely this wide range of material, often
later in date, but again using sources contemporary with - or almost
contemporary with - the events described: chronicles, or fragments from
chronicles in Arabic, Syriac, Armenian, Coptic and Latin, for example, all
provide vital material which must be assessed. Among the most important
of these are the much later Chronicle of Michael the Syrian, Jacobite
and 2. Munich 1978). vol. 1. pp. 334-59: and also I. Rochow. 'Die monenergetlschen und
monotheletlschen Streitlgkeiten in der Sicht des Chronlsten Theophanes', Klio 63 (1981).
669-81. On the debate over the authorship of the Chronographia, see C. Mango, 'Who
wrote the Chronicle ofTheophanest. ZRVI18 (1978). 578-87: and I.S. Clcurov 'Feofan
lspovednik- publikator. redaktor. avtor?', VV 42 ( 198l). 78-8 7. Detailed analyses and his-
torical-philological commentaries of various sections of the text of Theophanes can be found
in P. Speck, 'Die Interpretation des &Hum Avaricum und der Kater MEX~EJI-11'E', in Varfa U
(Poikila Byzantina VI. Bono 1987) 371ft, idem, Das geteUte Dossier. Beobachtungen zu tUn
Nachrichten rlbtr die &gierung des Kllisus HeralcleJos und die seiner Sohne bei Th.eophanes und
Nilctphoros (Poikila Byzantina IX. Berlin-Bonn 1988): idmt, Ich bin's nicht, Kaiser KonstmiUn
ist es gewesen. Die Ltgenden vom Bnjlujl tUs Teufels, tUs ]uden und des Moslem auf tUn
Ilconolclasmus (Poikila Byzantina X. Boon 1990), and idem, 'Der "zweite" Theophanes. Eine
These zur Chronographie des Theophanes', in Varia V (Poikila Byzantina Xlll. Boon 1994),
pp. 4 3 3-8 3: I. Rochow, ByZIUIZ im 8. ]ahrhundert in tUr Sicht des '17teophanes (BBA LVU. Berlin
1991 ). See also L.I. Conrad, 'Theophanes and the Arabic Historical Tradition: Some
IndicationsoflnterculturalTransmission', BF 15 (1990) 1-44: andL.M. Whitby, 'The Great
Chronographer and Theophanes', BMGS 8 (1982-83) 1-20. For a good, brief introduction
and assessment of the various types of source dealt with in the following, see W. Brandes, F.
Wmkelmann, eds., Quellen zur Geschichte des.fnlhen Byzanz (BBA LV. Berlin, 1990).
2 See especially P.J. Alexander, The Patriarch Nlcephorus of Constantinople. Ecclesiastical Policy
and ltnage Worship in the Byzantine Empire (Oxford 1958) on Nlcephorus and his writings:
and Hunger. Profane Literatur. vol. 1. pp. 344-7. See also C. Mango. 'The Breviarium of the
PatriarchNicephorus', in Byzantion: Tribute to Andreas N. Stratos (Athens 1986). ll. pp. 545-8:
and Nicephorus, Patriarch of Constantinople. Short History, ed. and trans. C. Mango
(Washington D.C. 1990).
3 See Hunger, Profane Lluratur. vol. 1, pp. 328-30.
Tht sources .xxiii
(Paris 1856).
8 John of Blclar's chronicle is In MGH (AA) XI, 2, pp. 211-20: the Llber Por~tljicalls is edited
schaften, phll.-hlst. Klasse, XXI, 3 (Munich 1900). More recent edition, with analysis, of
all the Notltiae, in J. Darrouzes. Notltlae Bplscopatuutn Bccleslae Constantlnopolltllnae (Paris
1981).
14 The poems of George of Plsidia deal with the Persian wars of Heracllus. the siege of 626,
the character and mission of the emperor himself, the role of the pGtrlclus Bonus: see
A. Pertusl. ed .• Glorglo dl Plsldla, Poeml 1: Pantglrlcl eplcl (Studia patrlstlca et Byzantlna VII,
Bttal19 59): and the discussion in Claudia Ludwtg. 'Kaiser Heraldeios, Georgios Ptsides und
die Perserkriege', in Varia m(Poikila Byzantlna XI. Bonn 1991 ), pp. 73-128: the sermon of
Theodore the Sygkellos, suuophyl.ax of the Hagia Sophla. was edited by L. Sternbacb,
Analecta Avarica (Rozprawy AkademH Umle}etnosci Wydzial FUologlczny, ser. 2. vol. XV
=
Cracow 1900), pp. 297-334 ( L. Stembach. Studia philologica in Gtorgium Plsidllm
(Cracow 1900)).
ts For Maxlmus: Maxlml Conftssorls Rtlatio Motionls.in PG XC. 109-29: Gtsta In Prlmo Blus
Bxslllo, In PG XC, 135-72: see C.N. Tsirpanlls, 'Acta S. Maxlml', Thtologla 43 (1972),
106-24. For Martin: Commtmoratlo, ln Mansl X. 853-61 and PL CXXIX, 591-600: and
see R. Devreesse, 'Le Texte grec de l'hypomnestlcum de Tbeodore Spoud6e', AB 53
(1935), 49-80. These slightly later accounts seem to be based on Martin's own letters 16
and 17 (PL LXXXVII, 201-4 and Mansi X, 860-4). For Phlllpplcus. see the account of the
deacon Agathon in Mansl XII. 189C-196C.
16 In particular the Apocalypse of Pseudo-Methodlus: A. Lolos, ed., Dit Apolcalypse dts
Ps.-Methodlus (Beitriige zur klassischen Phllologle LXXXIII, Melsenheim am Glan 1976)
and the literature In Haldon,Ideology and Soclnl Change, 168 and n. 74: see chapters 9 and
11 below. Further discussion in W. Brandes, 'Die apokalyptiscbe Literatur', in Brandes,
Wlnkelmann, QueHen zurGtschlchte dts friihen Byzanz, pp. 305-26. For Anastasius of Sinai,
see G. Dagron, 'Le Saint, le savant, l' astrologue. Etude de themes bagiograpbiques atravers
quelques recueils de HQuestions et reponses" des ve-vrr siecles'. in Haglographle. cultures et
soctetis (IV'-VIr s.) (Etudes Augustiniennes. Paris 1981). pp. 143-55 (repr. in Dragon. La
Romaniti chretlmne en Orient IV (London 1984). Among the most important texts of
Anastasius are the interrogatlones et responsiones (PG LXXXIX, 311-3 84) and his third ser-
mon (PG LXXXIX, 1152-80): new edition ed. K.-H. Uthemann. AnastasU Sinmtae Optra.
Sermones Duo in Constltutionem Homlnls secundum Imaglnem Dei necnon Opusculll adversus
Monothehtas (Corpus Christltmorum stries GratctJ XII. (Turnhout 19 8 5), pp. 5 5-8 3). See J.F.
Haldon. 'The Writings of Anastaslus of Sinai: a key somce for seventh-century East
Mediterranean history'. in: The Byzantine and Barly Islamic Near Bot 1: Problems in the
Literary Source Materials, eds. Averil Cameron, L. Conrad (Princeton 1992), pp. 107-47.
17 Hagiography and miracles constitute a vital source for the social and cultural life of the
period. Among the many texts which are especially Important are: the Uves of the
patriarchs John the Almsgiver In Alexandria, Butychius in Constantinople, of Pope
Martin, Maxlmus Confessor (originally ln Syrlac). the Hypomntstlcum or commemoration
of Theodore Spoudalos (on Pope Martin), the Uves of Theodore of Sykeon and of
xxvi The sources
The problems posed by all these sources are considerable. Many of them
are in need of modern editions and commentaries: few of them have been
studied in detail or have been internally analysed. Where written texts are
concerned in particular it must be apparent that no source can be taken at
face value. It is sometimes difficult to date a source at all- a classic example
is the very valuable but fictional account of the Life of Andrew the Fool.
dated by different scholars to both the later seventh or the later ninth
century. 20 Where the date is certain, the value of the information provided
both explicitly and implicitly by a text needs to be carefully considered -
what was the purpose or context of the original compilation, for example.
and what were its possible sources of information? Often, literary texts refer
only indirectly and allusively to a particular state of affairs or development,
or use technical terms from the period of their own compilation of earlier
events - both have led, and continue to lead, to conflicting views about the
precise significance of the references in question. Similar reservations
apply to the question of the date of certain works of art. too, so that some of
the Mt. Sinal icons which are so crucial for an understanding of pre-
iconoclastic art are variously dated from the end of the sixth to the middle
of the seventh century - a period over which substantial changes occurred
- and for a knowledge of the evolution and origins of which these artifacts
are central. Likewise, the use and exploitation of sigillographic as well as
numismatic materials bring with them a number of equally formidable
problems, and it is important that the historian as well as the readers of
works of history are aware of these difficulties. For differences in Interpre-
tation usually rest on two supports: conflicting views of how and what a
given source or type of source can divulge about a specific question; and
conflicting or contradictory interpretational frameworks.
This brief list of types of source highlights the mosaic-like complexity of
the historian's task. It also demonstrates the constraint upon interpreta-
tion imposed by the sources and the importance of keeping some general
principles of analysis - some theoretical guidelines - in mind. For without
Byzantine Monetllry Economy. 300-1450 (Cambridge 1985). pp. 2-18: and Karayanno-
poulos and Welss, Quelletrlcutlde, vol. I, pp. 172-8: for seals, see the valuable comments In
the Introductory section to F. Wlnkelmann. Byza11tinlsche Rang- und Amttrstruktur lm 8.
und 9. ]ahrhundert (BBA Llll, Berlin 1985), pp. 17-18: and W. Selbt, Die byzantlnlschen
Blelslegelln 6surrelclr, 1: Kalserhof (Vienna 1978), pp. 36f.: with Karayannopoulos and
Welss, QueUenkuntk. vol. I, pp. 17 8-8 3. All these materials are surveyed in the collective
Brandes, Winkelmann. Quellen zur Geschjchte des fruhen Byzanz.
20 See the conflicting views of L. Ryden, •The Life of St Basil the Younger and the Life of
St Andreas Sa Ios'. In Oltea11os. Essays presented to lhor Seveenlto 011 his sixtieth birthday by his
colleagues and students ( =- Harvard Ukrainian Studies, 7 1983 (Cambridge, Mass. 1983)),
pp. 568-86: and C. Mango, 'The Life of St Andrew the Fool reconsidered', Rlvlstll dl Studl
Bizantltll e Slavl 11 ( = Miscellanea A. Pertusi 11, Bologna 1982), pp. 297-313 (repr. In
C. Mango. Byzantlurn and Its Image VIII (London 1984)).
xxviii The sources
I See especially F.-G. Maier, 'Die Legende der "Dark Ages"', in F.-G. Maier, ed., Die Ver-
wandlung der Mittelmeerwelt (Frankfurt a.M. 1968), pp. lOfT.: and D. Talbot Rice, 'The myth
of the Dark Ages', in D. Talbot Rice. ed., The Dark Ages (London 1965), introduction.
Introduction 3
little is known after the middle of the seventh century. In this case,
however, the only major work on the subject is the now very old, but still
essential, survey of Charles Diehl, whose study on the exarchate of Africa
was first published in 1896. 4 This can be supplemented by a number of
works dealing with particular aspects of the history of North Africa, but a
detailed analysis of the literary, religious and social-economic history of
Byzantine Africa from the reign of Heraclius up to the fall of Carthage in
the last decade of the seventh century is still not available. Fortunately,
recent work promises to fill some of these gaps, although there is still a
great deal of detailed research, especially archaeological work, to be done
before the later history of the isolated Latin culture of North Africa
becomes reasonably clear; and there remains a dismal lack of source
material. Again, Byzantine Africa was an important consideration in the
eyes of the government at Constantinople, which did its best, with limited
resources, to maintain its political and military hold, as well as its ideo-
logical authority. It consumed wealth in the form of military and naval
resources, although the degree of its contribution to the fisc in general is
unclear: and it remained a part of the Byzantine world, from the Constanti-
nopolitan perspective, until the end - the expedition to retake Carthage in
698 is demonstration enough of this. In this respect, and in as far as the
general course of North African history is concerned, it will be dealt with in
this book. Anything more would involve a study in its own right. 5
4 Ch. Diehl, L'Afrique byzantine: histoire de la domination byzantine en Afrique ( 533-709) (2
vols., Paris 1896). See also R. Goodchild, 'Byzantines, Berbers and Arabs in seventh-
century Libya', Antiquity 41 (196 7), 114-24; R. Goodchild, 'Fortificazione e palazzi bizan-
tini in Tripolitania e Cirenaica', in XIII Corso di Cultura sull'Arte Ravennate e Bizantina
(Ravenna 1966), pp. 225-50; Ch.A. Julien, Histoire de l'Afrique du Nord des origines a la
conquite arabe, 2nd edn (Paris 1951); M. Restle. art. 'Byzacena', in RbK I (1966). 837-66;
also E. Kirsten, Nordafrikanische Stadtbilder, Antike und Mittelalter in Libyen und Tunisien
(Heidelberg 1966 ): and P. Goubert, Byzance avant I' Islam II/2 (Paris 1965), pp. 18 5-236
(for the period up to 610 only).
s See the various articles published in connection with the University of Michigan excavati-
ons at Carthage, esp. vol. VII (1982), notably the important contribution of Averil
Cameron, 'Byzantine Africa- the literary evidence', ibid., 29-62, with the older literature.
See also D. Pringle, The Defence of Byzantine Africa from Justinian to the Arab Conquest (BAR,
Oxford 1981 ): N. Duval. 'Infiuences byzantlnes sur la civilisation chretienne de I' Afrique du
Nord', REG 84 (19 71 ); W.H.C. Frend, 'The Christian period in Mediterranean Africa
c. A.D. 200-700', in Cambridge History of Africa, vol. II (Cambridge 1978), pp. 410-89;
W.H.C. Frend, 'The end of Byzantine North Africa. Some evidence of transitions', Bulletin
archeologique du Comiti des Travaux Historiques et Scientljiques. new series, 19 (1985),
387-97 (lie Colloque international sur l'histoire et l'archeologie de l'Afrique du Nord,
Grenoble, 5-9 Avril, 1983); M. Brett, 'The Arab conquest and the rise of Islam', in
Cambridge History of Africa, vol. 11 (Cambridge 1978), pp. 490-555, esp. pp. 490-513. For
further literature and discussion, see N. Duval, 'L'Afrique byzantine de Justinien a la
conquete musulmane. Apropos de travaux recents', Moyen-Age 89 (1983), 433-9: as well
as the work of J. Durliat, Recherches sur l'histoire soeiale de l'Afrique byzantine: le dossier
epigraphique ( 533-709) (These du troisieme cycle. Universite de Paris I, Paris 1977): Les
Didicaces d'ouvrages de defense dans l'Afrique byzantine (Collections de l'ecole francalse de
6 Byzantium in the seventh century
There are other topics which I have not dealt with in depth, chiefly
because they are adequately treated elsewhere. The (primarily theological)
literature of the seventh century as literature has been left to others, for
example: similarly, the history of the art and architecture (again. the
surviving material is almost entirely religious in character) of the period,
which presents certain very important characteristics and shifts, has been
dealt with predominantly on the basis of work done by others - although,
for reasons which will become clearer in the relevant discussion (in
chapter 11 ), a great deal more emphasis has been placed upon visual
representation than on architecture.
Historians rarely preface their work with statements of theoretical intent
- perhaps much to the relief of many readers. but this is not necessarily
always a good thing. For every work of historiography relies on sets of
assumptions; and 'theories', however implicit they might be, are inescapa-
ble. I will mention here some of my own basic assumptions.
The main point to make is that this book is conceived and written within
a historical materialist framework - that is to say, it is written from a
'Marxist' perspective. I place the word Marxist in quotation marks
advisedly: the word can mean, and is regularly in debate within the social
and historical sciences used to refer to, such a wide variety of subtly or
not-so-subtly differentiated views and approaches, that to refer to oneself
as a Marxist is of only limited help in determining which of a variety of
perspectives within a range of possibilities is actually meant. For while
Marxism has a relatively short history as a philosophical and political
movement, it is nevertheless immensely ramified and has been enormously
influential.
One may ask, of course, why it should be at all necessary to justify one's
terms of reference or indeed to situate oneself in a particular historiogra-
phical tradition. Surely it should be enough to base oneself firmly in the
sources and to apply one's historical common sense to their interpretation
and to the possible shape of a given set of historical developments? The
answer, and the justification, is not difficult to grasp. Theories are, in effect,
sets of premises - whether they are implicit or explicit is unimportant at
this point - which condition both the mode of interpretation as well as
(crucially) the mode of appropriation of knowledge (in other words, the
very way in which we permit ourselves to 'know' something). Such
premises or assumptions are, as I have said, implicit in every piece of
Rome, Rome 1981 ); 'Les Finances municipales africaines de Constantin awe Aghlabides'.
in Bulletin Archeologique du Comiti des Travaux Historiques et Scientifiques, n.s. 19 (198 5),
377-86 (as above); 'Les Grands proprietaires africains et l'etat byzantin', Cahiers de
Tunisie XXIX (1981), 517-31: •L'Administration civile du diocese byzantin d'Mrique
(533-703)', Rivista di studi bizantini e slavi 4 (1984). 149-78.
Introduction 7
analysis, whether it be of literary texts or of historical sources. Theory, In
this sense, Is Inescapable: and there is no use in appealing to an objective,
fact-based history, for such does not, and indeed cannot, exist. It is better to
admit that this Is the case and to make these underlying assumptions
explicit, for this allows at least the possibility of seeing where inconsist-
encies and contradictions might lie, inconsistencies which are inevitable in
any process of intuitive and ad hoc reasoning. Theory is, from this point of
view, highly desirable, since it is impossible to analyse that of which we
have no, or only indirect, experience (either personally or culturally)
without setting up a theoretical framework within which we can justify
and direct our evaluation of the data. 6 I can do no better than to quote the
linguist Noam Chomsky:
The search for rigorous formulation has a much more serious motivation than
mere concern for logical niceties or the desire to purify well-established methods of
. . . analysis. Precisely constructed models . . . can play an Important role. both .
negative and positive, in the process of discovery itself. By pushing a precise but
Inadequate formulation to an unacceptable conclusion, we can often expose the
exact source of this inadequacy and, consequently, gain a deeper understanding of
the ... data ... Obscure and Intuition-bound notions can neither lead to absurd
conclusions nor provide new and correct ones . . . those . . . who have questioned
· the value of precise and technical development of theory may have failed to
recognise the productive potential in the method of rigorously stating a proposed
theory and applying lt strictly to [the] material with no attempt to avoid unaccept-
able conclusions by ad hoc adjusbnents or loose formulation. 7
Of course, Chomsky is talking here of socio-linguistic data, the analysis
and interpretation of which Is subject to different principles from those
applied to historical evidence. But the point he is making is equally
relevant.
The search for rigorous formulation is not, therefore. a pointless exer-
cise. Indeed. if we are to be able to deal effectively with our data, in such a
way that we can order it according to the structure and function of the
argument we wish to make, then an awareness of our basic assumptions is
essential. For historians within the Marxist tradition, the need for rigorous
6 For the foundations of my approach, see my remarks In 'Ideology and social change In the
seventh century: military discontent as a barometer', Kilo 68 (1986), 139-90, esp.
142-5 5. For a good general survey of current Marxist historical thinking from an explicitly
realist and materialist eplstemoldgical standpoint, see G. McLennan, Marxism and the
Methodologies of History (London 1981). See further the comments In ).F. Haldon,
...Jargon" vs ... the facts"? Byzantine history-writing and contemporary debates', BMGS 9
(1984-5), 95-132. esp. 96, 101f.: and idem, 'I7te State and the Tributary Mode of Production
(London 1993). esp.l-109.140-58.
7 N. Chomsky. Syntactic Structures O~nua Lingua rum, series minor IV. The Hague and Paris
1976). p. 5. Compare the remarks of the Marxist historian Brlc Hobsbawn: one must 'try to
structure (memory) by ftttlng tt·lnto an explanatory or theoretical scheme. It's one of the
advantages of being a Marxist . . . Things which might otherwise be .. trivial pursuit"
actually get fitted Into a pattern ... • (The Guardian. Prlday 26 Peb. 1988, p. 25).
8 Byzantium in the seventh century
formulation and careful application of theoretical principles is crucial: and
this involves determining the content and theoretical weight of the con-
cepts invoked, either as abstract or concrete descriptive categories. For it is
precisely through such categories that causal relationships - whether of
socio-economic relationships or political ideological developments -can be
specified and understood, and tied in to longer-term transformations.
Technical terms such as mode of production, social formation, symbolic
universe and so on will thus occur from time to time in this book more
especially in the context of analyses of the ways in which Byzantine society
actually worked and changed. These, and a number of other terms, are
part of a wider theoretical framework, a set of assumptions about the
fundamental social, economic and cultural relationships which provide the
dynamic for every human society, the generative syntactic structures, to
borrow once more from linguistics, which constitute the grid within which
social-cultural causation is to be understood. Such terms also imply a
particular epistemology, of course, in this case a realist and materialist
philosophy which provides a framework for and limitations to the ways in
which knowledge of the world, past or present, can be appropriated and
employed. But that is another story.
CHAPTER I
It is all too easy to forget that every human society, whatever its achieve-
ments and the ways in which it impresses itself upon its natural context. is
closely bound to its geographical and climatic conditions of existence in
ways which may at first seem insignificant, or so obvious as to need no
further consideration. Not only methods of agriculture and the production
of social wealth. but modes of dress and the technology of clothing, for
example, are subject to these conditions, although it is not always possible
to determine exactly how the relationship operates. This is no less the case
for the late Roman state and for late Roman society and culture, which
occupied and dominated the east Mediterranean basin, the Balkans and
much of the north African littoral up to the middle of the seventh century.
The many local cultures and their histories which were incorporated into
that state and were subject to its administrative and political machinery
consequently varied very greatly in their appearance one from another,
inasmuch as the geographical and climatic features of the zones in which
they were located varied. It is useful to emphasise this perhaps obvious
point at the outset. For while we shall be dealing with the general social,
economic and cultural history of the Roman and Byzantine world during
the seventh and early eighth centuries, it is important to remember that
beneath the uniformity often imposed by contemporary descriptions, the
apparatuses of the state and its official ideology, there continued to exist a
variety and range of local cultures and of ways of doing and thinking
which, while they may not necessarily have been in conflict with the
umbrella of Roman and state culture, official orthodoxy and Imperial
ideology, were nevertheless often very different from one another and from
the urban society and culture of the capital. 1 It is perhaps easier to see this
1 See for example P. Charanls, ·observations on the demography of the Byzantine empire'.
Xlllth ln~rnatlonal Congress of Byzantine Studies, Maln Papers XIV (Oxford 1966}, pp. 1-19:
and the essays In P. Charanls, Studies on the Demography of the Byzantine Bmplre (London
1972). See also the important discussion in J. Koder. Der Lebensraum der Byzantiner
(Darmstadt 19 84).
9
10 Byzantium in the seventh century
during the sixth century, when Egypt, along with the wealthy elite cities of
the east Mediterranean, such as Antioch or Tyre, clearly represented
(beneath their common Hellenistic veneer) cultures of very different origins
and appearance. But even in the later seventh century, when the empire
consisted of little more than central and western Anatolla and Thrace.
local differences and cultural variation continued to play a role.
Climatic variation within the empire was considerable. The political
world of the later Roman state was dominated by three land masses:
the Balkans. Asia Minor and the Middle East zone as far east as the
Euphrates and as far south as Egypt: by the two seas which both
separated and united them. the east Mediterranean and the Aegean, and
the Black Sea: and by the geographically. but by no means politically,
peripheral areas of Italy and the North African possessions of the empire.
Prom the middle of the seventh century lt is Anatolla and the Balkans
that dominate, as the remaining territories are progressively lost: and
from this time Italy and the Ionian Sea, on the one hand, and the Crimea
and its hinterland, on the other, set the outer limits to what was there-
after 'Byzantine'.
Before the loss of these eastern lands, the empire as a whole was
relatively rich in exploitable arable land and had access to regular and
(usually) sufficient supplies of grain. Bgypt, Thrace and the coastal plains of
north-west and west Anatolia were all grain-producing areas. 2 But the loss
of Egypt involved a major re-adjustment and an increased dependency of
Constantinople on Thrace and the Anatollan sources, supplemented by
produce from the city's own immediate hinterland. or the three land
masses referred to already. therefore, it is the Balkans and Anatolla which.
after the loss of Bgypt, determine the parameters within which the Byzan-
tine economy, in the widest sense of the word, had to function. A recent
estimate has put the total revenue loss to the empire in the seventh century
at something in the order of seventy-five per cent of its sixth-century
Income - a dramatic loss which must have affected all aspects of the state
administration fundamentally. 3 It was from this much-reduced area that
the state now drew its revenues and manpower resources, and lt was these
areas - the Balkans and Anatolla - which had to be defended. It was the
requirements of defence and revenue extraction within these areas which
moulded the administrative apparatus of the state and which we shall look
at in greater detail below.
2 Procoplus. Hlstorla Arcana xxn. 13 7 (Thrace, Blthynla. Phrygla): cf. M. RostovtzetT, art.
·rrumentum', RB VII/I. 126-87. esp. 129 and 137.
1 M.P. Hendy, Studies In tht Byzantine Monttllry Economy c. JD0-1450 (Cambridge 1985),
pp. 619. 625-6.
State and society before Heraclius 11
this picture in several different ways, and each of these will have a certain
validity according to the purpose of the description. The most obvious
approach is to begin from the sources themselves, and to see how these
different groups were described in juridical terms, in the legal sources, for
example. What definitions are used, how are these related to one another
and how are they related to the laws of property, the functioning of
Church and state administration, and to the emperor. Another approach
would be to look at the relationship of the various groups within society
to land and to property, and the ways in which these relationships deter-
mined their status. These two approaches are, of course, quite compatible,
indeed necessarily so if we are to have any chance of understanding how
the society actually functioned. 10
In the following pages, I will look at the general shape of the late
Roman social formation and at the contradictions and tensions within it
which provide the foundation for the developments of the seventh
century.
The state itself was a complex structure of interlocking administrative
functions whose primary purpose, as it had developed over the preceding
centuries, was to defend and where possible extend imperial territory: to
provide for the maintenance and equipping of the soldiers and officials of
the administration and the imperial household: and to extract the neces-
sary resources in the form of taxation in kind, in cash and in services for
the fulfilment of these functions. At its head stood the emperor, the state
embodied and, in Christian terms, God's chosen representative on earth.
From the point of view of the 'official' ideology of state and Church, the
state represented also the realm of the Chosen People on earth, the Chris-
tians who had hearkened to the message of Jesus Christ. The emperor,
therefore, played a crucial role as leader and guide of this people, as
defender of right belief or orthodoxy, as intercessor with Christ for his
people and as protector of the rights of Christians everywhere. It was also
incumbent upon him, where conditions permitted, to extend the territory
of the empire and thus promote the orthodox faith: where physical poli-
to The best general survey remains that of Jones, LRE: see also F.H. Tinnefeld, Die friihbyzan-
tinische Gesellschaft. Struktur- Gegensatze- Spannungen (Munich 1977): and for the fiscal
administration of the state, see Hendy, Studies. Other accounts from different perspectives
include the excellent survey of P. Brown, The World of Late Antiquity (London 1971 ): the
essays in A. Momigilano, ed., The Conflict between Paganism and Christianity in the Fourth
C£ntury (Oxford 1963); A. Piganiol. L'Empire chritien I (325-395). Histoire romaine,
vol. IV, part 2 (Paris 1947): E. Stein, Histoire du Bas-Empire, vol. I (Paris and Bruges 1959
and Amsterdam 1968). Stein's work parallels Jones, LRE. but provides a much fuller
political history and goes into a number of detailed questions more deeply: see also J. Vogt.
The Decline of Rome (London 1965) and P. Brown, 'The later Roman empire', in Brown,
Religion and Society in the Age of St Augustine (London 1972), pp. 46-73.
State and society before Heraclius 15
tical incorporation was impractical, conversion of those outside the
bounds of the empire was an alternative strategy . 11
During the sixth century, the Emperor Justinian had, of all the emperors
since the extinction of the Western empire in the later fifth century, been
able to put the key elements of that political ideology into effect. The
reconquest of North Africa from the heretical Vandals, of Italy from the
Ostrogoths (short-lived though these successes ultimately proved to be) and
of parts of south-eastern Spain from the Visigoths were symbols of the
might of the Roman state and its ruler at their most powerful. They were
also clear expressions, and to some degree a vindication, of Roman claims
to world empire and to orthodoxy. 12 But they also reflected the different
fates of the eastern and the western halves of the empire during the fifth
century. The dominant position which the East Roman state enjoyed
throughout the sixth century, in spite of the constant conflicts along its
frontiers, was a result of very much longer-term developments, just as the
political and social structure of the Eastern empire represented the evolu-
tion of several centuries. During the fifth century the unified Roman world
empire, which stretched from Scotland to the Sahara and from Gibraltar to
the Euphrates, was replaced by a polycentric system of barbarian successor
kingdoms in the West, facing and contrasting with the cultural and
political unity, at least superficially, of the Hellenistic world of the East
Roman empire, in which the old order was still represented, however
11 For late Roman imperial ideology, see Jones, LRE, vol. I. pp. 321-9: 0. Treitinger, Die
ostromische Kaiser- und Reichsidee nach ihrer Gestaltung im hojischen Zeremoniell Uena
1938): the essays in H. Hunger, ed., Das byzantinische Herrscherbild (Wege der Forschung,
vol. CCCXXXXI, Darmstadt 1975): J.F. Haldon, 'Ideology and social change in the seventh
century: military discontent as a barometer', Klio 68 (1986), 139-90, esp. 139-61:
F. Dvornik, Early Christian and Byzantine Political Philosophy (2 vols., Washington D.C.
1966), vol. 11, pp. 614fT.. 652f.; A. Pertusi, 'Insegne del potere sovrano e delegato a
Bisanzo e nei paesi di influenza bizantina', in Simboli e simbologia nell' alto medioevo
(Settimane di Studio del Centro Italiano di Studi sull'alto Medioevo XXill, Spoleto 1976),
pp. 481-563: N.H. Baynes, 'Eusebius and the Christian empire', AIPHOS 2 (1934),
13-18 (repr. in Baynes, Byzantine Studies and Other Essays (London 1955), pp. 168-72).
12 See Jones, LRE, vol. I, p. 270. But this is not to say that Justinian's reign was free of
cultural and ideological conflict and contradictions. On the contrary, while acceptance of
the imperial system provided the elements of uniformity and harmony at some levels,
there existed a range of critical and appositional elements which were clearly expressed
through the literature of the period. Although such criticism seems to have been limited,
on the whole, to literate elements of society, especially among those connected with the
administration of the state or the palace (such as Lydus or Procopius, for example), it did
on occasion find echoes in popular hostility, as in the Nika riots: or less openly, in the
rumours and stories about Justinian being either a secret heretic or indeed a tool of the
devil himself. For the best modern account of some of these tendencies, see Cameron,
Procopius, pp. 242fT.; and the detailed analysis of Chr. Gizewski, Zur Normativitiit und
Struktur der Verfassungsverhaltnisse in der spdteren romischen Kaiserzeit (Miinchener
Beitrage zur Papyrusforschung und Antiken Rechtsgeschichte LXXI, Munich 1988),
pp. 131-47.
16 Byzantium in the seventh century
dimly. The reasons for the ultimate survival of the eastern half of the
empire and the disappearance of the western half are complex and still
debated. But the higher degree of urbanisation in the East, its apparently
greater resources in both materials and in manpower, its greater agri-
cultural and commercial wealth, its more deep-rooted, albeit very diverse,
cultural identity and, not least, the less disruptive and factional effects of
the senatorial aristocracy in the government, and on the economy as a
whole, must lie at the heart of any answer which we might offer. A more
effective bureaucracy, more able efficiently to extract the resources and
revenues necessary for the state's survival, was also a fundamental factor.
Thanks to its favourable cultural and political situation and a sound
economic base, the Eastern empire was able to withstand and to stave ofT
the disasters that befell the West. State unity and political stability were
preserved. 13
It was on this foundation that Justinian was able to launch his massive
programme of reconquest. His achievements cannot be denied. The empire
extended at the end of his reign once more across the whole Mediter-
ranean: the Church of the Holy Wisdom marks one of the first and greatest
achievements of Byzantine art and architecture: the Corpus luris Civilis
established the basis for the development of European law. The essential
prerequisites for these achievements were, as we have seen, the strong
economic base of the Eastern empire, the effective repulse of the barbarians
to north and west, together with the fragile internal stability of the
successor kingdoms. But Justinian cannot be mentioned without reference
also to his gifted subordinates and associates- Belisarius, Narses, Tribo-
nian, John the Cappadocian and last, but certainly not least, his consort,
the Empress Theodora. Her dubious background, her intrigues and her
nepotism, quite apart from her questionable and, indeed, potentially trea-
sonable monophysite tendencies, were enough to inspire the historian
Procopius to write one of his most vicious caricatures in the Secret History.
But even he could not deny her political insight and ability, nor her
I3 The most useful account of these developments from a political history viewpoint is }ones.
LRE, vol. I. pp. 173fT.. esp. also pp. 102 Sff.; see also }ones, The Roman Economy: Studies in
Ancient Economic and Administrative History. ed. P. Brunt (Oxford 1974), esp. chapters 4
('Over-taxation and the decline of the Roman empire', originally in Antiquity 33 (1959).
39--43), 8 ('Taxation in antiquity') and 9 ('Inflation under the Roman empire', originally
in Econ. Hist. Review 5 (1953), 293-318); and for a useful general survey, P. Anderson.
Passages from Antiquity to Feudalism (London 1974), pp. 97-103 with literature. See also
Brown. The World of Late Antiquity. esp. pp. 42--4; and W.H.C. Frend, 'The monks and the
survival of the East Roman empire in the fifth century', Past and Present 54 (1972). 3-24:
and N.H. Baynes. 'The decline of the Roman power in western Europe: some modern
explanations', ]RS 33 (1943). 29-35 (repr. in Baynes. Byzantine Studies and Other Essays.
pp. 8 3-96 ); also E. Stein. 'Paysannerie et grands domains dans I' empire byzantin ·.
Recueils de la societe Jean Bodin 11: Le Servage (Brussels 1959), pp. 129-33.
State and socitty before Heraclius 17
'
t Patriarchate
• Praefectural capital
Trebizond
• Ankyra
"y
.. • Caesarea • Melitene
~:)
"' ~ 't> 0
Crete
600mites
1000 kilometres
.......... __ ........... __ .... -.... -·------- ---- ------·-· .----------- .. ···-.... ____-------, .. -.-
Map I The empire in A.D. 565: approximate extent
State and society before Heraclius 19
situation became clear to most only during the reigns of his successors,
who had to struggle with a situation they had inherited and on the whole
did so with only limited success. The reconquest of the West had far-
reaching consequences for the history of Western Europe and Italy as well
as for Byzantium. The continued Byzantine presence in Italy, for example,
_the destruction of the Ostrogothic kingdom, the arrival of the Lombards
(which the Byzantines, to a certain extent, brought upon themselves), all
contributed towards the development of the medieval papacy. Most impor-
tantly for Byzantium, however, the state which Justinian bequeathed to his
successors had only limited resources to cope with the enormous problems
it now faced in its over-extended imperial possessions. It was inevitable
that the structure should collapse at some point.
view, was greater or more sacred on earth than the imperial majesty. 27
Titles, symbols of office and the imperial court ceremonial served to express
and to enhance the God-given nature of imperial authority and power. The
ideological system in which the formal political system was given its
rationale had grown slowly out of a synthesis of Christian and Roman
imperial traditions, both in their turn determined by the philosophical and
symbolic traditions of the late ancient world. The 'objective idealism' of late
ancient philosophical thought, which can be followed in the thinking of
Plotinus and Philon through to the hierarchical world-view of Pseudo-
Dionysius, together with the conflict between both Christian theology and
Hellenistic philosophy on the one hand, and within the Church itself on the
other, constitute the background and determining context for this evolu-
tion. 28 Court, civil administration, justice and the army depended upon the
emperor, from whom they received their legitimation and their com-
petence. The political system, with it formal ideology and its assumption of
God-given jurisdiction provided a focus for unity in a culturally, linguisti-
cally and economically diverse world, in a way that few autocracies have
succeeded in doing. 29 The 'price' of this, of course, lay in an absolute
political orthodoxy which permitted no open criticism of the system or its
principles as such, and which also involved a far-reaching state interven-
tion in economic and demographic matters in the interests of the mainte-
nance of resources and the ability of the state to defend its territories and
revenues.
The complex administrative establishment, together with the military
establishment and the armies, constituted the heart of the state struc-
ture. 30 The system was based upon the principle of centralisation, of a
27 Cl I. 14.12.
2s See especially the discussion with literature of Averil Cameron. 'Images of authority: elites
and icons in late sixth-century Byzantium', Past and Present 84 (1979). 3-35. see 6fT.: also
0. Kresten, 'Iustinianos I, der "Christusliebende" Kaiser', Romische Historische Mitteilun-
gen 21 ( 19 79 ), 8 3-109: S.S. Averincev. in chapter 2 of Z. Udal' cova. ed., Kul'tura
Vizantii, IV-pervaja polovina VII v. (Moscow 1984): and esp. J. Shiel. Greek Thought and the
Rise of Christianity (London 1968), pp. 18fT., 39-89.
29 See the discussion and comments of C. Capizzi, 'Potere e ideologia imperiale da Zenone a
Giustiniano (474-527)', in L'Imperatore Giustiniano, storia e mito, ed. G.G. Archi (Circolo
Toscano di Diritto Romano e Storia del Diritto V. Milan 1978), pp. 3-35 with further
literature.
30 The best detailed surveys of the administrative and fiscal structures of the late Roman
state can be found in Stein, Bas-Empire, vol. 11. esp. pp. 419fT., 735fT.: Jones, LRE. vol. I.
pp. 278-85, with 321fT., a general analysis of the state's government and administrative
structures from the fourth to the sixth centuries: see further Hendy. Studies, pp. 3 71 tT. and
notes 1 and 2 with literature: A.E.R. Boak. The Master of Offices in the Later Roman and
Byzantine Empire (New York 1919), in A.E.R. Boak and J.E. Dunlop, Two Studies in Late
Roman and Byzantine Administration (New York 1924): M. Clauss. Der Magister Officiorum
in der Spdtantike ( 4.-6. ]ahrhundert): das Amt und sein Einfluss auf die kaiserlie he Politik
(Munich 1980).
24 Byzantium in the seventh century
31 Ioannis Lydi De Magistratibus Populi Romani Libri Tres. ed. R. Wiinsch (Leipzig 1903): and
the commentary of T.F. Camey, Bureaucracy in Traditional Society: Romano-Byzantine
Bureaucracies Viewed from Within (Lawrence Kan 19 71 ).
32 See, in general. )ones. LRE. vol. I. pp. 285-7: Stein, Bas-Empire. vol. 11, pp. 369-402.
623-83 for a detailed treatment.
H See esp. Stein. Bas-Empire. vol. 11. pp. 632fT.: Jones. LRE. vol. I. pp. 296-7: D.J. Constante-
los. ·Justinian and the Three Chapters controversy', Greek Orthodox Theological Review 8
(1962-3).
State and society before Heraclius 25
34 The best brief survey of religious politics, the relationship between state and Church, and
the role of the emperor in this sphere is to be found in F. Winkelmann, Die ostlichen Kirchen
in der Epoche der christologischen Auseinandersetzungen ( 5. bis 7. ]ahrhundert) (Klrchenge-
schichte in Einzeldarstellungen 1/6, Berlin 1980), esp. pp. 103fT. Note also W.H.C. Frend.
'Old and new in Rome in the age of Justinian', in D. Baker, ed., The Relation between East
and West in the Middle Ages (Edinburgh 1973), pp. 11-28: also J. MeyendorfT, 'Justinian,
the empire and the Church', OOP 22 (1968).
26 Byzantium in the seventh century
imperial jurists who formed the backbone of the central administrative
apparatus. 3 5
The Corpus Juris Civilis embodies in many respects the ideal world which
Justinian sought to achieve through his expansionist and reformist poli-
cies. The continued emphasis on the absolute power of the emperor,
holding his authority through God's will and grace- as well as the stress
on the Christian idea of the all-powerful ruler within yet prescribing the
law, in contrast to the classical tradition -is a clear demonstration of this.
In particular, the theories underlying much of Justinian's reforming and
administrative activity stand out. It is perhaps ironic that the theory of
renovatio survived in a practical form to influence the development of
European legal and constitutional history so deeply, yet its political results
failed to survive much more than a generation after the death of one of its
most successful exponents.
The class structure of the late Roman social formation is, in spite of the
often confusing array of contemporary technical terms, reasonably clear.
The contrast between humiliores and potentiores, however nuanced by
social change or legal context, appears throughout the legislation of the
fifth and sixth centuries. 37 The dominant social group was represented by
a numerically relatively small class of land-owning magnates, for the most
part members of the senatorial aristocracy. Together with the Church,
which by Justinian's time had become a substantial landowner, and the
fisc - which in the form of imperial and state lands was also a major
landowner - this class exercised a more or less complete control over the
means of production of the empire. In opposition stood the vast mass of the
rural and urban populations, the greater part of which stood in relation-
ships of varying degrees of dependence or subservience to the landowners,
decline of slavery as a significant feature of Roman and late Roman relations of produ-
ction, the development of the colonate, of large senatorial estates or latifundia, and the role
of the state in the economy, has been lively, in both Soviet (and Eastern European) and
Western (both Marxist and non-Marxist) historiography. Soviet historians in particular
have been keen to emphasise the causes of the decline of the slave mode of production, the
rise of the colonate and dependent peasantry, and of feudal or proto-feudal relations of
production in the Roman period (second to fourth centuries and beyond), although the
debate within Soviet historiography has itself been lively - one school of thought
preferring to locate the origins of feudal relations of production in the later Roman period,
another placing it later. in the Byzantine period proper (ninth and tenth centuries). For
representative surveys, see E.M. Staermann, Krizis rabovladel'ceskovo stroya v zapadnykh
provinciyakh Rimskoi imperii (Moscow 1957) (German trans. W. Seyforth. Die Krise der
Sklavenhalterordnung im Westen des romischen Reiches (Berlin 1947)): Staermann, Krizis
anticnoi kul'tury (Moscow 1975), arguing for a synthesis of Roman and Germanic cultural
forms and social relations. See also the literature cited in Haldon, Some considerations. 99
and n. 59: and esp. Z. V. Udal' cova and K.A. Osipova, 'Tipologiceskie osobennosti feoda-
lizma v Vizantii', in Problemy social'noi struktury i ideologii srednevekovogo obscestva I
(Leningrad 1974), pp. 4--28. This perspective has been criticised on the one hand by those
historians who reject the notion of synthesis altogether. such as M. Ya. Siuziumov,
'Zakonomernii perehod k feodalizmu i sintez', Anticnaya drevnost'i srednie veka 12 (19 7 5),
33-53, and by those who see the structural impasse between ancient slavery and
developing feudal relations as being resolved by synthesis in the West and by the
continued existence of the centralised state in the East, such as G.G. Litavrin, Vizantiiskoe
obscestvo i gosudarstvo v X-XI vv (Moscow 1977), and esp. A.P. Kazdan, Vizantiiskaya
kul'tura (Moscow 1968) (German trans. Byzanz und seine Kultur (Berlin 1973)). For the
Western literature, see esp. M.I. Finley, Ancient Slavery and Modern Ideology (London
1980): Finley, The Ancient Economy (London 1973): R. Remondon, La Crise de l'empire
romain (Paris 1964): the essays of M. Bloch, Slavery and Serfdom in the Middle Ages, Eng.
trans. W.R. Beer (Berkeley 1975): K. Hopkins, Conquerors and Slaves (Cambridge 1978):
M. Mazza, Lotte sociali e restaurazione autoritaria, second edn (Bari 1973 ), esp.
pp. 119-216: Anderson, Passages from Antiquity to Feudalism, pp. 18-103: and the
critiques of P.Q. Hirst, 'The uniqueness of the West', Economy and Society 4 (1975),
446-75 and C.J. Wickham, 'The other transition: from the ancient world to feudalism',
Past and Present 103 (1984), 3-36: see also 0. Patterson, 'On slavery and slave formati-
ons', New Left Review 117 (Sept.-Oct. 1979), 31-67: and de Ste Croix, The Class Struggle in
the Ancient Greek World. esp. pp. 205fT. and 453fT.
37 Patlagean, Pauvreti economique, pp. 11fT. with literature, discusses the terms and the
changes in meaning they underwent dwing the fourth to the sixth centwies.
28 Byzantium in the seventh century
manpower (caput) was available to cultivate it. Since both iugum and caput
were, in the first instance, notional units of assessment, and caput, indeed,
signified originally merely the liability for assessment, the two were some-
times used interchangeably. Contrary to the views of some historians,
however, neither caput nor capitatio denoted a poll tax, as has now been
convincingly demonstrated. 40 The system was not very flexible, and a
number of measures had to be introduced to deal with the problems which
resulted from demographic decline and consequent desertion of agri-
cultural land. The slow process of binding the agricultural labour force to
the land was one solution. Another was to make individuals and commu-
nities collectively responsible for adjacent land or land within their fiscal
census district, and consequently for the revenues due from such land, if it
were deserted or abandoned. This system, known as adiectio sterilium, or
E1TL(3oAT) (Twv a1r6pwv) in Greek, was increasingly invoked as the sixth
century progressed, so that Procopius claims (albeit with some exagger-
ation) that the landowners of the empire were entirely ruined as a result. 41
Capitatio/iugatio assessment also provided the basis for the calculation of
the rate of conscription of peasants for the army. By the middle of the fifth
century, and certainly throughout most of the sixth century, the impo-
sition was commuted into a tax payable in gold, although it was not
necessarily always collected in this form. It was assessed and collected from
all free owners of land, whatever their wealth or status. Landlords were
held to be fi.scally responsible for their slaves and for the adscripted or
semi-free tenants on their land (on these categories, see below). Increas-
ingly, as the colonate spread, and as more and more agricultural commu-
nities became tenants on larger estates, tax was paid to the landlord first,
from whom the state then collected it. During the sixth century, the state
regularly delegated some of its functions to private persons, who were
expected to carry out the appropriate tasks. The collection of the revenues
due from large estates seems regularly to have been attributed to the
landlords of such properties, including even the lands of the Church.
Similarly, there is some evidence to suggest that soldiers were often
40 The debate is complex because the technical terminology of the codes is often obscure and
contradictory. See W. Goffart, 'Caput' and Colonate: Towards a History of Late Roman
Taxation (Phoenix suppl. vol. Xll, Toronto 1974) for a detailed discussion. While I do not
accept all of Goffart's conclusions, he quite rightly questions the traditional interpretation
of caput/capit.atio as a revised equivalent of an early poll-tax.
41 See Procoplus, Historla arcana XXIII, 15-16: and the description and analysis of }ones,
LRE, vol. IT, pp. 813-15. Fiscal responsibility was allocated by Justinian's time on the
basis of the land belonging, or having belonged, originally to a single owner or to the
same census district (£1rt.PoAil 6JLO&>uAwv and £1rLPoXT) o~oxi)vawv respectively).
See esp. Justinian, Nov. 128, 7 and 8 (a. 545). For the technical terms see }ones. LRE.
vol. 11, p. 815 n. 105: M. Kaplan, 'Les Villageois aux premiers siecles byzantins (VIeme-
Xeme siecle): une societe homogene?', BS 43 (1982), 202-17, see 206f.
30 Byzantium in the seventh century
maintained on a similar basis, their supplies and costs being deducted from
the tax revenue collected by the landlord responsible for the lands or
districts in which they were based. Other taxes - on trade and on commer-
cial activity - brought in only very limited revenue. As we have seen,
}ones' calculation of something like ninety-five per cent of total state
income from the land, while it may only be an approximate guess, gives
some idea of the dominant and crucial role of agricultural production to
the late Roman state. 42
The economic class-divisions within late Roman society are not difficult
to perceive. In contrast to the vast mass of the population, peasants
carrying on a subsistence agriculture (or, in coastal regions, for example,
fishing and related activities) with limited freedom of movement and with
limited rights of alienation in respect of their holdings, whether subject
directly to the fisc or to their landlords, stood the dominant class of landed
magnates and the service elite of the state bureaucracy, alongside the
Church and the state itself. The cities, while they certainly contained a
large population of free persons, offered only limited opportunities to those
of humble social origins, chiefly as craftsmen, occasional labourers or as
beggars - which, as in any pre-industrial social formation with a re~atively
advanced social division of labour, was the regular occupation of a
number of people. The one obvious route out of poverty was to enter at
some level or other the state apparatus or the Church: or to win a position
in the retinue of a powerful person. And it is worth making the point here
that while a measure of social mobility did exist in late Roman and early
Byzantine society, it has often been given more prominence than it really
deserves: the individuals who succeeded in rising to positions of power and
authority received the attentions of their contemporaries precisely because
they were exceptions. Their total number is tiny. Late Roman society
represents a social formation in which class divisions were otherwise fairly
firmly drawn, and in which access to power through wealth and state
service excluded the great mass of the population from anything but the
subsistence economy of the peasantry.
It must be said, however, that the oppression of the agricultural popu-
lation and indeed the polarisation of interests between exploiting and
exploited classes was much clearer in the West than in the East. Again, the
42 In general. see Jones, LRE, vol. I. pp. 449-62, 464-9; vol. II. pp. 773-5; Jones, 'Capitatio
and iugatio', ]RS 47 (1957). 88-94 (repr. in The Roman Economy, pp. 280fT.); GofTart,
•Caput' and Colonate; A. Cerati, Caractere annonaire et assiette de l'imp6t fancier au bo.s-empire
(Paris 1974); the essays in C.E. King. ed., Imperial Revenue, Expenditure and Monetary
Policy in the Fourth Century A.D. (BAR Int. Series 76, Oxford 1980): Stein. Bas-Empire,
vol. I. pp. 74fT.. 441-3 and note 44. See also the comments of A. Guillou, ·Transformati-
ons des structures socio-economiques dans le monde byzantin du VIe au Vllle siecle', ZRVI
19 (1980), 71-8, see 72fT. with sources and literature cited.
State and society before Heraclius 31
reasons for this are complex and have received much attention. Peasant
revolts in the West in the fifth century are nowhere paralleled in the East
and do seem to reflect the higher degree of impoverishment and oppression
of the Western colonate, both at the hands of their landlords and of the
state. The Eastern landed elite, powerful as it was, never dominated both
urban and rural life and economic relations to the extent that seems to
have occurred in the West; power in the East remained more diffuse, the
state always managed to retain an effective fiscal control, and the rural
population, while oppressed and exploited, remained both more diverse
and heterogeneous in social and economic terms than in the West. 43 This
is not to say that peasant opposition to the state or to private oppression
was absent in the East. On the contrary, the existence of the so-called
Scamares in the Balkans, for example, in an economic and physical context
not too different from that of the Gallic Bacaudae (that is, state oppression
together with military and economic insecurity on a generalised scale), is
illustrative. Brigandage as a widespread form of communal opposition to
both state and private oppression is well attested during the sixth century
in Lycaonia, Phrygia, Pisidia and the Pontus. 44 While it may not reflect a
direct reaction to the oppression of a landlord, it does demonstrate the fact
that many communities regarded acceptance of state authority and the
consequent fiscal demands as unacceptably oppressive. 45
Justinian's successors
The contradictions and weaknesses within this vast social and political
structure were made apparent by the last years of Justinian's reign and
during the reigns of his successors Justin II (565-78), Tiberius Constantine
(578-82), Maurice (582-602) and Phocas (602-10). 46 In the first place,
the conflict of interest between Chalcedonian orthodoxy, represented by
the state along with the Western and Anatolian provinces, and the mono-
physitism of a large part of the population of Syria, Egypt and eastern
43 See esp. E.A. Thompson, 'Peasant revolts in late Roman Gaul and Spain'. Past and Present
2 (1952), 11-23 (repr. in M.I. Finley, ed., Studies in Ancient Society (London 1974),
304-20); de Ste Croix, The Class Struggle in the Ancient Greek World, pp. 474fT., a good
general survey of peasant and 'popular' opposition and of the degree of exploitation of the
rural population. See also note 4 above.
44 See Justinian, Nov. 24, 1 (a. 535, for Pisidia): Nov. 25, 1 (a. 535, for Lycaonia); Edict. 8,
proem.; 3. 1 (a. 548, for Pontus). Note also Justinian, Nov. 30, 7.1 (a. 536, for Cap-
padocia).
45 On the Scamares, see esp. A.D. Dmitrev, 'DviZenie Skamarov', VV 5 (1952), 3-14; Jones,
LRE, vol. I, p. 294; vol. 11, p. 656 on Anatolia.
46 For the political history of the period, see Jones, LRE, vol. I, pp. 303-17: Ostrogorsky,
Geschichte, pp. 66-72: Cambridge Medieval History, vol. IV, revised edn (2 parts, Cambridge
1966), I, pp. 28-30; P. Goubert, Byzanceavant l'Islam (3 vols., Paris 1951-65): and Stein,
Studien.
32 Byzantium in the seventh century
Anatolia, was brought into the open more clearly than ever as the
ultra-orthodox Justin 11 - quite 'correctly' adhering to fundamental
elements within the imperial ideology - tried to impose orthodoxy through
mass persecutions and forced conversions. 47 Under Justinian, especially
while Theodora lived, imperial policy had been less strongly delineated,
although formal state opposition to monophysitism was quite clear. Now
the conflict broke out into the open again, revealing how precarious the
ideological unity of the state actually was.
In the second place, Justin's notion of his position and that of the empire
failed to take into account the real threat posed by the Avars in the north
and the Persians in the East. In his haughty refusal to continue paying the
subsidies to the Avar khagan which Justinian had consented to, he earned
the hostility of a powerful and extremely dangerous foe who, at the head of
large numbers of migrating Slav communities, was over the following
forty years to destroy much of Roman civilisation and political authority in
the Balkans and most of what is now modern Greece. While hostilities did
not commence immediately, and while Justin, through deft political
manoeuvring at the expense of the Gepids (settled in Pannonia Secunda,
south of the Danube) was able to recapture the Danubian fortress-city of
Sirmium, lost some thirty years earlier, the arrival of the Avars in the
Balkan-Danubian political forum had ultimately disastrous conse-
quences.48 For the Lombards, settled to the north-west of the Gepids, had
asked the Avars for their assistence in their war with the latter. The result
was the destruction of the Gepids; but the Lombards, frightened by their
dangerous new allies, decided to emigrate westwards. In 568 they,
together with a number of other Germanic groups, marched into north-
east Italy, quickly conquering and occupying the plain ofVenetia and most
47 See in particular Averil Cameron, 'The early religious policies of Justin 11', Studies in
Church History XIII (1976), 51-67; I. Rochow, 'Die Heidenprozesse unter den Kaisern
Tiberios I. Konstantinos und ¥aurikios', in Studien zum 7. ]hdt., pp. 120-30.
48 For a useful summary, see A, Avenarius, Die Avaren in Europa (Bratislava 1974), esp.
pp. 67fT.
·..
·r j 1 Under Lombard control Subject to Slav immigration
and Avar attack ·=.......
. . __ _ _ _ _ _ _ _ _ _ _ _ _ _. . \ i;··:;c .....:::.:.::: ····.·~··
·~:.:\>~ "'t' )
<;;,,./'"'····'·' '·-···"'._... . .
... ··
?-..._:;......,_____ _ -~--'\h
·--~~:.::·_~~
.. .~ ...
,•... ··~·-1.
·:.__ , ....··
........ _.............
,·---- ~----·- ....., ....... ______
,,
, .... -·.._~~~~--
,,
..
_ _,.,
49 See I. DuJcev, 'Bizantini e Longobardi', In AUf del Cor~vegno lnternatfonale sui tema: la clvfltd
delLongobardi in Buropa (Rome 1974). pp. 45-78.
50 See In general. D. Pringle. The Defence of Byzantine Africa from Justinian to the Arab Conquest
(BAR, Oxford 1981 ): P. Goubert. Byzance avant I' Islam. vol. 11. 2: Rotne. Byzance et
Carthage: and the literature in notes 4 and 5 In the Introduction, above.
State and society before Heraclius 35
tories were simply too widely dispersed and too extended, and the
resources needed to defend them under such conditions were simply not
available. The war in the East continued to drain the treasury until 591,
when civil war in Persia enabled Maurice to intervene to help Chosroes II
and at the same time to conlcude an extremely favourable peace agree-
ment. The war in the Balkans dragged on, the Romans registering some
successes after 592. But the whole area had from the 580s been deeply
infiltrated by migrating Slav settlers, and the indigenous population in tae
countryside was often either overwhelmed by these newcomers or driven
out. While a number of cities held out, their existence was precarious: and
once Roman military support had been removed, they could no longer
survive. Only coastal cities such as Thessaloniki survived, but even here
under considerable military and economic pressure. 51 In 602 the mutiny
that led to Maurice's deposition took place: and during the reign ofPhocas
the strategy which had helped to stabilise the situation in the Balkans to
Roman advantage was effectively abandoned. The whole area north of the
Thracian plain, with the exception of the stronger fortresses and cities and
coastal tracts, was lost to the authoritiy of the empire.
Maurice's deposition and murder in 602 gave the Persian Great King
Chosroes II the chance he needed; and on the pretext of avenging his
benefactor, his forces invaded the eastern provinces, ostensibly in support
of anti-Phocas elements in the eastern field armies. Thus began a war
which lasted until 626-7 and deprived the Roman state of huge areas-
eventually including all of Egypt and Syria - for many years. 52
The new and threatening situation which developed after the death of
Justinian demanded new methods of dealing with it. Under the Emperor
Maurice two new administrative circumscriptions appear, the exarchates
of Ravenna and Carthage. These were effectively militarised districts, the
old pretorian prefectures, in which for reasons of defence and military
security, and of resource allocation, supreme civil and military authority
was vested in a single military governor, or exarch. In many respects, the
principle of their organisation foreshadows the later Byzantine themata (or
51 Obolensky, The Byzantine Commonwealth, pp. 48fT.: G. Gomolka, 'Bemerkungen zur Situa-
tion der spatantiken Stiidte und Siedlungen in Nordbulgarien und ihrem Weiterleben am
Ende des 6. Jahrhunderts', in Studien zum 7. ]hdt., pp. 35-42 with literature: B. Zcisterova,
'Zu einigen Fragen a us der Geschichte der slawischen Kolonisation auf dem Balkan', ibid.,
pp. 59-65: H. Ditten, 'Zur Bedeutung der Einwanderung der Slawen', in F. Winkelmann,
H. Kopstein, H. Ditten and I. Rochow, Byzanz im 7. ]ahrhundert. Untersuchungen zur
Herausbildung des Feudalismus (BBA XXXXVID, Berlin 1978), pp. 73-160, esp. 84fT. and
98fT. with extensive literature: also P. Lemerle, 'Invasions et migrations dans les Balkans
depuis la fin de l'epoque romaine jusqu'au Vllle siecle', RH 78 (1954), 265-308.
52 See the account in Stratos, Byzantium in the Seventh Century, vol. I, pp. 58-68.
36 Byzantium in the seventh century
themes) but equally, precedents for them can be found in Justinianic
legislation to deal with internal security in provinces such as Phrygia, for
example. Institutionally, therefore, they are hardly new and seem simply
to represent the obvious functional response of the state and its resources
to a specific military threat. The reasons for their establishment at this time
are not hard to see: the changed situation in Italy brought about the
arrival and initial successes of the Lombards: and the constant threat and
damaging attacks of the Berbers in North Africa. 53
The economic situation of the empire also deteriorated after Justinian.
Justin seems to have achieved a reasonable reserve in the treasury, but at
the cost of cutting down his expenditure on the army and fortifications and
ceasing the subsidies to the Avars and Persians. Tiberius went to the other
extreme, although his policies are perhaps easier to understand. On his
formal accession in 5 78 he remitted an entire year's taxes (by reducing the
usual demand by twenty-five per cent over the next four years). He spent
money freely on the army and carried through a vast recruitment cam-
paign. He also renewed the payment to the Avars, which bought peace for
a few years. But events in Italy demonstrated the scarcity of resources
under which the empire suffered. In spite of pleas for military aid in 5 78
and 580 from the senate in Rome and later from the pope, Tiberius merely
sent some cash and suggestions for diplomatic action to stem the incur-
sions of the Lombards. 54 Neither cash nor troops were available in great
supply, primarily because of the need to keep large armies in the Balkans
and in the East. Even here, however, resources were scarce. Maurice tried
to reduce the regular pay of the field units by twenty-five per cent which
led to a mutiny in 588: and although the situation was recovered, similar
attempts to save cash and resources by ordering the Danube forces to
winter over the river in hostile territory led to further mutinies, until in
602 the troops, led by their elected leader Phocas, marched on Constantin-
ople. Maurice fled, and after some days of confusion, Phocas was eventu-
ally proclaimed emperor. 55
The reign of Phocas, which lasted until his overthrow by Heraclius in
610, was both militarily and economically a disaster. Persian successes in
the east meant that the state was able to exact with only the greatest
difficulty the revenues from Syria, Phoenicia and neighbouring districts.
Asia Minor was raided and economic and social life disrupted, again with
53 For the exarchates, see Jones, LRE, vol. I, pp. 312f.: Brown, Gentlemen and Officers,
pp. 48fT.: Goubert, Byzance avant l'lslam; Ostrogorsky. Geschichte, p. 68 and note 1: and
Ch. Diehl, Etudes sur I'administration byzantine dans l'Exarchat de Ravenne (Bibliotheque des
ecoles fran~aises d'Athenes et de Rome Llll, Paris 1888), esp. the opening chapter.
54 See Menander Protector, frg. 49 (Exc. de Ltg., ll. p. 469): Haldon, Recruitment and
Conscription. pp. 2 Sf.• 28.
55 See Kaegi, Military Unrest, esp. pp. 66-73 and 101-19.
State and society before Heraclius 37
the inevitable effects on the ability of the state to raise revenue. Pay and
supplies for the army must also have been affected. The withdrawal of
large numbers of troops, albeit temporarily, from the Danube front, gave
the Avars and their Slav confederates and vassals a free hand to establish
themselves securely south of the Danube, to devastate the countryside,
isolate the cities and towns, and generally render the whole area untena . .
ble. Civil strife following Maurice' s death, constant plots against Phocas in
the capital, the resulting repression and the discontent of large sections of
the populace of Constantinople, meant that Phocas was quite unable to
maintain a uniform policy to deal with these problems. 56
The extent to which the wars in the east and the Balkans influenced the
basic structure of East Roman society is difficult to determine, of course.
Undoubtedly, massive insecurity in the Balkans meant that regular agri . .
cultural production must have suffered considerably. Similarly, large
tracts of Anatolia must have been affected by Persian military operations.
Political repression and the expropriation of senators under Phocas must
also have meant the accumulation in state hands, or the redistribution, of
considerable amounts of landed property in the provinces. All these devel. .
opments heightened people's awareness and perception of their situation
in significant ways, as they likewise affected the administrative structure of
the empire in these regions. Fundamental features of a Byzantine, rather
than a late Roman culture and ideology had begun to form already,
features which these diasters highlighted, but which were apparent even in
the last years of Justinian's reign and throughout the reigns of his
successors.
From the last years of Justinian the empire entered what might be
perceived as a period of ideological reorientation. Late Roman culture
demonstrates at this time a loss of confidence or trust in the traditional
symbols of authority and the establishment, a drift away from the sym-
to God Himself. 61 Evidence for local and civic saints' cults increases sharply
at this time and, together with the developments noted already, suggests
strongly that ordinary people were transferring their attention away
from the worldly and physical authority of the emperor and the state,
distant and ineffective as it often was, towards a more immediate and
tangible power, a power and authority invested in heavenly guardians and
intercessors directly by God. Given the close links deliberately fostered by
the emperors themselves between their authority and its sources, such a
development is not really surprising in the context of shifting political
horizons and military and social vulnerability. 62 These developments had
important repercussions in the middle and later seventh century.
The later sixth and early seventh century witnessed a series of dramatic
changes in the late Roman world: politically the empire suffered a series of
major blows to its prestige and authority: economically, it was able to
maintain its resources, although much reduced, only with considerable
difficulty. Socially, it was rent by divisions within the Church, while the
vast majority of the producing population was maintained at a subsistence
level for the benefit of the state and its bureaucracy, and the wealthy social
elite which dominated it. Many contemporaries were fully aware of the
dangers of the situation, and debates about the likely outcome of the
long-term political crisis which engulfed the Roman world during and after
the reign of Phocas were not unusual. As Jacob, the Palestinian Jew who
was forcibly baptised at Carthage under Heraclius in 634, remarked, the
future of the empire seemed most uncertain:
From the Ocean, that is of Scotia [i.e. Ireland]. from Britannia, Hispania, Francia.
Italia, Hellas and Thrace and Egypt and Africa and upper Africa, the boundaries of
the Romans and the statues of their emperors were seen until our times: for all
peoples submitted to them at God's command. But now we see Romania reduced
and humbled. 63
A telling picture of the situation after Maurice's death is given in the
collection of the miracles of St Demetrius, written down not long after the
events they claim to portray:
For you all know what clouds of dust the Devil stirred up during the years of the
successor of the emperor Maurice, of blessed memory, when he smothered love,
and sowed mun.Ial hatred in all of the East. in Cilicia. in Asia. in Palestine and the
neighbouring lands up to Constantinople itself. The demes were no longer content
merely to spill the blood of their comrades on the streets: they broke into one
61 See Cameron. 'Images of authority', 15-11.
62 Averil Cameron, 'The Theotokos in sixth-century Constantinople: a city finds its symbol',
]ThS 29 (1978). 79-108, see 102fT.
63 Doctrina Iacobi nuper Baptizati (ed. N. Bonwetsch. in Abhandlungen der koniglichen
Gesellschaft der Wissenschaften zu Gottingen. phil.-hist. Klasse. XII. 3, Berlin 191 0).
p. 62. 4-12.
40 Byzantium in the seventh century
another's homes and slew the occupants mercilessly. Women and children, old and
young, those who were too weak to save themselves by flight, they hurled from the
windows of the upper floors: like barbarians they plundered their fellow citizens,
their acquaintances and their relatives, and put their homes to the flame. 6 4
The picture may be overdrawn, but it neatly encapsulates one aspect of the
mood of the Eastern empire during the early years of the seventh century.
64
Miracula S. Demetrii (ed. Lemerle). 82 (I. 112.11-113.7). For the general development of
late Roman society through the period from the late fourth to later sixth centuries. see the
useful survey of Averil Cameron. The Mediterranean World in Late Antiquity AD 3 9 5-600
(London 199 3}, in which a wide range of work up to the date of publication on the literary
sources and the archaeological material is cited and taken into account.
CHAPTER 2
HERACLIUS 6 I 0-64 I
The reign of the 'tyrant' Phocas demonstrates the degree to which the
justinianic expansion of the sixth century had over-extended the resources
of the state, and how crucial the stability of the central authority was to the
well-being of the empire as a whole. Phocas, a subordinate officer from the
Danube forces, seems to have had neither the ability nor the experience
needed of a ruler in the situation in which the late Roman state found Itself.
His reign is remarkable chiefly for the plots and attempts on his life which
he managed to avoid during the eight years of his reign in Constantinople,
and for the disastrous collapse of the empire's defences, especially in the
East. A long series of unsuccessful, senate-inspired plots eventually culmi-
nated in the expedition sent by Heraclius the Elder, the exarch of Africa
based at Carthage, under his son Heracllus and his nephew Nlcetas: the
former with a squadron of ships with Byzantine and Moorish troops to
Constantinople, the latter marching in 608 via Bgypt, which quickly joined
the rebellion. 1 Heraclius with his fleet appeared ofT Constantinople on 3
October in the year 610: he had been greeted enthusiastically en route
wherever he had stopped: and the story was repeated at Constantinople.
Phocas' supporters deserted him, Heraclius was let into the city, and the
tyrant was executed. His last words testify both to the situation of the
empire after eight years of directionless government, and to Phocas' own
desperate incompetence. As Heraclius confronted him before his execution
he asked: 'Is it in this manner that you have governed the state?' Phocas
replied: 'Will you be able to do any better?' 2
Heraclius was crowned by the patriarch Sergius in the chapel of St
Stephen in the palace on 5 October. His accession was acclaimed by the
t On the reign of Phocas, see Ostrogorsky, Geschlchte, pp. 70-2: Stratos, Byzantlutn In tl1e
Seventh Century, vol. I, pp. 48-91 for a detailed political history; and J. Herrin, Tl1e
Formation of Christendom (London 198 7). pp. 18 7ff. for a summary. A detailed account: D.
Olster. The Politics of Usurpation in the Seventh century: rhetoric and revolution in Byzantium
(Amsterdam 1993).
2 John of Antioch. frg. 5. 38: Exc. de lnsid.. 150.
41
42 Byzantium in the seventh century
demes, the palace guards and by the senate according to tradition: and
there is no doubt that it was a popular accession. Phocas had been almost
universally detested by the end of his reign; and it is interesting that the
one quarter where his rule was popular was in the papal chancery at
Rome. Since the early sixth century, the patriarchs of Constantinople had
been wont to call themselves also ecumenical, a title to which Pope
Gregory I took fierce objection. While the Emperor Maurice stayed out of
the debate, Phocas quickly made clear his support for the papal position
and in 607 issued a document which recognised the apostolic Church ofSt
Peter as the head of all the Churches. His popularity in Rome is therefore
easily understood: but it was the only foundation of such popularity. 3
Heraclius is popularly, and probably quite justifiably, regarded by both
modern historians and by Byzantines as one of the empire's greatest rulers.
But his accession saw no immediate change for the better in the situation of
the state. Indeed, things became decidedly worse, so much so that in 618
the emperor planned to abandon Constantinople, which seemed too open
to attacks by Avars and Slavs in the north and the Persians from the east.
and move the seat of empire to his old home, Carthage. 4 But the response
to this plan from the populace of the city, and the arguments of the
patriarch Sergius, dissuaded him from this action. Instead, he began to
develop plans to restore the situation. In the East as in the West, however,
he met with only limited success and a number of failures.
In 611, the Persians were driven out of Caesarea in Cappadocia: but
Byzantine counter-attacks in Armenia and Syria were unsuccessful. and
after defeats in 613, the Persians marched once more into the Anatolian
provinces. 5 They also occupied Damascus, and in 614 Jerusalem itself was
3 For the edict. see Dolger. Regesten, no. 15 5: and on the disagreement over titles, see
E. Caspar, Geschichte des Papsttunts (2 vols., Tiibingen 1935), vol. II. pp. 452fT.: V. Laurent.
·Le Titre de patriarche recumenique et la signature patriarcale', REB 6 ( 1948), 5f.
4 Nicephorus, 12. 10.
5 See esp. W .E. Kaegi. jr., 'New evidence on the early reign of Heraclius', BZ 66 ( 19 7 3 ).
308-30, see 313fT.: Sebeos. 65.
The East Ron1an \.Vorld: the politics of survival 43
taken, a particularly heavy blo\\' to Byzantine morale: not only was the
Church of the Holy Sepulchre destroyed. but the True Cross was carried ofT
to Ctesiphon. At the same time. the Persians partly occupied Cilicia, and
the important city of Tarsus was taken. Armenia likewise fell to Persian
attack, and the Byzantine forces of the magister militum per Armeniam were
pushed westwards and northwards. In 615 further attacks into Asia Minor
took place, and in 616 Persian troops reached the Bosphorus. 6 Byzantine
troops seem to have retained some cohesion, however. The armies of the
magister militum per Armeniam were still operational; forces of the magister
militum in praesenti and of the magister militum per Orientem seem to have
been active in Cilicia and Isauria. 7 Troops from Africa and Egypt under
Heraclius' cousin Nicetas were operating in Syria and in Egypt itself;
although Persian invasion and occupation of these territories between 616
and 620, followed by the consolidation of Persian authority in Syria and
Palestine, terminated this appositional activity. 8 This was again a major
blow for the Byzantines, for the 'granary of the empire' and the chief
supplier of grain to Constantinople was now lost to the enemy.
In the north and west, meanwhile, the empire slowly lost control over
much of the Balkan region. The partial withdrawal of troops from the
Danube front in 602 has traditionally been taken as the moment from
which this process began in earnest. It has been assumed that there was
thereafter little to hinder the Slav populations north of the Danube from
moving south and overrunniung considerable areas. But, in fact, the
evidence suggests that throughout most of the reign of Phocas only minor
incursions took place - it was the civil wars between Heraclius and the
supporters of Phocas which actually necessitated the withdrawal of sub-
stantial forces from the Balkans and which expedited the real collapse. This
was especially the case after 613 when the war with the Persians took a
turn for the worse. 9 The actual occupation of the Balkans seems to have
6 See the account ofTheophanes on Persian inroads from the year 612: 299.32-3. 300.1-6.
20-21 (for 614): 300.30sq. (615): 301.9sq. (616-17).
7 See Haldon. Recruitment and Conscription, p. 29. note 29; and for a temporary mint
established first at Seleucia (615-17) and then at Isaura (617-18) see Ph. Grierson.
Catalogue of the Byzantine Coins in the Dumbarton Oaks Collection and in the Whittemore
Collection, vol. 11: Phocas to Theodosius Ill. 602-717 (Washington D.C. 1968), pp. 327f. It
must reflect the minting of coin specifically to pay the troops of the region. An otherwise
unattested arms factory at Seleucia is also evidence of local military operations. See
G.Zacos and A. Veglery, Byzantine Lead Seals, vol. I. parts 1-3 (Basel1972), no. 1136.
8 See the account of Stratos, Byzantium in the Seventh Century. vol. I. pp. 113f.: F. Winkel-
mann, 'Agypten und Byzanz vor der arabischen Eroberung', BS 40 (1979), 161-82, esp.
169-70 with literature. Winkelmann shows that. pace Stratos and others, the Persians
were probably not greeted with open arms, nor hailed as liberators of the Coptic and
monophysite population.
9 See esp. the discussion of R.-J. Lilie, 'Kaiser Herakleios und die Ansiedlung der Serben', SoF
44 ( 1985), 17-43 and the literature cited. For the traditional position, see P. Charanis,
44 Byzantium ln the seventh century
been a very slow process, lasting some fifty years: in 582, the Avars- who
exercised a political-military hegemony over the numerous Slav clans and
tribal groups -captured Sirmium and occupied the surrounding region, an
event which effectively opened a door Into Byzantine lands south of the
Danube. In 626, after the defeat of the Avaro-Slav attack on Constantin-
ople, Avar domination of the Slav peoples began to loosen, and the
independent Sklaviniai of the Balkans henceforth figure as the main oppo-
nents of Byzantine rule in the area, at least until the arrival of the Bulgars
in the 680s. Both the literary sources and the numismatic evidence - finds
of hoards which represent a response to invasions and attacks - provide a
general framework for the chronology of these events. Between about 576
and 586/7 a number of invasions and raids penetrated into the south
Balkans, past Thessaloniki and into the Peloponnese. 10 Again, from about
609 until the 620s, further hoards together with less precise literary
references - that is, of dubious or inexact chronology - attest to raids deep
Into Greece and the Peloponnese. 11 The pattern suggests an initial series of
raids and invasions, beginning probably before 577, but ending tempo-
rarily in the late 590s, until the last year of Phocas, when a second wave
began. The permanent settlement of Slavs in the north and central Balkans
begins already in the 570s, of course, on a very small scale; the Miracles of
'Bthnlc changes in the Byzantine empire in the seventh century', DOP 13 (1959), 23-44,
see 37ff.
to For the literary sources, see Menander Protector, frgs. 47 (p. 209.3sq.) and 48
(p.468.36sq.): John ofBphesus, Ill, 25 (from 577/8 to 583/4). Note also the reference to
clerics having to abandon their sees as a result of barbarian attacks in the letters of
Gregory I. See B. Chrysos, 'IuJ.LPo~i) <71'il11 l<M'opia -rfl-; li11'£ipou xa-ra Tilv
1rpcanopu,aVTt.1rit t1roxit (4' - IT'a£.)'. 'Hfl'£&fHIYT'&1t'iJ Xpo111.1e'lj 23 (1981}, 72-7. with
literature. Note also the Chronicle of Monemvasla, which mentions the conquest of the
Peloponnese and the expulsion of Its indigenous population In 587/8- something of an
exaggeration: P. Lemerle, 'La Chronique lmproprement dite de Monemvasie. Le contexte
hlstorlque et legendalre', REB 21 (1963), 5-49. In spite of the Chronicle's claims,
Monemvasla seems In fact to have been established in 582/3. SeeP. Schreiner. 'Note sur la
fondation de Monemvasle en 582-583', TM 4 (1970), 4710'.: P. Schrelner. ed., Die
byzantlnlschen Kleinchroniken (2 vols .• CFHB XII 1 and 2. Vienna 1975 and 1977). vol. I,
p. 319. nos. 41a and b: vol. 11. pp. 77f. For the numismatic material see B. Athanasso-
poulou-Penna. ·e"laaupac; 1IOJ~.urf.Ui-rwv 6ou ai.ci»va J.L.X. a'II'O Tit» 11'£pt.oxi} TW11 6-rtPwv'.
i1pxa&oAoy,1t'f1 Bf/Jf1JJ.£pi~ ( 1979), 200-13: D. M. Metcalf, 'The Slavonic threat to Greece
circa 580: some evidence from Athens', Hesperla 31 ( 1962 ), 134-41: T.L. Shean, 'The
Athenian Agora: excavations of 1972'. Hesperla 42 (1973). 395-8: and esp. the general
survey of A. Avramea. 'NOJ.L&.O'J.LOT&.xoi. .. -611aavpoi." xai. J.L£fL011WJ.Li11a vop.ia...,aTa ci11'0
,.iJv fl£~o-rr6vVIlao (IT'-Z' at.)'.Xvp.p.e£1tTa 5(1983), 49-89. See also M. Nystazopoulou.
'IuJ.LPO~Tt £le; TTtll xpovo~O'Y"10'&.11 TWV ·Apap&.XW11 xa~ O'~ap ..xwv i11'L&poJ.Ui»v i11'~
MaupLXUlU (582-602)'. Ivp.p.£1,1t1'a 2 (1970). 149: and Th. Olajos, 'Contribution a la
chronologle des premieres Installations des Slaves dans l'emplre byzantln', B 55 (1985),
506-15.
11 Uterary evidence: see P. Lemerle. Les plus anciens recuells des miracles de St. Demetrlus: I. Le
Ttxte(Paris 1979).11. Commentaire(Paris 1981), see 179-94 (1, 175.1sq.): U, pp.85f. for
an Invasion of 614-16: and for coin finds. see Avramea, •lh,uavpoi', 77f.; D. M. Metcalf.
'The Aegean coastlands under threat: some coins and coin hoards from the reign of
Heraclius', ABSA 57 (1962). 14-23.
The East Roman world: the politics of survival 45
St Demetrius attest to permanent Slav groups in the region ofThessaloniki
in the early seventh century: but the penetration and occupation of the
Peloponnese, for example. seems only to have commenced on a permanent
basis after 609/10.12
The immediate danger to the Byzantine state, however, came from the
Avars, who by the time of Heraclius exercised authority over a consider-
able area. from the Danube plain eastwards into the south Russian steppes.
ruling a confederacy or empire which had considerable resources in
manpower at its disposal. Already in the years 615-16, as both Persians
and Avars approached Constantinople in a joint effort to force the surren-
der of the City, the extreme danger was apparent. In 617, ln an attempt to
meet the Avar khagan, Heraclius was ambushed near the Long Walls in
the area of Heraclea and nearly captured. 13 By 619, however, he had been
able to arrange a truce with the khagan, which enabled him to transfer
troops from Europe to Asia Minor. In a series of campaigns, beginning 622
and lasting until 628, Heraclius was able to outmanreuvre the Persian
forces in Anatolia and Armenia and take the war to the heart of the
Sassanid empire. 14 The Avars. who were bought off again in 623, bided
their time until 626, when a Persian counter-attack and a major Avar
offensive against Constantinople endangered the capital of the empire
itself. Not to be distracted from the campaigns in the Bast, Heraclius
u See Lemerle. Les plus anciens recueils. 100-15 (I, 124.1sq.) 11, p. 690".: and Sp. Vryonis, jr.•
'The evolution of Slavic society and the Slavic Invasions In Greece. The first major Slavic
attack on Thessaloniki. A.D. 597'. Hesperla 50 (1981), 378-90; Vryonls, 'Review essay of
Mlchael W. Weithmann, Die slawlsche Bevolkerung auf der grlechlschtn Halblnstl (Munich
1978)', Balkan Studies 22 (1981), 405-39: and for the occupation, M. Kordoses,
'"H a~aPLxi) t1TOLX11U11 OTi)v 0E~01T6vV11ao J.LE Paa11 Ta a~aPLxa T01r(I)VUJ.LW',
JStd&d,., 10 (1981), 388-421: and see also J. Ferluga. 'Untersuchungen zur byzantinl-
schen Ansiedlungspolltik auf dem Balkan von der Mitte des 7. bis zur Mltte des 9.
jahrhunderts', ZRVI 23 (1984). 49-61: and the older work of M. Vasmer. Die Slawen in
Grlechenlarrd (Berlin 1941 and Leipzig 1970), esp. pp. 1180". rn general, see Ostrogorsky.
Geschlchte, pp. 770".: Obolensky. Byzantine Cotnmonwealth, pp. 52fT.; Dltten, 'Zur Bedeu-
tung der Einwanderung der Slawen', p. 95f.: idem, Bthnische Verschiebungen zwischen der
Ballcanhalbinsel und Kleinasien vom Bnde des 6. bis zur zweiten Hdlfte des 9. Jahrhunderts (BBA
LIX. Berlin 1993). pp. 45ff.: Stratos. Byzantium in the Seventh Century, vol. I. pp. 118ff.: and
the most recent brief survey, M. Nystazopoulou-Pelekidou. 'Les Slaves dans l' empire byzan-
tin', in 17th International Byzantine Congress, Main Papers (Washington D.C. 1986), pp.
345-6 7, see 346-51. For another view. see M. W. Weithmann, Die slawische Bevalkerung auf
der griechischen Halbinsel (Munich 19 78).
13 See N.H. Baynes. 'The date of the Avar surprise'. BZ 21 (1912), 11G-28: also Stratos,
Byzantlunr In the Seventh CA!ntury, vol. I. pp. 14 5ff., who argues for a later date, namely
623.
• 4 See the brief summary In Ostrogorsky, Geschichte, pp. 86f.• and N. Oikonomldes, 'A
chronological note on the first Persian campaign of Heracllus (622 )'. BMGS 1 ( 19 75).
1-9: A. Pernlce. L'lmperatore Bracllo (Florence 1905), pp. 1110'.: most recently Stratos,
Byza11tium In the Seventh Qntury, vol. I. pp.135-44, 151-72. 197-234: and note
Haldon, Byzantine Praetorians, pp. 169-71 with notes 3 3 3-41: and C. Zuckermann, 'The
reign of Constantlne V In the Miracles of St Theodore the Recruit (BHG 1764)'. RBB 46
(1988). 191-210, see 206fT.
46 Byzantium in the seventh century
reinforced the Constantinoplitan garrison with troops from the field forces
under his brother Theodore: and with the help of an imperial fleet, which
destroyed the Slav attack on the sea-walls of the city, the siege was
defeated and the Avar khagan, followed shortly thereafter by the Persian
forces, withdrew. 15 The retreat of the Persian forces under Sahrbaraz to
Syria, and the defeat of a second Persian column under Sahin, shortly
before this, and at the hands of Heraclius' brother Theodore, signalled the
final failure of Persian attempts to force the surrender of Constantinople.
The war ended effectively in early 628, when, after the crushing defeat of
his forces in the Caucasus and near Nineveh in 627, Chosroes was deposed
and murdered and replaced by his son Kavadh (called Siroes in the Greek
sources), who immediately negotiated a peace with the Romans. The
agreement of 591 was brought back into force, and over the following year
the Persian army withdrew from Egypt and all the territories it had
occupied since the opening phases of the wars. 16 The course of events was
complicated and influenced in addition by Byzantine plans to bring about
the conversion of the Persians, initially in the context of the war through
the general Sahrbaraz, a plan which achieved a certain degree of success
before the Arab conquests put an end to Byzantine hopes. 17 Following on
his triumphal return to Constantinople in 628, when he was met at Hiereia
on the Asia Minor coast by the senate, clergy, the patriarch Sergius, his son
Constantine and sections of the populace, the crowning achievement of the
reign was the return of the True Cross to the city of Jerusalem on 21 March
in 630. Thus ended what has sometimes been seen as the first crusade,
symbolised in ceremonial enactment. 18
In the West, the Avars' retreat in 626 had equally far-reaching con-
sequences. Uprisings of subject Slav peoples soon followed, and within a
few years an independent west Slav confederacy had appeared, under the
leadership of a certain Samo, a Frankish merchant by origin. This was a
direct result of the revolt against Avar domination and the diplomatic
Is See F. Barisic. 'Le siege de Constantinople par les Avares et les Slaves en 626'. B 24
(1954). 3 71-95: and in particular P. Speck. ed .. Zufalliges zum Bellum Avaricum des
Georgios Pisides (Miscellanea Byzantina Monacensia XXIV, Munich 1980), with literature
and discussion: V. Grumel. 'La Defense maritime de Constantinople du cote de la Corne
d'Or et le siege des Avares'. BS 25 (1964). 217-33; Herrin. Formation of Christendom.
pp.198f.
16 See the account of Stratos. Byzantium in the Seventh Century, vol. I. pp. 210fT.: and the
literature in note 14 above.
17 See C. Mango. 'Deux etudes sur Byzance et la Perse Sassanide, II: Heraclius. Sahrvaraz et
la vraie croix'. TM 9 (1985). 105-18
1s Cf. A. Frolow. 'La Vraie croix et les expeditions d'Heraclius en Perse', REB 11 (1953).
88fT.; Frolow, 'La oedicace de Constantinople dans la tradition byzantine'. Revue de
l'histoire des religions 12 7 (1944 ). 61 ff.; Stratos, Byzantium in the Seventh Century. vol. I.
237fT.. esp. 252-5.
The East Roman world: the politics of survival 47
position in the Balkans. The Avar power was destroyed: and while the Slav
population of the Balkans and the Peloponnese made Byzantine authority
rather an empty concept, a more-or-less peaceful situation had been won,
which gave the land and population time to recover from the years of
warfare and devastation.
which the two natures of Christ. human and divine, operated through a
single energy. But it is important to note that the debate was not begun by
this political need. On the contrary. discussion over the nature of the
energies of Christ had begun among theologians already in the sixth
century, albeit with the intention of bringing the neo-Chalcedonian and
the monophysite positions closer .24
But even though Heraclius led the negotiations himself, only partial and
temporary successes were gained. Pope Honorius lent his support to the
project; but even the agreement reached by Cyrus in 633 with the Theodo-
sianites, a group of monophysites in Egypt, was short-lived. Once again,
the imperial government was impelled to employ force in order to gain
acceptance for its views. But Chalcedonians themselves soon began to
express doubts about the theological validity of the argument, doubts
expressed particularly strongly by Sophronius, patriarch of Jerusalem from
634. The result was that an alternative, emended position was developed,
primarily, it would seem, by the patriarch Sergius. Partly encouraged by
the rather reserved position of the pope, he argued that the crucial element
was not the single energy, but the single will- thelema- of Christ. In 638,
Heraclius issued the famous Ekthesis, in which further discussion of the
problem of one or two energies was forbidden, and the new, monothelete,
formula was set out. It was put up for all to see in the narthex of the Hagia
Sophia. But the new policy was likewise rejected by a large number of
Chalcedonian churchmen, particularly in the West, as well as by the
monophysite Churches. And although Sergius was replaced after his death
in 638 by the keen monothelete Pyrrhus, it continued to meet with
opposition, now from the successor of Pope Honorius in Rome also. The
compromise had merely caused another division within the Church. But it
also had important consequences for the imperial ideology itself and for the
position of the emperors, as we shall see. And in the meantime, both Syria
and Palestine had been conquered by the Arabs. 25
The arrival on the historical stage of Islam and its initial bearers, the
CONSTANSII, 641-668
Constans 11 was only eleven years old when he became sole ruler, and it is
clear that he had to rely upon the senate, both formally and informally,
during his first years. The senate itself, representative of the Constantino-
politan bureaucracy and the provincial landowning class, seems to have
experienced a considerable increase in its influence and prestige during
these years, a development which contrasts sharply with the rather sub-
servient position it occupied during much of the sixth century. Its power
may have been concealed in constitutional and legislative matters during
the sixth century, because the economic interests of its members were not
threatened: but it is interesting to note that it was at times of political and
economic insecurity or chaos that the senate as a body reasserted itself -
during the reign of Phocas, for example, and during the last years of
Heraclius, the reign of Heracleonas and Constantine, and the opening part
of the reign of Constans 11. As has been shown, however, the senate
assumed a new position in the affairs of the state from this time on, as a
higher court and as a source of advice and advisers to the emperors too.
The reasons for this must be sought in both the political situation and the
prevailing ideological tendencies of the time, as well as in the actual
make-up of the senate and the social origins of its members. 3 9
4 ° For Valentinus and his role. see Haldon, Byzantine Praetorians. pp. 178fT.. and Stratos.
Byzantiurn in the Seventh Century, vol. Ill. pp. 11-13.
The East Roman "'orld: the politics of survival 55
Byzantine forces had been on the defensive since the beginning of his reign.
In 658, as internal strife among the Arabs relieved the pressure on the
eastern front, Constans undertook an expedition into the Sklaviniai, the
regions of the Slavs, where- according to Theophanes- he defeated many
tribes and took many prisoners. 45 The result was the transportation of
several thousands of prisoners with their families to devastated or unoccu-
pied areas of Anatolia and the probable recruitment of Slav soldiers into
the Byzantine forces there, 46 beginning a policy which was to be pursued
with vigour by both Constantine IV and Justinian 11. It was also part of a
wider change in the constitution of the population of Asia Minor itself and,
more particularly, it hints at significant changes in methods of recruitment
and maintenance of the imperial forces in the provinces.
45 Theophanes, 347.6.
46 For example, Theophanes. 348.18 (for 66 5): a group of 5,000 Slavs which deserted to the
Arabs in that year and which may have consisted of soldiers. See Lilie, Die byzantinische
Reaktion, pp. 70. 237fT.: Ditten. 'Zur Bedeutung der Einwanderung der Slawen', pp. 147ff.:
Ditten, 'Slawen im byzantinischen Heer', in Studien zum 7. ]hdt., pp. 77-91. see 86ff.:
P. Charanis, 'The transfer of population as a policy in the Byzantine empire', Comparative
Studies in Society and History 3 (The Hague 1961). 140-54. see 143: and see also Lemerle.
Les plus anciens recueils 11. pp. 130f.
47 The adherence of the patriarch of Antioch Makarios, along with a seemingly large
number of his clergy and the non-monophysite population to monotheletism after the
Arab conquest and up to the sixth council of 680 (in which Makarios was formally
deposed). is good evidence for this. See Winkelmann, 'Die Quellen', 555-6 and sources.
The East Roman vJorld: the politics of survival 57
the exarch himself, Gregory, but had to acknowledge defeat: and it may
have been the solidarity of the North African bishops and population
against the imperial policy that encouraged the exarch to declare his
opposition to Constans' rule in 646/7 and have himself proclaimed
emperor - perhaps in conscious imitation of the great Heraclius. This
short-lived attempt met with failure when in the following year Gregory
was killed fighting Arab raiders near Sufetula. 48 The raiders withdrew, but
imperial authority was quickly reasserted, although this had little effect
upon the internal political and ecclesiastical situation. In an effort to reach
yet another compromise, the patriarch Paul issued the famous Typos in
648, and in the name of the emperor, in which it was decreed that the
Ekthesis should be removed from the narthex of Hagia Sophia, but that at
the same time no further discussion of the issue was to take place: neither
was the question of the single will or energy of Christ to be debated, on pain
of punishment. A prohibition on discussion, however, designed to prevent
further disagreement. and to reinforce imperial authority, which was by
now deeply bound up with the monothelete doctrine, was unlikely to lead
to an acceptable solution. And indeed, at the Lateran council held in Rome
in 649, under the newly elected Pope Martin, the 105 bishops (chiefly from
the West) condemned both Ekthesis and Typos, along with the three
patriarchs Sergius, Pyrrhus and Paul (then occupying the patriarchal
throne). The results were circulated throughout the Church, in East and
West, as well as to the emperor himself. Maximus even described the
council as the sixth ecumenical council - '1 direct challenge to the emper-
or's traditional authority as convenor of such meetings: and recent
research has made it clear that the acts of the council were carefully
written up by Maximus and his supporters with the express intention of
achieving the greatest possible propaganda effect. The council itself seems
to have been orchestrated and dominated by Maximus and his confeder-
ates, and there can be little doubt that the later (anti-monothelete)
orthodox tradition relied for its acounts of the events and the history of the
controversy on these 'biased' reports.
The challenge to imperial authority could not be overlooked. It was a
total rejection of the imperial policy - and by implication therefore of the
emperor's orthodoxy- and his fitness to rule. Constans ordered Olympius,
48 For Gregory's rebellion and the opposition of the African clergy to monotheletism, see
Averil Cameron, 'Byzantine Africa - the literary evidence', pp. 56-9: I. Rochow, 'Zu
einigen oppositionellen religiosen Stromungen', in By:anz im 7. ]hdt., pp. 225-88, see
263-4: Diehl. L'Afrique byzantine, pp. 555fT.: Stratos. Byzantium in the Seventh Century,
vol. Ill. pp. 62-73.
58 Byzantium in the seventh century
the exarch of Ravenna, to arrest Martin and to compel the bishops then
assembled in Rome to accept and sign the Typos. Like Gregory in Africa,
however, Olympius seems to have found it more acceptable to rebel and to
have himself proclaimed emperor. The imperial government, thoroughly
involved in the worsening situation in the East, did nothing. But, also like
Gregory, Olympius' independence was short-lived. He died in 652, and in
June 653 the new exarch with his troops was able to carry out Constans'
orders and arrest the pope. Martin arrived in Constantinople in December,
when he was immediately arraigned before the senate. The case against
him was based on political evidence- Olympius' rebellion providing the
most damning proof of his treasonable conduct. In spite of his protestations,
Martin was refused permission or opportunity to speak on the subject of
the Typos. He was found guilty and condemed to death, later commuted by
Constans to exile in Cherson, where he died -he had already been ill at the
time of his arrest- in 656. Maximus suffered a similar fate, arrested and
brought from Italy, imprisoned, tried and eventually - after the failure of
successive efforts to change his mind, in which the desire of the imperial
government for a public recognition from Maximus that the emperor's
authority was absolute was made strikingly clear - mutilated and exiled,
dying in 662 in the fortress of Schemarion in Lazica, in the Caucasus. 49
The imperial victory which was thus secured treated some of the
symptoms only, however. of a much deeper malaise within the political-
ideological world of East Rome. Imperial authority had been forcefully and,
in the eyes of many, effectively placed under a question mark. The rights of
emperors to define dogma and to approve or disapprove of synodal and
other ecclesiastical gatherings of similar status had been queried. But at an
even deeper level. the public political debate represented by the mono-
thelete controversy reflected also widespread shifts within the whole
framework of the formal imperial ideology and indeed beyond this, within
the symbolic universe of Byzantine culture itself. The central position of the
emperor in respect of certain key questions had been thrown into relief: his
49 For Olympius and Italy. see Stratos. Byzantium in the Seventh Century, vol. Ill, pp. 104-11:
Stratos, 'The exarch Olympios and the supposed Arab invasion of Sicily in A. D. 652'. ]OB
25 ( 1976), 63-73: and for the history and development of the monothelete controversy.
the roles of Martin and Maxim us. and the outcome of their trials. see esp. Beck. Kirche.
pp. 430-73; Van Dieten. Geschichte der Patriarchen, pp. 179-218; P. Verghese. 'The
monothelite controversy - a historical survey', Greek Orthodox Theol. Review 13 ( 1 968 ),
196-211; V. Grumel. 'Recherches sur l'histoire du monothelisme', EO 27 (1928). 6-16,
257-77:28 (1929), 19-34,272-83:29 (1930), 16-28: Herrin, Formation of Christen-
dom, pp. 255-9, 263-5; and the fundamental studies of R. Riedinger, 'Aus den Akten der
Lateransynode von 649', BZ 69 (1976). 17-38: 'Griechische Konzilsakten auf dem Wege
ins lateinische Mittelalter', Annuarium Historiae Conciliorum 9 (1977), 253-301: 'Die
Lateransynode von 649. Ein Werk der Byzantiner urn Maximos Homologetes'. Byzantina
13 (1985). 519-34: with further literature and discussion in Winkelmann, 'Die Quellen'.
515-59, see 538.
The East Roman world: the politics of survival 59
relationship to God and his function as God's vicegerent had also, in some
respects, been re-examined. By the later 640s, of course, the territories for
whose predominantly monophysite populations the imperial monothele-
tism of the court and the Constantinopolitan patriarchate had been origi-
nally intended were lost to the empire. No doubt it was felt that attempts
might be made in the future to bring them back into the empire, and so
monotheletism retained its political-religious relevance in this respect. But
essentially, monotheletism, and more particularly the efforts of the
emperor to impose a monothelete imperial policy on the Chalcedonian
clergy, were responses to a different set of developments. As we shall see in
a later chapter, these developments and the tendencies noted above were
fundamental to the later social and political history of the Byzantine state
in the later seventh and eighth centuries. 50
seat of government and administration. The empire was still in the eyes of
its subjects and its rulers the Roman empire - Rome itself and Italy (in spite
of the Lombards) were a fundamental element of that empire - and, in spite
of Islamic naval threats, the empire was still united in its parts by the
Mediterranean Sea. Constans' move is a striking testimony to that set of
beliefs- even if it is also a testament to the beginning of the disintegration
of that pan-Mediterranean world and its culture, and an attempt to
reaffirm what was all too rapidly becoming a facet of the glorious past. 52
It is clear from Constans' activities in Italy, however, that he intended
originally to subjugate the Lombards and at the same time to reorganise
the defence and administration of Africa against impending Arab attack.
He left Constantinople in 661/2, stopping at Thessaloniki, marching on to
Athens and Corinth and, embarking again from Corinth or possibly Patras,
sailed to Otranto. From here he opened his campaign against the Lom-
bards, at first with considerable success, although failing to take Ben-
evento. As his forces began to suffer from lack of supplies, he eventually
had to abandon the siege and retire to Naples, whence he briefly visited
Rome. For twelve days he participated in celebrations and prayer, greeted
and entertained by Pope Vitalian. Thereafter he returned to Naples and
finally established his headquarters in Sicily, at Syracuse. From that point
his intention was to set up the defences of the island and of southern Italy
against Arab sea-borne attack, and to reassert imperial authority in Africa,
which may still have been at that time hostile to his rule. following
Gregory's failed rebellion. 5 3
Constans' rule in Sicily rapidly became extremely unpopular. He seems
to have been in considerable financial difficulties and had to ask for money
from the Church of Ravenna. In 666 the see of Ravenna was granted
independence from Rome- autocephaly- by Constans (partly, it has been
suggested, in response to the generosity of the Church there). But the
presence of large numbers of troops of the imperial armies was an enor-
mous burden on the resources of the island and indeed of all southern Italy.
While the strategy which led him there seems to have been entirely
logical. his desire to transfer his headquarters there on a permanent basis
met with a great deal of opposition. His wife and three sons were prevented
from joining him by officers of state and by members of the demes. Finally,
in 668, he became the victim of an assassination plot. On 15 September he
was murdered in his bath by a cubicularius, and shortly thereafter the
s2 A good description of the campaigns up to the emperor's establishment in Italy can be
found in Stratos. Byzantium in the Seventh Century. vol. Ill. pp. 197fT.
53 The march to Italy, the campaigns undertaken en route. and Constans' stay in Sicily have
been the subject of much discussion. See Ostrogorsky, Geschichtt, pp.lOl-3; Stratos.
Byzantium in the Seventh Century, vol. Ill. pp. 209-17, vol. IV, pp. 8f. and esp. P. Corsi. La
spedizione Italiana di Costante ll (Bologna 1983)
The East Roman world: the politics of survival 61
emperor, who had been under the influence of his advisers since his
accession, but who was by this time clearly beginning to assert his
independence with increasing confidence.
Constans seems throughout his reign to have been the target of conspi-
racies, and these were, in many respects - and as I have argued elsewhere
- a reflection or symptom of deeper changes in attitudes to the person of
the emperor and to his role, as well as of the often confused situation in
which the empire found itself at this period. Rebellions in Armenia were an
important political factor for the government, for the nationalism and the
clan traditions of the powerful Armenian princely and noble houses meant
that the area was easily alienated. The continued conflict between Chalce-
donian and monophysite Churches there, and the vested interests of both
the caliphate (which now replaced the Sassanids in this role) and the
Byzantines, meant that Armenia was a constant source of conflict and a
potential threat to imperial security. In 648 or 649 Constans issued an
order that the Armenian Church should accept its subordination to the
Church of Constantinople and the Chalcedonian creed. In response, the
Armenian clergy and many princes, including the Byzantine governor,
Theodore Rstuni, met at the synod of Dvin in 649, where the imperial
order was condemned and rejected. 58 The result was an agreement
between Armenia and the Arabs by which the former threw off Byzantine
authority and accepted Muslim overlordship. Constans was persuaded to
march against the rebellious princes and, in a short campaign, suceeded in
forcing the rebels to withdraw. But he had to return to the West in 652 in
order to deal with the plot in Thrace in that year, leaving as commander-
in-chief the general Marianus who, after the Armenian rebels had received
Arab reinforcements, was defeated and his troops routed. Armenia
remained semi-independent and under Muslim domination until after the
murder of the Caliph Othman: upon which the Armenian Prince Hama-
zasp Mamikonian once again brought Armenia back into the Byzantine
fold. 59 This was not the end of the problem, however. A rebellion of the
strategos of the Armeniakon district, the Armenian Sahpur (Saborios), took
place in 668 while Constans was in the West. Again, the issue was
resolved by the untimely death of the rebel, whereupon the troops of the
region reaffirmed their loyalty to the empire. But it is once more sympto-
matic of the sort of difficulties facing the government at this time in respect
ss For a summary of Byzantine-Armenian relations and the Arab attacks in the Caucasus
see Stratos. Byzantium in the Seventh Century, vol. Ill. pp. 19fT.: and for the attempt at
union and subsequent developments. ibid.. 26-31: Winkelmann, Die 6stlichen Kirchen.
pp. 129-30.
sy On these events see Stratos. Byzantium in the Seventh Century. vol. Ill. pp. 2 7-31: Kaegi.
Military Unrest. pp. 162-3.
The East Ronzan world: the politics of survival 63
fleet arrived off Constantinople and blockaded the city. Each summer for
the next four years the same fleet blockaded Constantinople, withdrawing
to shelter off Cyzicus for the winter season: and each year the defence held
firm. During the final naval battle the Byzantine fleet used its terror
weapon, mentioned in the sources for the first time, the deadly Greek fire.
Supposedly invented by the Syrian architect and mechanic Callinicus, who
had fled from his homeland to Constantinople, this seems to have consisted
essentially of crude oil, possibly with a few extra ingredients (various
inflammable and 'sticky' resins, for example) which when heated was
expelled through a siphon at enemy vessels. It was, in effect, a sort of
primitive napalm. The result was a major Byzantine victory. At the same
time, Byzantine land forces were able to surprise and defeat one of the
major Arab columns in Anatolia; and Mucawiya was forced to withdraw
his armies and ships and sue for peace. A thirty-year peace was signed, and
the caliph undertook to make a yearly payment of 3,000 gold pieces,
together with fifty Byzantine prisoners and fifty stallions. 62
The effects of this defeat were enormous. It signalled the end of Muca-
wiya's plans to take Constantinople and incorporate Riim into the cali-
phate. It immediately increased Byzantine prestige in the Balkans and the
West, so that both the khagan of the Avars (now confined effectively to the
plain of Hungary) and the princes and chieftains of the Balkan Slavs sent
ambassadors to Constantinople bearing gifts and recognising Byzantine
supremacy. 63 In the East, peace with the caliphate meant that the Byzan-
tines could now concentrate properly on their northern and western
fronts. At the same time, internal dissension within the caliphate after
Mucawiya's death in 680 and the accession of Yazid I meant the end, for
62 For the siege and the eventual Byzantine victory, see Lilie, Die byzantinische Reaktion.
pp. 76-82: Dolger, Regesten, no. 239: Stratos, Byzantium in the Seventh Century, vol. IV,
pp. 29-39: Ostrogorsky. Geschichte, pp. 103-4. On Greek fire see J.F. Haldon and
M. Byrne, 'A possible solution to the problem of Greek fire', BZ 70 (1977), 91-9.
63 Cf. Theophanes, 356.2sq.: Nicephorus, 33.6sq.
0 300 miles
F==T==~~~=-~
, ._:.: ·<::.::·,:~='" 400 kilometres
.~.... .·.
\,
.·:.:::.·.::·····
-~·.·
--Y"/ .
______, 7·rr·
..,
.•
'/./.
~ '.77,•
.'//..
.., :.....,
..•.......
•. ·• @. imperial territory c. 650-700
N
···:..'• .~. .....::. · .... ..=·
. .....
: ~ :. : . : Occupied by Arabs c. 700-720 JJfJ Regions constantly raided
'
. •. ·. and after
the time being, of the Arab threat. 64 The Anatolian provinces were given a
short time to recover from the economic and demographic devastation
they had suffered, while the empire was able to consolidate the administra-
tive and organisational changes that had taken place since the 640s.
The Bulgars
In the Balkans, however, the empire was soon faced by a new and equally
dangerous enemy. While a notional suzerainty was still exercised by the
Byzantines over much of the peninsula south of the Danube, this was
limited in real terms to some coastal and riverine settlements and fortresses
and certain littoral strips, particularly in Greece and the Peloponnese, but
also in Dalmatia. The extent inland of actual Byzantine authority remains
unclear, although the' subject is still hotly debated. Numerous attacks were
directed by the Slavs against Byzantine fortresses and towns, and in
particular on Thessaloniki, which continued throughout the century to
lead a precarious existence. It was besieged in 675-6 and 677; while Slav
pirates raided other Byzantine coastal lands in 678-9, for example. 65 The
number of punitive expeditions mounted by the emperors in the last third
of the seventh century suggests that imperial control can have been
neither very great nor at all secure. 66 The situation changed dramatically,
however, with the advent of the Bulgars. The khanate of old Great
Bulgaria, a confederation of Onogur-Bulgar clans, had already entered
into friendly relations with Byzantium in the first half of the seventh
century, as we have seen: and it was with Byzantine support that its ruler,
64 Lilie, Die byzantinische Reaktion, pp. 9 7ff. The question of the involvement of the Mardaites
in compelling the Arabs to treat with the Byzantines is also relevant. of course. These
mountain brigands - whether or not they were encouraged by official Byzantine policy -
were a real threat to the internal security of the Lebanon and north Syria: and it seems
that the Byzantines were able to use them as a further inducement for the caliphate to
come to terms. See Stratos, Byzantium in the Seventh Century, vol. IV, pp. 39ff.: Lilie, Die
byzantinische Reaktion, pp. 99, 101f. On the civil war in the caliphate, see G. Rotter, 'Die
Umayyaden und der zweite Biirgerkrieg (680-69 2 )'. Abhandlungen fiir die Kunde des
Morgenlandes, XXXXV, 3 (Wiesbaden 1982).
ns See Ditten, 'Zur Bedeutung der Einwanderung der Slawen', pp. 149f.: and P. Lemerle,
'Invasions et migrations dans les Balkans depuis la fin de l'epoque romaine jusqu'au VIne
siecle', RH 211 (1954). 265-308, see 301f.: Stratos, Byzantium in the Seventh Century.
vol. IV. pp. 63ff.
66 See the excellent discussion with literature of Ditten, 'Zur Bedeutung der Einwanderung
der Slawen', pp. 132-6 with 113-19. Note also Obolensky, The Byzantine Commonwealth,
p. 59: Stratos, Byzantium in the Seventh Century. vol. I. pp. 332fT.: Ostrogorsky. Geschichte.
pp. 87-8: and Lemerle, Les plus anciens recueils, 11. p. 128. Important gains were made. of
course. After the expedition of Constantine IV in 678 some degree of Byzantine control
seems to have been accepted by Slav tribes in the Thessaloniki region. The political events
of the period 682-4 and the Kouber/Mauros episode seems to confirm this. See Lemerle.
Les plus anciens recueils, 11. pp. 138-62 (and I. pp. 222-34 for the text).
The East Roman world: the politics of survival 67
Kovrat, threw off the Avar yoke. About the middle of the century this loose
amalgam was broken up by the arrival of the Chazars. Some of the Bulgars
were incorporated into the Chazar khanate: other groups fled, mostly
westwards. Among them was a group under the leadership of Asparuch,
one of the sons of Kovrat, who appeared north of the Danube delta in the
years after 670, -intending to settle in 'Byzantine' territory across the
Danube and to exploit the fertile pasturelands to the south. The Byzantines
certainly recognised no threat in the Bulgars' arrival: but they were
nevertheless unwilling to permit them to enter what was, in political
theory if not in actuality, Byzantine territory. In 680 a fleet was despatched
with troops to the mouth of the Danube, while a cavalry force marched up
from Thrace, intending to expel the Bulgars from their stronghold in the
delta. The Bulgars avoided open battle, but were able to take advantage of
a Byzantine withdrawal to take the imperial forces by surprise and inflict a
substantial defeat upon them. In 681 Constantine IV concluded a treaty
with Asparuch which recognised the Bulgar occupation of the territories
already held and agreed to an annual tribute or subsidy. 67 As a result of
this arrangement, the Byzantines lost control of a number of Slav groups
who had hitherto recognised Byzantine overlordship in the area about the
lower Danube from the Dniester to the Balkan range itself, including part of
the plain of Walachia, south Bessarabia, the Dobrudja, and the older
province of Moesia Inferior. The so-called 'seven tribes', the Severi, and
several other groups in these regions now came under Bulgar over-
lordship, and from this time the development of a Bulgaro-Slav state in the
north-eastern Balkan zone can be followed. The capital of this new
khanate was established at Pliska, strategically placed to control the
approaches to the Dobrudja, and the route from the Danube via Anchialus
to Constantinople itself. From this time on, the existence of an independent
and often hostile Bulgar power was to be the cause of some of the greatest
difficulties faced by the empire and was to have a decisive influence on the
course of Byzantine history. 68
the army and the senate, who already in 670 had extracted a confirmation
of his brothers' rights from Constantine: and in 681 troops from the
Anatolikon thema appeared at Chalcedon demanding that Constantine
respect the position and status of the two brothers. 'We believe in the
Trinity', Theophanes reports them to have said, 'and we wish to see three
crowned emperors.' 72 Constantine brooked no opposition. He deprived his
brothers of their titles and shortly afterwards had their noses slit. The
leaders of the Anatolikon mutineers were arrested and executed, and the
troops returned to their bases. Imperial authority had once again been
restored. It has been noted that Constantine's action was similar in its
effects to that of Constans against his brother Theodosius, a move tending
to reinforce the growing tradition of single rule passed on to an eldest son:
so that while sons of emperors are crowned as equals in theory, in practice
power was exercised only by the autokrator himself. This is an important
development, for it sees the gradual ending of the traditional 'college' of
emperors which had been the norm in the later sixth century and under
Heraclius. 7 3
72 For the confirmation of 670, Dolger, Regesten, no. 236. For the demands of the Anatolikon,
see Theophanes, 352.15 and see Stratos, Byzantium in the Seventh Century, vol. IV,
pp. 13 5-40, who argues that the brothers were in addition involved in a plot. together
with troops from the Anatolikon thema who had recently been defeated by the Bulgars, to
maintain state monotheletism.
73 See the comment of Ostrogorsky, Geschichte, pp. 107f.
74 See Lilie's account, Die byzantinische Reaktion, pp. lOOf.: and Stratos, Byzantium in the
Seventh Century, vol. IV, pp 165fT.
75 For a summary of the events, Stratos, Byzantium in the Seventh Century, vol. IV. pp. 55-62.
70 Byzantium in the seventh century
were in fact no great loss, since these territories were barely under the
caliph's authority at that time, owing to the civil war. In return, the
Mardaites, who had been a thorn in the flesh of the Muslim authorities in
north Syria and Lebanon, using their mountain fastnesses as a base from
which to plunder and raid the surrounding countryside, were transferred
to western Asia Minor. 77 The Byzantine general Leontius marched against
the forces ofibn az-Zubair, the common enemy now of both the caliph and
the emperor, in Armenia, Iberia and Caucasian Albania, devastating wide
areas and taking many prisoners. This occurred in 688/9.
The truce in the East, and the relatively favourable position of the
empire, meant that Justinian could turn his attention to the Balkans. In
68 7/8 troops were transferred from Anatolia to Thrace, and in the follow-
ing year Justinian himself led the expedition against the Slavs and Bulgars,
breaking through to Thessaloniki and subjecting a large number of Slavs
to Byzantine rule. The real situation in the Balkans is reflected in the fact
that the emperor had to fight his way through from Thrace to Macedonia.
Most significant for the empire was the transfer of large numbers of Slavs
to Asia Minor, in particular to Bithynia and Cappadocia, where they seem
to have been eventually drafted into the provincial armies, as a number of
lead seals of the officials who dealt with them demonstrate. 78 Justinian also
undertook the transfer of a section of the population of Cyprus to the area
of Cyzicus, hard-hit by the Arab occupation of 674-8 -as well as of the
Mardaites, mentioned already, to the Peloponnese, parts of the south-west
coastal region of Asia Minor, the island of Cephallenia and the region
around the important port of Nicopolis in Epirus. 79
The transfer of the Cypriots seems to have been a breach of the agree-
ment whereby the island was to remain neutral. although it is unclear as
77 Lilie, Die byzantinische Reaktion, pp. 102-8: Stratos, Byzantium in the Seventh Century, vol.
V. pp. 190'.: R.J.H. Jenkins, 'Cyprus between Byzantium and Islam, A.D. 688-965', in
Studies Presented to D.M. Robinson (St Louis 1953), pp.l006-14. see 1006ff.: C.Mango.
'Chypre. carrefour du monde byzantin'. XV' Congres International d'Etudes Byzantines.
Rapports et co-rapports V. 5 (Athens 19 76 ). pp. 3-13. see 4fT.
78 See Theophanes, 364 and Ostrogorsky, Geschichte. p. 109. notes 2 and 3: Lilie, Die
byzantinische Reaktion. pp. 237fT.: Ditten, 'Zur Bedeutung der Einwanderung der Slawen'.
pp. 152f.: Charanis. 'The Transfer of Population', 143. See also Ai. Christophilopoulou.
Bv(avrtviJ ·!UTopia. vol. 11. 610-867 (Athens 1981). pp. 365f.. and esp. H. Kopstein,
·zum Bedeutungswandel von <TXAa~oc;/sclavus'. BF 7 ( 1979). 6 7-88: the fact that Byzan-
tine seals refer to the Slav settlers as prisoners of war/slaves may lie behind the develop-
ment of the equivalent Slav - slave. See chapter 6 below.
79 See Stratos, Byzantium in the Seventh Century, vol. V, pp. 59f.: Lilie, Die byzantinische
Reaktion, p. 105f.: Ditten. ·zur Bedeutung der Einwanderung der Slawen'. p.156: Ostro-
gorsky. Geschichte. p. 110: Charanis. 'The Transfer of Population', 143-4. The Cypriots in
fact returned to their island shortly after (see Theophanes, 365: Michael Syr.. vol. 11. 470)
and their settlement. Justinianoupolis (see Mansi XI. 961 ), was abandoned. Justinian is
also reported to have settled 'Scythians' in east Macedonia in the Strymon region: cf.
Constantine Porphyrogenitus, De Thematibus, 88f.
72 Byzantium in the seventh century
to whether the caliph took it as a serious cause of offence. In 692/3,
however, Justinian decided to break the truce and to attack the Arab forces
in Iraq, newly pacified by c Abd al-Malik, and therefore a weak link in the
Arab defences. c Abd al-Malik had to go on to the offensive, but as a result of
the mass desertion of the recently drafted Slav troops, the Byzantine forces
were soundly defeated. A second Byzantine attack in the following year
was also thrown back. The immediate result was the submission of the
Armenian princes once again to Muslim overlordship and the beginning of
a new series of regular raids into Anatolia, which had barely begun to
recover from the previous forty years of devastation. Justinian's desire for
military glory, and his foolhardiness, did not have by any means a
satisfactory outcome for the empire. 80
According to Theophanes, Justinian had the remaining Slavs and their
families massacred in revenge for the betrayal, although this seems to be a
later and not very reliable accretion to the account. What is known is that
the Arabs settled the deserters in Syria, where they entered Arab service
and proved extremely valuable owing to their knowledge of some of the
localities that formed targets for the yearly Muslim raids. 81 Justinian's
policy of transferring large numbers of Slavs to Asia Minor to repopulate
devastated areas figures large in the historiography of the seventh century.
Its importance in revitalising or in maintaining the economy of consider-
able areas of agriculturally valuable land must certainly have been great.
The policy was in itself not new. Already during the reign of Justinian I
such transfers of population had occurred. Under Maurice, Armenians
were transferred to Thrace. Goths and Vandals had been likewise settled in
Anatolia during the later fourth and fifth centuries: while in the eighth and
ninth centuries the policy was continued by both Constantine V, for
example, and Basil I, among others. 82 Already by the reign of Justinian 11
the system of military districts, or themata, under their generals, or strate-
goi, seems to have become established: and there is no reason to doubt that
the resettlement of Slavs in, for example, Bithynia, was designed also to
8o See Lilie, Die byzantinische Reaktion, pp. 109fT.; Stratos, Byzantium in the Seventh Century,
vol. V, pp. 3~9. and see pp. 24-27 on Armenia. For a general survey of the role of
Armenia between Byzantium and Islam in the seventh century see P. Charanis, 'The
Armenians in the Byzantine empire', BS 22 ( 1961 ), 196-240: H. Manandean, 'Les
Invasions arabes en Armenie (notes chronologiques)', B 18 (1946-8). 163-95; and
J. Laurent, L'Armenie entre Byzance et l'lslam depuis la conquete arabe jusqu'en 886 (Paris
1919).
st Theophanes, 366; Lilie. Die byzantinische Reaktion. p. 111 note 22: Ditten. 'Zur Bedeutung
der Einwanderung der Slawen', p. 153.
82 See esp. Ditten, 'Zur Bedeutung der Einwanderung der Slawen,' pp.ISS-7, and 'Slawen
im byzantinischen Heer von Justinian I. bis Justinian U.', in H. Kopstein and F. Winkel-
mann, eds., Studien zum 7. ]ahrhundert in Byzanz, pp. 77-91.
The East Roman world: the politics of survival 73
boost the available manpower for these locally raised forces. I will discuss
this In greater detail in the next chapters.
equality of the sees of Rome and Constantinople in all matters except the
date of their establishment, and having precedence over the sees of Alexan-
dria, Antioch and Jerusalem. 86
The papacy, of course, rejected the canons of the council as not ecumeni-
cal and rejected them in their entirety. Justinian, perhaps thinking of his
grandfather Constans and Pope Martin, ordered the protospatharios Zacha-
rias to Rome, to arrest the pope and return with him to Constantinople. But
the troops of Rome, as well as those of Ravenna, opposed this, and indeed
the imperial officer escaped the Roman mob only through the good offices
of the pope himself. 87 Justinian was unable to respond to this opposition
and the humiliation he had suffered: for shortly afterwards, towards the
end of 695, a coup in the city deprived him of his throne. His unpopular
and harsh fiscal policies, put into practice by the generallogothete Theodo-
tus and the sacellarius Stephen, had already made him an unpopular ruler.
He seems also to have paid little heed to the will or the authority of the
senate and the leading officers of state, while his policies in general seem to
have won him the hostility of the provinces. In the coup, the Blue deme
(one of the two chief hippodrome supporters' organisations) acclaimed
Leontius, the recently appointed general of the thema of Hellas, as emperor
and, with the assistance of elements of the senate, together with the
connivance of the city and palatine troops, they were able to seize Justinian
and his hated subordinates. Theodotus and Stephen were executed: Justi-
nian had his nose and tongue slit, and was banished to Cherson, where
some forty years earlier his grandfather had sent the hapless Martin. 88
Justinian's successors
The Emperor Leontius ruled for just three years and presided over the final
extinction of Byzantine power in Africa. Little is known of his policies, but
he seems to have been a popular ruler. 89 In 697 he despatched elements of
the fleet - chiefly made up of units of the Kibyrrhaiotai - to retake
86 See L. Brehier, in Fliche and Martin. eds .. Histoire de l'eglise, V. pp. 194fT.: the canons:
Mansi XI. 921-1005. For a brief summary, Winkelmann. Die 6stlichen Kirchen,
pp. 112-13. On the purpose of the council, in particular the implicit intention of reinfor-
cing Constantinopolitan as opposed to both Roman and other practice, see V. Laurent.
'L'CEuvre canonique du Concile in Trullo (691-69 2 ), source prima ire du droit de l' eglise
orientate', REB 23 (1965), 7-41. see lOfT.'
87 See F. Gorres, 'Justinian 11. und das romische Papsttum', BZ 17 (1908). 432-54. see
440fT.: Stratos, Byzantium in the Seventh Century, vol. V. p. 53-6: Guillou. Regionalisme,
pp. 209-11: Herrin, Formation of Christendom, 282-7.
88 See Ostrogorsky, Geschichte, pp. 117f.: Stratos, Byzantium in the Seventh Century. vol. V,
pp. 66-74 (although the account is in parts somewhat eccentric): and Kaegi. Military
Unrest, pp. 186fT.
89 Grierson, DOC, vol. II. p. 610: J.8. Bury, The Later Roman Empire from Areadius to Ire ne
( 395-800), 2 vols. (London and New York 1889), vol. 11. pp. 352f.
The East Ron1an world: the politics of survival 75
Carthage, under the command of the patrikios John. The city and some
neighbour ing forts were retaken, but the garrisons placed in them were
soon driven out again in a second Arab attack, and in 698 the city fell a
second time, never to be retaken. While waiting in Crete for reinforce-
ments, and new orders, however, John was deposed by the soldiers of the
Kibyrrhaiot fleet, who proclaimed their own command er, the drouggarios
Apsimar, emperor. The fleet sailed to Constantinople and landed at the port
of Sykai on the Golden Horn. Although the city was ravaged by the plague
at that time, Leontius held out for some months before some of the garrison
units were persuaded to open the gates to soldiers of the besieging forces.
After a short period of plunderin g and disorder, Apsimar brought his
troops under control: Leontius was mutilated to disqualify him from the
imperial position, and banished to the monastery of Psamathio n near the
Xerolophus district of Constantinople. Apsimar altered his name to Tiber-
ius, a move designed to give him some legitimacy and to associate him
with the house of Heraclius. 90 It is worth noting that the demes or factions
of the Blues and the Greens seem to have played a role in these political
changes, for Leontius was supported (it would seem) by the Blues, Tiberius
Apsimar by the Greens. But too much has been made of these affiliations
90 On these events see Theophanes . 3 70.2 7sq. and Nicephorus. 39f. Cf. Grierson, DOC. vol.
11, p. 624: Stratos. Byzantium in the Seventh Century. vol. V, pp. 85f.; Kaegi, Military
Unrest, pp. 188f. For Carthage, see Brett. 'The Arab Conquest and the Rise of Islam in N.
Africa', pp. 505fT.; Diehl. L'Afrique byzantine, pp. 582fT.
76 Byzantium in the seventh century
and involvements and, while it is certain that particular emperors
favoured a particular team and therefore its supporters' club, and that the
hostilities and rivalries that might emerge from such explicit commitments
to the fortunes of a given hippodrome team spilled over into the street and
into the political life of the city and the court, there are few grounds for
thinking that the hippodrome factions represented clear social class divi-
sions, still less religious-doctrinal orientations. Undoubtedly, such alliances
were formed, but these were determined by temporary and fluid conjunc-
tures, rather than by the structure of social relations of production as
such. 91
Tiberius Apsimar reigned from 698 until 705. His reign saw the conti-
nuation of Arab incursions into Asia Minor and a continuous loss of
frontier districts to Muslim forces. No attempt was made to reconquer the
lost North African provinces: in Asia Minor Tiberius' brother Heraclius
was given command of the main thematic cavalry forces and waged a
moderately successful campaign, although he was unable to alter the basic
situation in any fundamental way. Armenia played a significant role
throughout, rebelling in 703 and calling in Arab assistance: but in 704
rebelling again, against the Arabs, calling on Roman support in the
struggle. Tiberius may also have undertaken action in the south Balkans
against various Slav peoples, although little is known of this. 92 He cer-
tainly presided over the resettling in Cyprus of a number of those who had
been removed to the Cyzicus region some years earlier. It was he, too, who
put the sea-walls of Constantinople back into good repair, for they had
apparently been allowed to collapse and decay. 93
JUSTINIAN II AGAIN
91 See A. Cameron, Circus Factions: Blues and Greens at Rome and Constantinople (Oxford
1976), pp. 126fT., 297fT., and see 267-8; Ostrogorsky, Geschichte, pp. 117f.
92 Lilie, Die byzantinische Reaktion, pp. 112fT.
93 A. Guilland, Etudes de topographie de Constantinople byzantine, 2 vols. (Berlin and Amster-
dam 1969), pp. 263f.
The East Roman world: the politics of survival 77
and the Chazar khagan, wishing not to endanger the long-standing alli-
ance between the two powers, agreed. But Justinian was once again able to
forestall his enemies, and fled. this time to the Bulgar Khan Tervel.
Accompanied by a considerable Bulgar and Slav army, Justinian arrived in
the autumn of 705 before the land walls of Constantinople. The defences
were too strong for an assault, but Justinian and a few supporters crept in
through one of the ducts of the aqueduct. Tiberius and his supporters,
surprised, fled in panic, and within a few hours Justinian had been able -
with the help of a not inconsiderable faction which favoured his return- to
re-establish himself. It is interesting to recall that the young Leo, later Leo
Ill, was among Justinian's most enthusiastic supporters. In order to cement
his authority, both Leontius and Tiberius, who had not been able to escape,
were publicly executed. 94 Justinian was then able to bring his wife from
Chazaria, together with his young son Tiberius, who was crowned eo-
emperor.
In return for his assistance, meanwhile, Tervel received the title of
Caesar and the salutations of the populace of Constantinople. Those who
had opposed Justinian, however, were ruthlessly executed or otherwise
punished, including the patriarch Callinicus, who had crowned Leontius in
695: Justinian had his eyes put out. 95 Unfortunately for the empire, these
were only the opening stages of a reign of terror and revenge, in which
Justinian appears to have concentrated most of his resources and attention
in avenging himself on those whom he perceived to be his enemies. But he
was able to restore good relations with the papacy, and in 710/11 Pope
Constantine visited Constantinople, where a compromise arrangement
was reached, although no written accord was drawn up. 96 Justinian has
been generally assumed to be responsible for despatching a punitive
expedition against Ravenna at this time, to avenge the hostile attitude of
the city at the time of his overthrow in 69 5; in fact, it seems that there had
been some attempt at a coup against Pope Constantine, which involved
Felix, the archbishop of Ravenna and a number of others in both Rome
and Ravenna. Upon hearing that the exarch had met with Constantine at
Naples (where he was en route for Constantinople) late in 710, and had had
those involved in the plot at Rome arrested and punished, the Ravenna
plotters rebelled openly, and were able to kill the exarch upon his return to
the city. Justinian's naval expedition, despatched from the local forces
based in Sicily, was in fact intended to deal with this situation, and it was
94 See Ostrogorsky. Geschichte, p. 119; Stratos, Byzantium in the Seventh Century, vol. V,
pp. 103-29. See the useful account of I. Oujcev, 'Le Triomphe de l'empereur Justinien II en
705', in Bv(avTtov. "AcptiptUJLa O'TOv i1v8pia N. ~TpaTo, 2 vols. (Athens 1986), vol. I.
pp. 83-91.
95 Nicephorus, 42: Theophanes, 3 75. See Ostrogorsky. Geschichte, p. 120.
96 See Liber Pontificalis, I. 389; cf. Paul the Deacon VI. 31.
78 Byzantium in the seventh century
after his accession which condemned the acts of the sixth ecumenical
council of 680, which had rejected monotheletism. and officially reintro-
duced the doctrine of the single will. The representation of the sixth council
in the imperial palace, as well as a commemorative inscription on the
Milion gate of the palace, were removed and destroyed. In place of the
inscription, portraits of the emperor and the patriarch Sergius
appeared. 102 Philippicus was of Armenian background, and the monophy-
sitism which he may well have found familiar is surely behind this move. It
seems to have been not unpopular among the clergy, including both the
later patriarch Germanus and the theologian and homilist Andrew of
Crete. 103 The new policy met with stiff opposition in Rome, of course,
especially in view of the recent entente between Justinian and Pope
Constantine. The latter now returned Philippicus' portrait, which had been
sent to Rome by the new emperor, and rejected his monothelete declaration
of orthodoxy. His name was excluded both from the prayers of the Church
and from the date of documents. And as an added gesture of defiance and
10 2 Mansl, XII, 1920-E: Ricdinger, 899.10ff.: see A. Grabar, L'Icorroclas11re byzantln: dossier
arcl1eologlque (Paris 196 7), pp. 48f.
103 Beck, Klrche. pp. 4 74, 500. For Andrew see S. Vailhe, 'Saint Andre de Crete', EO 5
(1902), 378-87, based on the earliest extant life, dating probably to the eighth century.
See Papadopoulos-Kerameus, A11alekta V, 169-79: and I. Sevcenko, 'Hagiography of the
Iconoclast Period', 127 and note iOSb.
80 Byzantium in the seventh century
self-assertion, the pope had pictures of all six ecumenical councils put up in
St Peter's. 104 Whatever the success of Phlllpplcus' new policy among the
clergy, however, he seems not to have commanded much military support.
Throughout the second reign of Justinian, the Balkan provinces had
been at peace, with the exception of occasional raids, a peace due primarily
to Justinian's agreement with Khan Tervel. In Anatolia, in contrast, Arab
raids continued on a yearly basis. In 707/8 the important fortress town of
Tyana fell after a major Byzantine force was defeated. In 711 the frontier
town of Sisium was finally abandoned by its citizens, who could no longer
withstand the constant harassment. At the same time it seems that the
Byzantines were gradually losing their hold in Cilicla, fortress by fortress,
in spite of the occasional counter-attack or the naval expedition against
Damietta in 709. The situation continued to deteriorate under Phllipplcus.
In 712 Amasia and Misthia fell, along with other forts around Melitene:
and in 713 Antloch in Pisidla was taken. The long-term effects of this
constant raiding was, it has been suggested, effectively to empty the
frontier areas of population, as the local peasantry and townspeople were
either killed, carried ofT into slavery or driven to seek refuge in areas far
from the conflict zone. 105 In the Balkans, Justinian's defeat and deposition
gave Khan Tervel a pretext for invasion to avenge his friend and ally, and
his forces ravaged Thrace up to the walls of the city itself. When Phillpplcus
began to organise his troops to oppose these attacks, however, a mutiny
broke out among the Opsikion troops. On 3 June 713 he was deposed and
blinded, and succeeded by the protoasekretis Artemius, a palatine clerical
official, who became emperor with the name Anastasius 11.
Anastasius' first act was the restoration of Chalcedonian orthodoxy,
rejection of monotheletism and the rehabilitation of the sixth council. He
was an active emperor who took immediate measures to defend Con-
stantinople against an imminent Arab attack. The walls of the city were
repaired, and a fleet was commissioned, In an effort to attack the Arab
naval forces in their ports and pre-empt the siege. 106 Unfortunately, the
Opslkion division mutinied once more while on Rhodes, where the expedi-
tion was assembling, crossed back to the mainland and, together with the
corps known as the Gothograeci, probably the optlrnates of an earlier
period, 107 ac~lalmed as emperor an unknown fiscal official named Theo-
dosius. The latter sensibly tried to run away, but was apprehended and
forced to accept the dubious honours bestowed upon him. The provincial
1°8 Theophanes, 385.18sq.: Nicephorus, 51.2sq.; Kaegi. Military Unrest. pp.l92f.: G.V.
Sumner, 'Philippicus. Anastasius II and Theodosius Ill', GRBS 17 (1976). 291fT.
Io9 See Kaegi, Military Unrest. pp. 192-4.
1 1° See Obolensky, The Byzantine Commonwealth, pp. 65f.
111 SeeR. Guilland. 'L'Expedition de Maslama contre Constantinople (717-718)'. in Etudes
byzantines (Paris 1959), pp. 109-33, see 114.
The East Roman world: the politics of survival 83
112 For the contemporary importance of this corps, see Haldon, Byzantine Praetorians,
pp. 18211.
111 See Theophanes. 386-97 for Leo's early career: and for his 'Caucasian adventure' under
Justinian II. see B. Martin-Hisard. 'La domination byzantine sur le littoral oriental du Pont
Euxin (milieu du VIr~-vme siecles)'. Byzantinobulgarica 7 (1981) 141-54.
84 Byzantium in the seventh century
the defeat of this expedition marks an important moment in Byzantine-
Arab relations. 114
In spite of this major set-back, Arab attacks all along the border and well
into the very deep 'frontier' zone continued throughout Leo's reign. From
720 until his death in 741 there were yearly attacks, in which the border
areas were repeatedly devastated, fortresses and settlements taken, retaken
and lost again, with both sides suffering regular losses. Only in 740 were
the Byzantines able to lure Arab forces on to unfavourable terrain and win
a major victory near Acroinum. 115 Only one of three Arab columns was
actually destroyed, however, and the victory was perhaps more significant
as a shock to Muslim morale and as a heartening triumph for the belea-
guered Byzantines. Arab raids went on until 744, but the civil wars which
led to the overthrow of the Umayyads and the installation of Abbasid rule,
along with the transfer of the centre of power to Baghdad, soon interrupted
the regularity and reduced the devastating nature of the attacks: in
addition to which Leo's son and successor, Constantine V, went over to the
offensive in the 7 50s, and the nature of the warfare between the two sides
began, slowly but surely, to change both in character and in its effects. 116
In the north, meanwhile, Leo cemented the friendly relations enjoyed by
the empire with the Chazars through the marriage of his son Constantine
to a daughter of the Chazar khagan in 7 3 3: 117 while in the Balkans, as a
result of the arrangement of 716, peace reigned. Two rebellions at the
beginning of his reign were quickly crushed. In 717/18 Sergius, the
strategos of Sicily, rebelled before news of the successful outcome of the
siege of Constantinople had reached him and set up a rival emperor by the
name of Tiberius. Upon receiving news of Leo's victory, along with the
imperial letters proclaiming his accession, the soldiers handed the rebels
over to the emperor's envoy, the chartoularios Paul and his troops. 118 In
719 a second coup was foiled. The magistros Nicetas Xylinites, together
with the exiled ex-emperor Anastasius and with assistance from the Bulgar
Khan Tervel, attempted to dethrone Leo. The plotters inside Constantinople
114 For accounts of the siege, see Theophanes, 395-8, 399; Nicephorus, 53-4; and the
discussion ofLilie, Die byzantinische Reaktion, pp. 125-33; E.W. Brooks, 'The campaign of
716-718 from Arabic Sources', ]HS 19 (1899), 19-31.
11 s See Theophanes. 411: Lilie, Die byzantinische Reaktion, pp. 15 2-3 with literature and
sources.
116 The best survey of these wars, their nature and their effects is to be found in Lilie, Die
byzantinische Reaktion, pp. 144-55, with discussion at pp. 155-62. For the period from
750, see ibid., pp. 162fT.
11 7 Vasiliev, The Goths in the Crimea, p. 8 7. 1 1 8 Theophanes, 3 9 8-9.
The East Roman world: the politics of survival 85
were unable to rally the support of the troops and officers manning the
walls: while Tervel's soldiers seem to have abandoned Anastasius at the
last minute, handing him over to Leo. All the plotters were executed. 119
Leo's quick and firm handling of these revolts enabled him to secure his
position and at the same time dissuade others from repeating the mistakes
of Sergius and Anastasius.
Leo's reign is probably best known for two great events: the introduction
of an official imperial policy of iconoclasm and the issue of the Ecloga. The
latter has been traditionally dated to 726: in fact, it appears that it dates to
the end of his reign, to the year 741. 120 It represents in essence a revised
and very much abridged version of the Justinianic codification, with
particular emphasis on family, property and inheritance, and penal law. Its
practical intention was to provide the administrators with a handbook and
reference work, although it hardly replaced the older codifications. But
substantial changes were also introduced, changes which reflect in par-
ticular the powerful influence of canon law, especially with regard to
marriage and the power of the husband over wife and children: there were
also changes in the system and nature of punishment: while capital
punishment and fines dominate the Justinianic codes, the Ecloga, on the
pattern of the Old Testament, introduces a system of corporal mutilations -
slitting of the nose, tongue and so on - which had become increasingly
common in the course of Byzantine history during the seventh century, but
which were quite foreign to Roman legal tradition. Such changes may well
be based on the formal incorporation into the legal framework of the state
of elements of local customary law.l21
11 9 See Theophanes, 400.18sq.; Nicephorus, 55.19sq. and see Kaegi, Military Unrest,
pp. 212f.
12 ° For the older view see V. Grumel, 'La Date de l'Eclogue des lsauriens: l'annee et le jour',
REB 21 (1963), 272-4: D.Simon, 'Zur Ehegesetzgebung der Isaurier', FM I (1976),
4(}-3; P.E. Pieler, Byzantinische Rechtsliteratur, p. 438 and notes 97fT. For the year 741
see now Ecloga (ed. Burgmann), pp.1(}-12 with literature.
121 Ecloga (ed. Burgmann), pp. 4-7: T.E. Gregory, 'The Ekloga of Leo Ill and the concept of
Philanthropia', Byzantina 7 (1975), 271-5.
86 Byzantium in the seventh century
But in spite of its later partial rejection or condemnation by anti-
iconoclastic polemicists, the Ecloga exercised an important influence on
the development of Byzantine and Eastern medieval legal theory, and
marks an important stage in the history of Byzantine law. 122 It marks
equally the determination of Leo himself and his son Constantine, in whose
joint names it was promulgated, to come to grips with the problems of
Byzantine society at an official level and to address the changes which had
taken place in both social and property relations, as well as in ideas and
morality since the sixth century. The prologue to the work therefore
stresses both the need to preserve the law as the basis of God's will on
earth, of human society, and of imperial competence and success. as well
as the pressing need to make it clearer and more easily understood and
accessible to the judicial authorities. Corruption and bribery were to be
combated, hence the legal representatives of the state's justice are to be
properly salaried. And interestingly, the emperors note that the law has
been frequently difficult of access and comprehension among lawyers and
judges far from Constantinople - a reflection of the difficult conditions, bad
communications, and disruption of urb·an life during the previous one
hundred or so years.t23
The introduction by Leo of an official policy of iconoclasm has given rise
to a debate among modern historians, as well as among Leo's and Con-
stantine's contemporaries, of a very different nature. The background to the
whole debate lies already in the later sixth and seventh centuries, as the cult
of relics and the associated use of holy images became more and more
prominent, and as both icons and relics were brought more and more cen-
trally into the arena as the focus of popular devotion, both publicly and
privately, as channels of direct access to the heavenly realm. At the same
time, both as a direct result of the collapse of the empire and the massive ter-
ritorial losses of the period up to the 660s - in which the 'failure' of the
emperors and the state were clearly implicated, the more so in view of the
'heretical' policies of the monothelete Emperor Constans and the patriarchs
associated with him and with Heraclius - imperial authority itself came
under pressure as political failure followed political failure. The development
in the 'cult' of icons worked together with the events of the political and eco-
nomic world to encourage a serious questioning of the authority and abili-
ties of individual emperors. Thus the armies of the provinces were encour-
aged to take up arms in favour of one or another candidate for the throne
who it was felt would best answer their needs and those of the state. The
attempt of Philippicus Bardanes - with the blessing of certain leading
Churchmen- to reintroduce monotheletism is an interesting and important
illustration of the perceived need both to reassert imperial and official
Ill See the comments of Ostrogorsky. Gescllichte. p. 132 with literature.
t11 See Ecloga (ed. Burgmann). 'Prooimion'. 11.2lsq.
The East Roman world: the politics of survival 87
Church authority, and at the same time unify the disparate religious-ideo-
logical elements within the empire. Monotheletism harked back to the expla-
nations of an earlier epoch. Iconoclasm identified a different source of the
problem. 124
Iconoclastic, or anti-image, sentiment was, of course, nothing new in
Christian thought. The debate on the nature of icons had long been part of
Christian doctrinal discussion and argument, although no developed
theory of icons yet existed. Iconoclastic groups may have existed in seventh-
century Anatolia: while the crucial question as to whether icons should be
seen as graven images or as representations through which, rather than to
which, prayer could be directed, had never been formally confronted by the
Church. 125
During the 720s, however. an iconoclastic perspective seems to have been
espoused by some provincial churchmen, the best known of whom -
Constantine, the bishop of Nacolea- was later regarded as the founder of
Byzantine iconoclasm and appropriately reviled by the iconophile camp.
Leo Ill was himself originally from Syria: but whatever contemporary or
later iconophile commentators claimed, the extent to which Leo was
influenced by either Islamic or monophysite thinking (the caliphs cumar 11
(717-20) and Yazid 11 (720-4) had both issued orders condemning the use
and production of images representing living beings as idolatrous) 126 or by
Jewish theology 127 must remain unclear. What is probable is that Leo
seems genuinely to have regarded the iconoclastic case as a strong one and
believed that it was 'idolatry' and the sins of the Chosen People - the
Romans - which had brought about their downfall and, as an integral
causal element in that downfall, the decline in, and contempt for imperial
124 See Haldon, 'Some remarks', esp. 176-84 and 'Ideology and social change', 161fT.•
where these developments are discussed in greater detail. See also P. Brown, •A Dark-Age
crisis: aspects of the iconoclastic controversy', BHR 88 (1973), 1-34: B. Kitzinger, 'The
cult of images in the age before iconoclasm', DOP 8 (1954), 85-150. For a recent survey
of the origins and cause of official iconoclasm, see Herrin, Fort11ation of Cltrlstendonr,
pp. 319ff.. 325-43. See esp. M.-R Auzepy, L'evolution de l'attitude face au miracle a
Byzance (vne-IXe siecle)', in Miracles, prodiges et merveilles au Moyen Age (Paris 1995).
31-46. and J.F. Haldon. 'The Miracles of Artemios and Contemporary Attitudes: Context
and Significance'. in The Miracles of Saint Artemios: Translation. Commentary and Antdysis, by
J. Nesbit. V. Crysafulli (Leiden-NewYork-Koln 1997), 33-73.
125 See Kitzlnger, •The cult of images before Iconoclasm', 129ff.: S. Der Nersessian, ·une
apologle des images du septleme slecle', B 17 (1944/5), 58fT.: N.H. Baynes, 'The lcons
before iconoclasm', Harvard Theol. Review 44 ( 19 51), 9 3ff.: Haldon, 'Some remarks',
182, note 64.
126 See .esp. Grabar, L'Iconoclasrne, pp. 103f.; D. Stein, Der Begi11n des byzantiniscllen Bil-
derstreites und seine Bntwicklu11g bls in die 40er ]aiJre des 8. ]ahrlu11rderts (Miscellanea
Byzantina Monacensia XXV. Munich 1980), pp. 139-41 with literature.
12 7 See J. Starr, The Jews In the Byzantine Ernplre, 641-1204 (Athens 1939), esp. on Leo's
persecutions, and A. Sharf, Byzantine ]ewry,frotn ]ustlnla11 to thefourtlr Crusade (New York
1971): cf. Theophanes, 401.22. For monophysitism, which seems to have played little or
no role in the affair, seeS. Brock, 'Iconoclasm and the monophysltes', in A.A.M. Bryer
and J. Herrin. eds., lconoclastn: Papers given at tl1e ninth Spring Sytnposirllll of Byzantille
Studies. University of Birmingham, March 1975 (Birmingham 1977), pp. 53-7.
88 Byzantium in the seventh century
authority which seemed so clear to contemporaries. 128 The two were
bound up closely together.
In 726, a dramatic earthquake and volcanic eruption occurred on the
islands of Thera and Therasia, an event which Leo seems to have taken as
a sign of God's anger and as a direct signal for him to take action. As an
immediate result, he appears to have had an icon of Christ on the Chalke
gate of the palace removed and replaced with a cross, a reflection of his
belief that the holy cross and the wood of the cross represented symbols of
salvation for emperor and people, whereas icons, being made by human
hands, were transient symbols of human frailty. But Leo's action was also
a reflection of his personal response to the situation, and it does not begin
any official persecution of icons at this time.
At about this time, the bishop Constantine of Nacolea had been preach-
ing that icons should not be the objects of proskynesis or worship, since this
was idolatrous. As a result of this activity, he had been disciplined by his
superiors and the patriarch Germanus. Leo may have been aware of these
debates and seems eventually to have decided that the iconoclastic viewpoint
- given the historical background to his own reign and those of his prede-
cessors, together with the eruption on the islands - had greater validity. The
public debate, therefore, began only in 72 6. But the context for this debate, and
the reasons for Leo's eventually adopting an iconoclastic position, had a
longer history. After some four years of discussion, in which a split within
the clergy between pro- and anti-icon parties developed. Leo made a first
public move. putting Germanus in 730 in a position where he was forced
either to accept an iconoclastic declaration of faith or to resign. He chose
the latter and was replaced as patriarch by Anastaslus. his former syg-
kellos. Contrary to generally received opinion, however, there seems to
have been no official edict issued prohibiting the use of icons. Instead,
Anastasius issued an iconoclastic declaration of faith in which the cross
was presented as the true symbol of Christ's passion and the salvation of
humanity, whereas icons were to be cast out. As these developments took
place, a rebellion of the Helladic troops under their strategos, who set up a
pretender to the throne, had occurred: but it was decisively defeated in a naval
engagement by the imperial fleet near Constantinople in April 72 7. Again,
contrary to the often accepted view that the rebellion was an iconophile
response to Leo's policies, this was not the case. 129 In the first place, Leo
had as yet made no official pronouncement: in the second place, the
rebellion seems to fit well into the general pattern of coups and revolts
which had plagued the empire. It was the third in Leo's reign itself, and
although lt failed, it illustrates the continuing state of internal insecurity
132 The council of 7 69 in Rome (see Mansi xii. 713-2 2) used the acts of 7 31 (which otherwise
do not survive) for the establishment of its own arguments: see the brief account in Herrin,
Formation of Christendom. p. 348 and n. 15. See LP416.5-15. Stein, Bilderstreit, p. 217
n. 9.8. discusses the other surviving fragments of this synod and show,that only the most
general condemnation was issued. For the lack of evidence for a condemation by the patri-
arch John of Jerusalem and the eastern bishops (Theoph., 408.29-3i), and the possible
confusion which may have led Theophanes to incorporate this story. see Stein, BUderstrtit,
2llff. and M.-R Auzepy, 'L'Adversus Constantinum Caballinum et Jean de Jerusalem', BS
56 (1995) 323-38 (.ITBtPANOX. Studitl byZilntina ac slavica Vladimiro Vavrinek ad annum
semgesimum quintum dtdicatll). In respect of the transfer of Calabria. Dlyricum, etc.• there
are no references to this in the contemporary record: letters of Hadrian I (772-95) and
Nicholas I (858-67) refer to the events: the first reference, in a letter of Pope Hadrian I to
Charles the Great. written between 787 and 794. offers no specific chronology for the
transfer (see MGH Bp. V. Bpist. KllroL Atvi ill. 57.Sff.). and L.M. Hartmann, Geschichtt
Itali.ens fm Mlttelalter, U. 2, pp. 112-14: M. V. Anastos, •The Transfer of Wyricum, Calabria
and Sicily to the Jurisdiction of the Patriarchate of Constantinople', SBN 9 ( 19 57) 14-31.
But for a different interpretation. see D.H. Miller, 'Byzantine-Papal relations during the
Pontificate of Paul I: Confirmation and Completion of the Roman Revolution of the Eighth
Century', BZ 68 (19 7 5) 4 7-62: and Darrouzes. Notit.lat, p. 249 for the statement that these
sees were transferred •because the Pope was in the hands of the Heathen' (i.e. the Franks).
Whlle this statement also reflected contemporary political concerns in respect of
Byzantine-Frankish relations (see Schreiner, ·Bilderstreit', 376 n. 291) the fact that no
contemporary Byzantine or western source refers to this major event for the 7 30s is
significant See V. Grumel •L' annexion de l'Dlyricum oriental, de la Sicile et de la Calabre au
patriarcat de Constantinople', &chtrches des Sciences ReUgieuses 40 (1951-52) 191-200
(who places the event in the years 7 52-7 57).
The East Roman world: the politics of survival 91
Constantinopolitan Church and the imperial government. On ideological
grounds alone, this would not be permitted.
Leo Ill died on 18 June 741. 133 His son and successor Constantine soon
found himself fighting a desperate struggle for survival with his brother-in-
law Artavasdus, 134 and although the eventual outcome was a complete
victory for Constantine, the civil war demonstrated still that the difficulties
faced by the emperors in Constantinople both ideologically and in terms of
the practical distribution of power to the provincial strategoi were by no
means resolved by Leo's policies, his military successes, or his reaffir-
mation and confirmation of his personal imperial authority. Leo's greatest
achievement lies in the very fact of his success in defeating his rivals and in
maintaining his authority over some twenty-three years, during which the
external and internal problems he had to deal with were hardly less
pressing than those which faced his predecessors. But it should be recalled
in the end that Leo was, after all, a successful usurper. His reign marks
only the tentative beginnings of a reconstruction of imperial authority,
and, through the political struggle which the iconoclastic debate engen-
dered, of a relocation of the imperial position within the wider framework
of the official, imperial ideological system of the Byzantine state.
Leo's reign is significant in one other respect, however. This chapter
began with an account of late Roman political history in the early seventh
century: it ends with an account of the history of the Byzantine state in the
early eighth century: Byzantine, because our map shows a very different
state territorially: because shifts in the ideological world, in the 'symbolic
universe' of the people and culture of this state, had taken place, which lent
to it a vastly different character from that of late Roman culture; and
because, whatever the continuities one may detect, the functional
apparatuses of this state were already very different from those of the later
sixth century. Precise dates at which a social formation or a state can be
said to deserve one descriptive title as opposed to any other are always
liable to criticism. It seems reasonable to conclude this chapter by suggest-
ing simply that it was during the seventh century that the transformation
from late Roman to Byzantine society, culture and institutions took place.
The evidence for this assertion is presented in the following chapters.l 3 s
92
The cities and the land 93
THE BACKGROUND
In the last thirty or so years, debate on the nature and function of the city
in the seventh century and later has been extensive. In essence, two
opposing points of view can be discerned. The first, which represents a
reaction against views held until the 19 50s, argues that the seventh
century saw a more or less total collapse of antique urban organisation,
and of social and economic life. The cities of the period up to the sixth
century disappeared as a result of the Arab onslaught and the rapid
ruralisation of the empire: the lack of small denomination bronze and
copper currency from the archaeological record in the second half of the
seventh century confirms the disappearance of market exchange and
illustrates therefore the end of the market function of the towns in the
provinces. 1
The opposing view argues that cities did survive physically; that, while
they may have shrunk and often have been confined to their citadels as a
result of constant enemy harassment, they nevertheless retained their role
as centres of market- and exchange-activity, petty commodity production
and administration. The evidence cited in support of this line of reasoning
includes both the clear continuation of occupation on many sites, attested
archaeologically and in literary sources - as well as the occurrence of gold
coins on many sites, regardless of size or importance. 2
Between these two poles, a number of alternatives or modifications have
been suggested. In a series of articles which seemed to strengthen the case
for a total eclipse of urban life after the first decade of the seventh century,
Clive Foss argued that the archaeological evidence was not only fuller, but
also more reliable and explicit, than the relatively sparse literary material:
and that it was the disastrous results of the Persian invasions and partial
occupation of Anatolia from 615 on, which sealed the fate of the cities of
Asia Minor. 3 There have been a number of criticisms of this position: in
I For a basic statement, see A. KaZdan. 'Vizantiiskie goroda v VII-IX vv. ·. Sovietskaya
Arkheologiya 21 (19 54). 164-88: and for further literature. Haldon. 'Some considerations'.
78f.
2 See G. Ostrogorsky, 'Byzantine cities in the early Middle Ages', DOP 13 (1959). 47-66; Sp.
Vryonis, jr.• The Decline of Medieval Hellenism in Asia Minor and the Process of Islamization
from the Eleventh through the Fifteenth Century (Berkeley. Los Angeles and London 1971).
p. 7; R.S. Lopez. 'The role of trade in the economic re-adjustment of Byzantium in the
seventh century'. DOP 13 (1959). 69-85: see Haldon, 'Some considerations', 78 and 82
with literature.
3 Clive Foss, 'The Persians in Asia Minor and the end of Antiquity', EHR 90 (1975), 721-43:
'The fall of Sardis in 616 and the value of evidence', ]OB 24 (1975), 11-22: Byzantine and
Turkish Sardis (Cambridge. Mass. and London 1976), pp. 2750'.: 'Late antique and Byzan-
tine Ankara', DOP 31 (1977), 29-87: 'Archaeology and the "twenty cities" of Byzantine
Asia', Amer. Journal of Archaeology 81 (1977), 469-86: and Ephesus after Antiquity: A Late
Antique, Byzantine and Turkish City (Cambridge 1979).
94 Byzantium in the seventh century
s The evidence is fully discussed by }ones, LRE, vol. II, pp. 732fT.; see also J. Durliat, 'Taxes
sur l'entree des marchandises dans la cite de Carales-Cagliari a l'epoque byzantine
(582-602)', DOP 36 (1982), 1-14: and more particularly the discussion of F. Millar.
The cities and the land 97
The cities thus lost in both economic and social status. That these
developments were already well advanced by the later fifth century is
generally admitted; and the role of the local bishop, who acted and was
recognised as a potential protector of the city and its populace in respect of
both the landed magnates and the state, is illustrative. A law of Zeno,
repeated in the Codex Iustinianus, suggests as much. 9 And while the bishop
also represented - as local agent for the estates of the Church in his region
- one, often the foremost, of the powerful landlords and principales of the
municipality, there is no evidence that bishops ever had any formally
constituted civic duties within the framework of the city administration, as
has sometimes been assumed, on a pattern similar to that of the towns of
the early medieval West. 10
The decline of the curial order (the wealthier or luckier members
obtaining exemption from civic duties through membership of the senate,
the poorer increasingly unable to shoulder the burden of both state and
civic liturgies) was halted for a while, although not reversed, by the state
assuming control of the cities' lands and incomes from the middle of the
fourth century. Henceforth, the magistrates and decurions had to adminis-
ter only the affairs of their city. Even in the later sixth and early seventh
centuries there are enough references to the city fathers of certain cities to
make it clear that not all curiales were eit~er poor or indifferent to their
duties. 11 But, as has been pointed out, even contemporaries were aware of
'Erhpire and city, Augustus to Julian: obligations, excuses and status', ]RS 73 (1983),
76-96.
9 See C] I, 3.35: and for the curator civitatis note 10 below. For the vindices, }ones, LRE. vol.
11, pp. 7 59 ff. and notes.
10 See Claude, Die byzantinische Stadt im 6. ]hdt .. 13 5 and 15 7f. Note the cogent arguments of
A. Hohlweg, 'Bischof und Stadtherr im friihen Byzanz', JOB 20 (1971), 51-62:
G. Dagron, 'Le Christianisme dans la ville byzantine', DOP 31 (1977). 3-25, see 19fT. A
law of Anastasius of 505 (C] I. 55.11 ( = i. 4.19)) repeating a law of 409 for the West,
however. set up a new assembly, including the bishop and clergy, chief landowners and
decurions, which was henceforth to elect the defensor civitatis - supposedly the protector of
the citizens against official oppression - instead of the city council alone. The measure was
designed chiefly to compensate for the fact that the curiales were no longer the wealthiest
or the most powerful in the city, and might easily fall prey to the provincial governor.
Anastasius' law also gave this assembly the duty of electing a corn-buyer in times of need.
as well as the right to elect the curator or pater civitatis, the official appointed originally by
the central government to supervise and regulate civic finances. See }ones, LRE, vol. 11.
pp. 726f. and 758f., and esp. J. Durliat, ·Les Attributions civiles des eveques byzantins:
l'exemple du diocese d'Afrique (533-709)', in Akten des XVI.lnternationalen Byzantinisten-
Kongresses, 11. 2 (Vienna 1982). pp. 73-84 ( = ]OB 32): A. Guillou. 'L'Eveque dans la
societe mediterraneenne des VIe-vue siecles: un modele', Bibliotheque de l'Ecole des Chartes
131 (1973), 5-19 (repr. in Guillou, Culture et sociiti en ltalie byzantine (Vle-xr siecles) 11
(London 1978).
11 See, for example, Vita Theod. Syk., 25, 6 and 45. 2-3. For a good discussion of the decline
of the curial class. see de Ste Croix, The Class Struggle in the Ancient Greek World,
pp. 465-74.
98 Byzantium in the seventh century
the decline of the cities and their councils, as a novel of Justinian for the
year 5 36 implies. 12 Civic autonomy had all but disappeared, in fact, by the
later sixth century. The town councils seem, on the whole, to have either
ceased to exist, or to have been bypassed and become ineffectual. Power
resided with the imperial revenue officials, in particular with the vindices-
and with the assembly of bishops, clergy and magnates. But even the
authority of the latter was tempered by the fact that provincial governors
regularly appointed their own representatives to the cities in their
province, representatives who acted, in effect, as city governors, tending to
assume responsibility for civic buildings, walls, water supply, and the like,
and who, together with the vindices of the bureau of the praetorian prefec-
ture, now dominated city administration. The curiales continued to func-
tion, however, if only in their capacity as simple collectors of state and civic
revenues under the supervision of the imperial establishment. 13
By the later sixth century, therefore, there is sufficient evidence to
demonstrate that the cities of the empire had lost their fiscal. economic and
political independence to a very large extent to the state: and that the
dominant administrative and legislative body within each city was now
made up of the bishops and clergy, the richer landowners, some of the
centrally appointed officers of the imperial fiscal bureaux, along with the
now relatively unimportant curiales. Of course, richer curiales still were to
be found in many cities: but the general tendency is clear enough, and even
the extraction and administration of local civic revenues and their expen-
diture came under the supervision and sometimes direct control of imperial
officials. In the richer cities - such as Alexandria, Antioch, or Ephesus, for
example, where wealthy merchants or landowners who had invested in
shipping were to be found or in those cities where local magnates retained
an interest in the well-being of their cities - a certain degree of civic
autonomy survived. 14 And, of course, this gradual reduction in the rele-
vance of the cities to the fiscal and political administration of the state did
not always have negative effects on local economic activity, whether
small-scale artisan production, services or market exchange. What is
important is the shift in the function of cities, from self-governing,
12 Justinian, Nov. 38, proem.
13 See )ones' comments. LRE. vol. 11, p. 759fT.: and see J. Durliat. 'Les Finances municipales
africaines de Constantin aux Aghlabides', in Bulletin archeologique du comiti des travaux
historiques et scientifiques, new series, 19 ( 198 3 ), 3 7 7-86: and note also Zacos and
Veglery, nos. 400, 1462, 2890, all datable to the seventh century, of decurions and. in
the last case, the community (to koinon) of the city of Sinope - perhaps a reference to the
municipal council or the municipality itself. Such seals say nothing. of course, about the
functions of their users.
14 But even a city such as Alexandria was financially under the thumb of the vindex. as
Justinian, Edict. XIII. 15 makes clear: and see the remarks of Durliat (see note 13 above).
3 78-80 with literature.
The cities and the land 99
Thus far the term 'city' or 'town' has been used without distinction to
define urban centres of population: but no attempt has been made to define
more precisely what ls meant by these terms. And it is this undifferentiated
application of the term 'city' to both late Roman and Byzantine urban
settlements that has led to both misunderstandings and confusion in the
debate.
Since the later nineteenth century, there has been much discussion on
the question of defining what exactly is meant by the term 'city', and a
1' The changes summarised have been analysed In much greater detail by a number of
scholars. See )ones, LRB. vol. 11. pp. 726f., 732-4, 73 7-63 and The Greelc City from
Alexander to Justinian, pp. 1481T. and 2671T.: Klrsten, 'Die byzantinlsche Stadt', 231T.:
W. Llebenam, Sttidteverwaltung lm romischen Kalserrelche (Leipzig 1900 and Amsterdam
1967). pp. 4761T.: H. Aubln. ·vom Absterben antlken Lebens lm Fruhmlttelalter', In
Kulturbruch oder Kulturlcontlnuitdt von der Antllce zum Mitulalter. ed. P.B. Hublnger (Darm-
stadt 1968), pp. 203-58, see esp. 213fT.: Kurbatov. Osnovnye problemy, pp. 460'. and
1541T., and •Razlof.enle antlcnol gorodskol sobstvennosti v Vizantll (IV-VII vv.)', VV 35
(1973), 19-32 (where he documents the alienation of civic lands to private persons, the
state and the Church): F. Vlttlnghof, •zur Verfassung der spltantlken Stadt', ln Studlen zu
den Anftingen des europdlschen Stadtwesens (Reichenau 19 56). For a detailed discussion of
the earlier literature. both In the Soviet Union and elsewhere, see Pranees, La Vllle byzan-
tlne et la monnale: and more recently. the excellent discussion In Brandes, Die Stiidu
Klelnaslens. pp. 17-22. H. Kennedy, 'The last century of Byzantine Syria: a reinter-
pretation', BF 10 (1985), 141-84, and H. Kennedy and J.H.W.G. Llebeschuetz, ·Antloch
and the villages of northern Syria In the fifth and sixth centuries A.D.: trends and
problems', Nottingham Medieval Studies 32 ( 1988), 65-90 present valuable surveys of the
pre-Islamic decline in key aspects of urban culture in the sixth and early seventh centuries.
For further literature. see the bibliographical notice at p. 4 7 6 below.
100 Byzantium in the seventh century
number of very different ways of using it has been suggested. The issue is
obviously complicated by the fact that modern attempts to define what a
city should mean in social, economic and political terms - which may be
based (as with Max Weber) on analyses of Western medieval cities- may
not always coincide with what either Romans or Byzantines, for example,
considered to be a city or with the character of those settlements which
were, sometimes very loosely, referred to in the sources as civitates or
poleis. 16
The term 'city' in the Roman world was essentially a legal administra-
tive definition applied by the Roman state as it expanded to communities
which, as we have seen, were in origin autonomous and responsible to the
state only in respect of the supervision and collection of the state's rev-
.enues. These might be either urban communities proper, real centres of
distinct territoria, or they might be groups of villages, attributed jointly
with the administrative responsibility and the constitutional forms of the
classical civitas or polis. 17 But behind this~ lay also a complex web of
cultural meanings which the term evoked for a member of late Roman
society. The city symbolised Roman, or Greco-Roman, civilisation: it
evoked ideas about both local tradition and imperial context, of literacy
and 'letters' in general. of physical space and a certain economic order.
The term 'city'- civitas- thus referred in the first instance to both the
16 The approaches to the problem are many and varied. On the whole, simple definition
based on legal status alone, or the existence of a circuit wall, for example, have proved
unsatisfactory. Weber's approach to the problem was to establish mooels of urban
communities, which might help to elucidate the historical realities as constructed through
the sources. But the debate about the use, application and validity of these 'ideal types'
remains. See G. Korf, 'Der Idealtypus Max Webers und die hlstorisch-gesellschaftlichen
Gesetzmassigkeiten', Deutsche Zeitschrift fur Philosophie 11 (1964), 1328ff., and Max
Weber, 'Die Stadt. Begriffund Kategorien', in Die Stadt des Mittelalters 1: Begriff, Entstehung
und Ausbreitung, ed. C. Haase (Darmstadt 1969), pp. 34-59, together with a number of
other valuable contributions in the same volume. See alsb the article of D. Denecke, 'Der
geographische Stadtbegriff und die raumlich funktionale Betrachtungsweise bei Siedlungs-
typen mit zentraler Bedeutung in Anwendung auf historische Siedlungsepochen', in Vor-
und Fruhformen der europdischen Stadt im Mittelalter, eds. H. Jankuhn, W. Schlesinger and
H. Steuer (Abhandlungen der Akad. der Wissenschaften in Gottingen, phil.-hist. Klasse Ill,
83 (1973), 1, pp. 33-55): C. Goehrke, 'Die Anfange des mittelalterlichen Stadtewesens in
eurasischer Perspektive', Saeculum 31 (1980), 194-239; M.l. Finley, 'The ancient city:
from Fustel de Coulanges to Max Weber and beyond', Comparative Studies in Society and
History 19 ( 1977), 305-2 7: and the comments of G. Warnke, 'Antike Religion und antike
Gesellschaft: wissenschaftshistorische Bemerkungen zu Fustel de Coulanges' La Citi
antique', Klio 68 (1986), 287-304. For a recent detailed discussion, see Brandes, Die Stiidte
Kleinasiens, pp. 23-43.
17 See Jones, LRE, vol. 11 pp. 712ff., and 'The cities of the Roman empire: political, admi-
nistrative and judicial functions', Recueils de la Societe Jean Bodin VI (1954), 135-73 (repr.
in The Roman Economy, pp. 1-34 ), 1ff., for example: also the useful survey and discus-
sion ofJ. Koder, 'The urban character of the early Byzantine empire: some reflections on a
settlement geographic approach to the topic', in 17th International Byzantine Congress.
Major Papers, pp. 155-89.
The cities and the land 101
centre and its dependent terriwrium: polis was understood in the same way,
a point which hardly needs to be demonstrated. In the second place, the
term refers to a cultural symbol which points to notions about the past and
the present through which individuals could identify themselves. It is
important to recall, therefore, that while a definition of a city or town based
on predominantly economic and social considerations is essential (that is,
a town is a settlement, in which the dominant form of exchange activity
occurs through market transactions, where some elements of petty com-
modity production are present and necessary, and where market-
exchanges constitute a fundamental element for the existence of the
community), 18 it must equally be remembered that many of the 'cities' of
the Roman world were in origin little more than villages with elements of
the local state administration present: and that while the presence of the
latter may also have attracted or stimulated some market-exchange and
small-scale commodity production, this economic activity was in effect a
secondary phenomenon. In times when communications are unhindered
and a stable small-denomination coinage available, such activity will be
favoured: in times of political and economic insecurity, this activity may
well disappear, although the primary administrative function of the settle-
ment may remain.l 9
When a late Roman or Byzantine source refers to a polis, therefore, these
considerations must be borne in mind: polis may refer to a thriving centre
of commercial and exchange activity; it may equally refer to an unimpor-
tant provincial settlement which serves merely as an administrative con-
venience and a shelter for the local populace. Each case must be taken, so
far as is possible, on its merits. Indeed, the situation is complicated by the
varied terminology used in the sources. On the whole, modern historians
have added to the problem by reading the term polis uniformly as 'city' or
'town', thus translating the medieval use of the term into a context where
it must necessarily be, at the very least, ambiguous. This is an important
point, since it is clear that the use of the term polis by Byzantine writers did
not always have the meaning we understand by the term. On occasion,
indeed, it may be used merely for effect or to demonstrate a writer's
familiarity with ancient terminology; and it is certainly clear from the use
of terms such as 'fortress' or 'castle' and polis side by side and often
interchangeably among medieval Greek writers that what was meant by
polis often bears no relation to either the ancient or the modern concept
18 See, for example, K. Marx, Pre-Capitalist Economic Formations, ed. E. Hobsbawn (London
1964), pp. 71f. and 77.
19 For the character of such activity, see J.P. Sodini, 'L'Artisanat urbain a l'epoque paleo-
chretienne (IVe-viie siecles)', Ktema 4 (1979), 71-119; and the section on Korykos, in
Tinnefeld, Die frrihbyzantinische Gesellschaft, pp. 21 SfT.
102 Byzantium in the seventh century
activity, which depended both upon the safety of local transport at least, as
well as on the existence of secure centres of exchange and the availability
of a suitable medium of exchange, was extensively disrupted and, where it
continued, was limited either to large emporia secured and supported by
the state or to barter and gift-exchange in kind on a highly localised basis
between rural producers and consumers and local administrative or mili-
tary personnel. What is important to recall is the fact that, while these
'external' factors - essentially, the existence of a constant and real military
threat - were without doubt instrumental in the demise of classical civic
life and institutions, they were so only in so far as they dealt the final blow.
There is no evidence to suggest that any of the cities affected by these
developments would have recovered its ancient dynamism had these
attacks not occurred. Indeed, many cities not directly affected, or only very
occasionally affected, by hostile action or its results, nevertheless suffered
ultimately the same fate as the rest. The already existing tendency outlined
above underlies the developments of the seventh century. 31
The following list illustrates clearly enough the activities of Muslim
forces - whether on major expeditions, as, for example, against Con-
stantinople in the years 6 74-8 or 71 7-18, or on the yearly spring or
winter raids. 32 Importantly, a larger city often weathered a siege or attack
- unless it was the specific target of an expedition. But the surrounding
countryside was almost invariably devastated, and it was the destruction
of local resources in foodstuffs, livestock and materials, or the impossibility
- indeed the pointlessness - of attempting to maintain local agricultural or
pastoral activity, which must have led to the rapid decline in the popu-
lation of many exposed or frequently attacked cities. 33 The larger cities
shrank in size - to a defensible area - and their character changed as their
hinterland became insecure. Only those centres which could be both easily
defended and which had access to the sea, for example, could continue to
thrive - and the best example, exceptional for many reasons, was Con-
stantinople itself.
In the following, an asterisk and a numeral denotes the capture of a city
and the number of times it was taken: otherwise its presence in the list
31 For a similar conclusion, see A. KaZdan and G. Constable, People and Power in Byzantium:
An Introduction to Modern Byzantine Studies (Washington D.C. 1982), p. 57: C. Mango,
Byzantium: The Empire of New Rome (London 1980), pp. 60fT. for a more detailed survey of
the development of urban life from the fourth to the ninth centuries.
32 On these, see Haldon and Kennedy. 'The Arab-Byzantine frontier', 113; 'Kudama b.
Djacfar', 199f.
33 See the apposite comments of Lilie, Die byzantinische Reaktion, pp. 190fT. and 305f., who
points out that, while Caesarea and Euchaita were each taken for a short while in the
opening phases of the warfare, as later was Trebizond, Ancyra (654) and Amorium (669)
-all quickly re-taken- it is almost entirely the smaller and less important urban centres
which were permanently or regularly captured.
• Fortresses/defended towns
Duluk •Edessa
• (Dolichi) Al-JAZIRAH
• Harran
.au~
(Kyrrhos)
Manbidj
• (Hierapolis)
SYRIA
• Seleukela
• Halab
(Berroia)
GuHofTarsu 0 60 miles
(Antiocheia) I I
0 100 kilometres
~
Map V The Anatolian frontier region in the seventh and early eighth centuries
The cities and the land 107
that sites continued to be occupied where the state and the Church placed their admi-
nistrative establishments. See F. Trombley, 'The Akropolis and lower city of the Byzantine
.. Dark Age" town (7th-8th century): the cases of Gortyna, Soloi and Druinopolis', ibid.,
40.
41 See Lilie, Die byzantinische Reaktion, p. 119 and note 50 with sources.
42 See I.C. Love, 'A preliminary report of the excavations at Knidos (1970)', American Journal
of Archaeology 76 (1972), 61-76, and 'A preliminary report of the excavations at Knidos
(1971)', ibid., 393--405; see also Ruggieri and Nethercott (see note 37 above).
43 See J. Solch, 'Historisch-geographische Studien iiber bithynische Siedlungen', BN] 1
(1920), 263-337, see 278fT.: and A.M. Schneider and W. Karnapp, Die Stadtmauer von
lznik (Nicaea) (Berlin 1938) ( = lstanbuler Forschungen, 9), esp. p. 42: W.M. Ramsay, The
Historical Geography of Asia Minor (London 1890 and Amsterdam 1962), p. 45.
44 Foss, 'Archaeology and the .. twenty cities"', 480fT.: Magie, Roman Rule in Asia Minor,
p. 796.
45 See, for example, P. Lemerle. 'Notes sur les donnees historiques de l'autobiographie
d'Anania de Shirak'. REA. new series. 1 (1964), 195-202: H. Ahrweiler, 'L'Asie mineure
et les invasions arabes', RH 227 (1962). 1-32, see 30 with literature. For its vital role as a
commercial centre. see R.B. Serjeant, 'Material for a history of Islamic textiles up to the
Mongol conquest, Chapter IV'. Ars Islamica 10 (1943). 71-104. see 94.
46 See Jameson. in RE S12 (1970). pp. 110fT.; E.G. Bean. Turkey's Southern Shore (New York
1968). pp. 41fT.
The cities and the land Ill
also have stimulated local market activity and reinforced the local agri-
cultural labour-force. 4 7
It seems clear from the archaeological and the limited literary evidence
that whether or not sites were abandoned, the long-term decline of the
classical city was completed during the seventh century by the attacks of
the Arabs in Asia Minor and the consequent social and economic effects.
Hostile activity was not the only contributory factor in this process, of
course. A number of cities or towns suffered considerable damage from
earthquakes, often so severe as to permanently end the life of the ancient
settlement - the effect on Bphesus, for example, providing an interesting
illustration: 48 and in several cases this may have occurred before the
seventh century. A number of towns affected by such natural disasters
never recovered their former position or wealth: Mlletus, 49 Aphrodisias, 50
Laodicea, 5 1 Nicopolis, 52 and Anem:!rium, referred to already. While
earthquakes did not cause the decline of the ancient cities, of course, they
did constitute an important factor. 5 3 Similarly, the frequent outbreaks of
plague which were a feature of early medieval history affected the popu-
lation of the empire drastically, especially those dwelling in the (relatively)
confined conditions of an urban settlement. The best-known epidemic is
perhaps that which swept across the Mediterranean in the 540s: but
further epidemics affected parts or all of the eastern Mediterranean world
more or less continuously: Constantinople was affected, for example, in
555-6, 560-1, 572-3, 585-6, 592, 598-9, 608-9, and in 618: and it
affected Persia, Syria, Palestine and Egypt at intervals thereafter. 54 It
occurred again in Constantinople in 697-8 where it was endemic for a
year or more. 55 It was a constant factor in the eastern Mediterranean
basin throughout this period. The consequences for the population must
have been drastic. 5 6
The urban settlements of Asia Minor were already suffering from the
long-term effects of the general shift in the economic relations within the
later Roman empire between the wealthiest magnates of the senatorial
establishment and their cities. And because of the change in the function of
the cities with regard to the state, they experienced a radical upheaval in
their circumstances during the seventh and early eighth centuries as a
result of the combination of factors described above. This change affected
their physical appearance, their extent, as well as their economic and
social function. The nature of the change is well summarised by the
anonymous tenth-century Persian writer of the book The Regions of the
World and by the Arab geographer Ibn Hawkal, both of whom emphasised
the scarcity of cities (in the Muslim sense of the term) at a time when the
empire was economically much stronger and when its urban settlements
had had a century or more to recover from the warfare of the seventh and
eighth centuries. It is significant that Arab writers use the Muslim terms for
castles (qilac) and fortresses (husiin) of the Byzantine cities and towns they
describe - significant because the difference between concepts such as
village, town and city is important in Muslim geographical terminology.
Arab writers differentiate carefully between types of settlement when
describing Muslim lands. Clearly, the fact that they refer to many Byzan-
tine cities in this way suggests that they did not regard such settlements as
cities at all (Arabic madinah). They were not to be compared with Muslim
centres. such as Baghdad, for example, or Damascus, or even Constantin-
ople itself, centres of commerce, market exchange, administration and so
on.s7
A comment of the chronicler Tabari emphasises the point, for he men-
56 Patlagean, Pauvrete economique, pp. 87fT. has demonstrated the effects of the plague of the
540s on the urban life of parts of the Eastern empire: see also H. Kennedy, 'The last
century of Byzantine Syria: a reinterpretation', BF 10 (1985), 141-83, see 181ff.
57 HudUd al-cAlam, The Regions of the World, trans. V. Minorsky (Oxford 1937), p. 156f.: 'In
the days of old, cities were numerous in Rum, but now they have become few. Most of the
districts are prosperous and pleasant. and have (each) an extremely strong fortress. on
account of the frequency of the raids which the fighters for the faith direct upon them. To
each village appertains a castle, where in time of flight (they may take shelter)': Ibn
l:lawqal, Kitab Surat al-Ard, configuration de la terre, trans. J.H. Kramer and G. Wiet (Beirut
and Paris 1964), p. 194 (text ed. J.H. Kramer (Leiden 1938), p. 200): 'Rich cities are few
in their [the Byzantines'] kingdom and country, despite its situation, size and the length of
their rule. This is because most of it consists of mountains, castles (qilac), fortresses
(i)u~un), cave-dwellings and villages dug out of the rock or buried under the earth.' For
the Muslim terminology, see G. von Grunebaum, ·The structure of the Muslim town', in
Islam: Essays in the Nature and Growth of a Cultural Tradition (London 1961 ). pp. 141-58,
see 14lf. (repr. in Islam and Medieval Hellenism: Social and Cultural Perspectives (London
1976)).
The cities and the land 113
tions in connection with Ancyra and Amorion that there was nothing in
the land of the Byzantines greater than these two cities. The results of
archaeological investigations have shown that at this time- 838- neither
was much more than a well-defended and strategically important fortress.
Even allowing for Tabari's probable desire to glorify and to magnify the
deeds of the victorious caliph who took the cities, his comment is telling.
Ancyra shrank to a small citadel within the walls constructed from spolia
robbed from the old city during the reign of Constans 11, probably between
656 and 661, a citadel whose walls contain an area of some 350 '"metres
by 150 metres. 58 Amorium, likewise an important fortress and military
base, and from the later seventh century probably the headquarters of the
thema or military district of the Anatolikon, was also very small. In 716 it
was successfully defended against a major Arab attack by only 800 men, if
the source is to be believed. 59 While it may well have lain in a pleasant and
fertile district and been a flourishing administrative centre, and con-
sequently probably attracted some commercial activity, it was hardly a
city in the sense outlined above, certainly not in the eyes of a contempo-
rary Arab. 60
Whether defined in terms of their economic function, their position as
centres of social wealth and investment, or in terms of their constitutional
status, their administrative character and functions, or their role in the
extraction of revenues on behalf of the state, the classical cities of Anatolia
underwent a dramatic transformation in this period. Some were aban-
doned or destroyed: those that survived shrank to insignificance, often
surviving merely as defended villages: others owed their continued exist-
ence- and the existence of a limited degree of commercial activity- to their
function as military and administrative centres, of both Church and state:
yet others to their geographical position in respect of trade-routes and
distance from enemy threat. 61 When cities did recover their economic
well-being, during the later ninth century and after, it was not as revived
or reinvigorated classical or late antique poleis, but as medieval towns,
owing their fortunes to the administrative and military intervention of the
75 Theophanes, 469f.: cf. H. Antonladls-Blblcou, Recherches sur les douanes d Byzance, l'
'octava', le 'lcommerlclon' et Its commerclalres (Paris 1963), pp. 107f.
76 SeeP. de Lagarde and J. Bolllg,Johannls Buchaltarum Metropolltae quae Supersunt In Cod.
Vatlca11o Graeco 676 (Berlin 1882), pp. 131-2: note also Hendy, Studies, pp. 141-2.
77 For a llst, see Vryonls, The Decline of Medieval Hellenlsrn, pp. 39-41.
118 Byzantium in the seventh century
during the seventh century, while being fewer in quantity than in the sixth
century or in the ninth century, nevertheless demonstrated the continued
existence of a relatively healthy 'monetary' economy and a good level of
commercial activity. While noting at the same time that there was a
dramatic fall-off in finds of the copper coinage from the period in question,
he argued that this was not a significant element. 78
In fact, it is crucial. For the presence of gold coins has very little to do
with the existence of a market economy, being a reflection rather of the
needs of the state and its military, administrative and fiscal machinery. A
decline in the number of copper coins, however, assuming that it is not
merely a reflection of their lack of intrinsic value, the whim of collectors, or
accidents of deposit and discovery, 79 must surely be ascribed to a reduction
in the number of-coins struck and consequently reflect a general decline in
demand, or the perceived demand. In other words, such coins were
required in smaller numbers (and only in certain places), because the
market-transactions they were designed to facilitate no longer took place,
or took place on a very much smaller scale than had previously been the
case. 80 Coin finds from excavations on the one hand, and coins (both gold
and copper) in collections on the other, tend to bear out the assumed
results for the economic life of the towns and cities of the empire outlined
already: after evidence of much hoarding in or around 615, presumably a
result of the threat of Persian attack, followed by a gradual recovery in the
use and circulation of both copper and gold coins, finds dateable to the last
years of the Emperor Constans II virtually cease. 81 Athens and Corinth in
the Balkans and a whole series of excavated sites in Anatolia (Ephesus,
Sardis, Priene, Ancyra, Assus, Aphrodisias, Anemurium) demonstrate
this feature. 82
From the reign of Heraclius through the rest of the seventh century the
78 See Ostrogorsky, 'Byzantine cities in the early middle ages', SOfT.: see, for example, also
Vryonis, The Decline of Medieval Hellenism, p. 7 - they both argue against KaZdan,
Vizantiiskie goroda (an argument repeated also in Derevniya i gorod v Vizantii (IX-X vv.)
(Moscow 1960), pp. 264f.). But see the critique of Ostrogrosky by P. Grierson, 'Coinage
and money in the Byzantine empire 498-c. 1090', in Moneta e Scambi nell' Alto Medioevo
(Settimane di Studi del Centro Italiano di Studi sull'alto Medioevo VIII, Spoleto 1960),
pp. 411-53, see 445fT.: and the detailed account of the literature in Brandes, Forschungs-
bericht, 192-200.
79 See the comments of Grierson (see note 78 above).
8o See the survey carried out by D.M. Metcalfe, ·How extensive was the issue of folies during
the years 775-820?', B 37 (1967), 270-310, for a slightly later period, esp. 272fT., where
similar points are made in respect of the function and quantity of low-denomination coins.
st See, for example, Foss, 'The Persians in Asia Minor', 7210'.
82 See Foss, Ephesus, pp. 197f., with table: ·rhe Persians in Asia Minor', 736-42: and esp.
C. Morrison, 'Byzance au vue siecle: le remoignage de la numismatique', in "Aq;uptJJJ.La
UT6v itvDpia N. ITpaTO (2 vols., Athens 1986), vol. I, pp. 149-63, esp. 155ft'. and
tables.
The cities and the land 119
copper coinage was depreciated: the follis' original weight of eleven grams
was reduced in 61 5/16: it was then further reduced to some five grams;
and while it later stabilised for a while, constant efforts to bolster up the
copper system by various reforms point to its dubious reputation and
unrellablllty as a means of generalised exchange. 83 The gold coinage,
while it retained its integrity, and while it is also found hoarded, 84 played
only an accidental role in commercial transactions: where it was available
and relevant to the types of transaction taking place, it might tend to be
drawn in to market exchanges. The copper coinage disappears more or less
completely from the last years of the reign of Constans 11, after about 658,
as it became less relevant to the requirements of exchange activity: that is
to say, as market exchanges of a day-to-day variety petered out in all but a
few major emporia - such as Constantinople - or as it found other forms
through which goods could be transferred from one person to another,
such as gift-exchange and barter. The state continued to produce the small
denominations. of course, but their distribution and their use seems to
have been very limited. 85 Where finds of copper coins do occur, they are
more often than not to be connected with the presence of soldiers. for it
seems that from the early seventh century both copper and silver had to be
brought into the payment system of the state due to a lack of adequate
supplies of gold. 86 And it can be argued that the drastic disappearance of
copper from archaeological sites after the last years of Constans 11 was due
to the state increasingly financing its forces with produce, equipment and
so forth in kind, rather than through the traditional medium of cash grants
and salaries, and thus making the regular issue of coin for this purpose
unnecessary or, at best, marginal to its fiscal needs. Bven the limited
amount of copper found after the reign of Constans. therefore, may not
a1 See Hendy. Studies. pp. 498f.: and Sp. Vryonls. jr.• 'An Attic hoard of Byzantine gold coins
(668-7 41) from the Thomas Whittemore collection and the numismatic evidence for the
urban history of Byzantium', ZRVI 8 (1963). 291-300, see 292: P. Charanis, 'The
significance of coins as evidence for the history of Athens and Corinth in the seventh and
eighth centuries', Hlstorla 4 (1955). 163-72: Foss. 'Ankara'. 87.
84 See the remarks of C. Morrlson. J.N. Barrandon and j. Poivler, 'Nouvelles recherches sur
l'hlstoire monetalre byzantlne: evolution comparee de la monnale d'or aConstantinople et
dans les provinces d'Afrique et de Siclle', J6B 33 (1983), 267-86, esp. 274f.• where
RuctuaUons in the purity of gold can be related to regional historical contexts and
developments.
85 In the fictional Life of Andrew the Fool. which dates probably to the later seventh century
(see the chapter on the sources, note 20), the regular use of small-denomination copper
coins In day-to-day transactions is taken for granted: see PG CXI. 653C. 6568. 777C.
Compare the results of Metcalfe's analysis with regard to distribution (see note 80 above).
305ft See also C. Morrlsson, 'Byzance au VIr siecle: le temolgnage de la numlsmatique', in
Byzant1on: Trlbutt to Andmls N. Stratos I (Athens 1986). pp. 149-63.
86 See Hendy, Studlts. pp. 640-3 for payment In copper. The question of supplying the
armies in kind will be examined in detail below.
120 Byzantium in the seventh century
necessarily signify the existence of a generalised system of commercial
exchange in urban centres at this time.
Lack of exchange activity through the money medium does not imply
either a lack of exchange activity as such, of course, or the complete
desertion of the sites in question- one of the mistaken inferences drawn by
the first proponents of urban discontinuity. 87 Nor does the possibility that
the cessation of finds of copper coins on most excavated sites might be a
reflection of state policy (a response to both changes in patterns of demand
and/or changes in the perceived need for such issues) imply that urban life
continued just as before, but without money. On the contrary, there is
every reason to believe that the fiscal policy of the state itself reflects the
same conditions as those which affected urban culture so drastically, and
which I have described already. ss
Let me summarise. The evidence of texts, numismatics and archaeology
all point uniformly in one direction: the effective disappearance of the late
antique urban economies which had survived up to the reign of Heraclius.
What remained was instead a pattern of defended villages and fortresses,
the strongest of which often came to serve as the administrative and
military centres: and, on the coasts of the Black Sea, the Aegean, the
Adriatic and in south-west Asia Minor, there are a few isolated ports and
emporia. These represented the seeds of the future medieval towns of the
Byzantine world, very different in both social character and urban struc-
ture from their classical antecedents. But in practice, only Constantinople,
the centre of the imperial administration, the seat of the emperors and the
site of the major imperial mints, was able to maintain its identity as a city
in the late ancient sense of the term. But even there, what began to develop
from the middle of the seventh century was a medieval town, not a
classical polis.
There were undoubtedly some exceptions to this general pattern, but
they hardly affect its overall validity. Even Euchaita which, it has been
argued, retained much of its original civic area along with some of the
public buildings which occupied it, was hardly a flourishing polis. The
citadel to which citizens fled during Arab attacks had become synonymous
with the term polis for the hagiographer who describes it in the eighth
century; and while the lower (late antique) town still stretched out within
the Anastasian walls of the early sixth century, there is no evidence to
suggest that the population was particularly large, nor that any degree of
87 See the apt comments of P. Charanis, 'A note on the Byzantine coin finds in Sardis and
their historical significance'. EEBS 39-40 (19 72-3 ), 17 5-80 and 'The significance of
coins as evidence' (cited in note 83 above), 164fT.: and for gift-exchange. see Haldon.
'Some considerations', 84 and note 18.
88 See, for example, the comments of J. Russell, 'Transformations in early Byzantine urban
life' (note 38 above), 142. For state fiscal policy. see chapter 5 below.
The cities and the land 121
market exchange was a usual feature of its life. It was essentially a rural
settlement and pilgrimage centre. The comments of its eleventh-century
bishop referred to already - long before it began to suffer under the
Tiirkmen nomads - places it in its real context. 89
The history of the seventh-century Byzantine town is concerned, there-
fore, not with the question of whether or not life in the classical cities
ended: nor whether the cities themselves were abandoned. It is concerned
rather with the changed conditions in which they found themselves from
the fourth and fifth centuries and after. That many - possibly the majority
-of the 'cities' continued to be occupied (if only as centres of refuge or as
military and administrative bases) is not in doubt. Some were abandoned,
certainly: and the economic and market role of many was also ended
under the changed conditions of the seventh century. On the other hand,
some cities certainly continued to function as both centres of population
and market exchange activity, where their provisioning could be assured.
What is crucial, and what indeed had actually occurred before the physical
destruction of the seventh century, is the change in the function of cities or
towns within late Roman society and economy. They were quite simp:y no
longer relevant to the state or to the greater part of the ruling elite. Where
they survived, therefore. it was either because they could fulfil a function in
respect of the institutions of Church or state (as an administrative base, for
example) or in respect of genuine economic and social patterns of demand.
The numerous episcopal cities must still have supported a degree of
exchange activity, however limited and closed, for example, in order to
meet the needs of the clergy and ancillary personnel. The same will have
applied to sites where civil or military officials were established. The
occasional coin and the production of local imitations of formerly imported
wares on a number of sites suggest as much. Where such demand was met
in other ways, or ceased, the life of the urban centres ebbed away, too. 90
There remain two categories of evidence which have not been men-
tioned so far, namely the various notitiae of episcopal sees and the lists of
signatories to the ecumenical councils - in our period, those held at
Constantinople in 680 and in 692. Neither source is of any value in telling
us about the actual condition of the cities or sees in question: and of the
two, the notitiae, as has often been pointed out, are of only limited use in
89 See the article of Trombley, 'The decline of the seventh-century town', and note 76 above.
90 See, e.g., J.W. Hayes, 'Problemes de la ceramique des vne-Ixe siecles a Salamine et a
Chypre', in Salamine de Chypre, Histoire et archiologie (Paris 1980), pp. 375-87, for the
evidence of pottery. For the marked shifts in the organisation of the 'cultural space' of
cities in the sixth and seventh centwies, the dramatic decline of urban culture as
evidenced in artistic production, architecture and public buildings, for example, see
especially the detailed discussion of Miiller-Wiener, 'Von der Polis zum Kastron', esp.
451-62.
122 Byzantium in the seventh century
telling us which cities or sees were still within imperial territory or under
imperial authority. 91 They represented rather a theoretical state of affairs,
being often quite anachronistic, particularly for the period with which we
are concerned here, when territory was being lost, or fought over, con-
stantly, and when the political status of a city might change within a very
short period. The conciliar lists of signatories are more useful, since they
represent the signatures of clerics who actually attended the meetings in
question, and they might be useful on that basis in arguing for the
continued occupation of their respective cities and their being still within
imperial territory - although it must be remembered that representatives
from other patriarchates such as Antioch or Jerusalem, clearly outside the
imperial jurisdiction at the time of the sixth and Quinisext councils. were
also present. The use to which these lists has been put has varied. The
question of whether or not there was an exact equivalence of city and see
needs to be borne in mind; while the reliability and completeness of the
documents themselves in their edited form Is problematic: as Ostrogorsky
pointed out, there are some 174 signatures to the acts of the sixth council;
yet Theophanes, writing some 130 years later, had information that there
had been 289 bishops present. It has likewise been argued that the lists of
signatories may include absentee bishops whose sees were only nominally
within the empire. 92 On the other hand, the archaeological evidence for
the continued occupation of many urban sites, at however limited and
lowly a niveau. does show that such settlements, even when lying in very
exposed areas, were seldom entirely deserted or permanently abandoned.
Part of the reason lies in their actual location, often an ancient site with
access to both routes and amenities, chiefly water; and in the agricultural
resources at their disposal. 93 The lists of signatories. while they certainly
91 For a detailed discussion, see H. Gelzer. 'Ungedruckte und ungeniigend verolfentllchte
Texte der Notltlae Bpiscopatuum', Abhandlungen der bayer. Akad. der Wlssenschaften
XXI (Munich 1901), pp. 534ff.: and now the edition and commentary of J. Darrouzes.
Notltlae Bplscopatuum Bcclesiae ConstanUnopolltanae (Paris 1981). See also Ostrogorsky.
'Byzantine cities in the early middle ages', 105 and notes.
92 Theophanes, 360. 2 and Ostrogorsky, 'Byzantine cltles In the early middle ages', 53 and
notes: a point taken up also by C. Poss, Byzantine Cities of Western Asia Minor (Cambridge
Mass. 1972), pp. 28f. and Lilie, • "Thraklen" und "Thrakeslon"', 35: see also J. Darrouzes,
'Listes episcopates du Conclle de Nlcee (787)', RBB 33 (1975), 61. Por a counter-critique,
see F. Trombley. ·A note on the See of Jerusalem and the synodal list of the sixth
~umenical council (680)', B 53 (1983), 632-8: R. Rledlnger, 'Die Priisenz- und Sub-
skriptionsllsten des VI. okonomischen Konzlls (680/1) und der Papyrus Vlnd. gr. 3',
Abhandlungen der bayerlschen Akademle der Wlssenschaften. phll.-hlst. Kl .• n.P. LXXXV
(Munich 19 79 ): and H. Ohme. Das Condlium Quinist%tum und Stint BischofsUste. Studien zum
Konstllntinopeler KonzU von 6 9 2 (Arbeiten zur Kirchengeschichte LVI. Berlin-New York
1990): and for the equivalence of city and see, A.H.M. Jones. Cities of the Eastern Roman
PrO\Iincts (Oxford 19 3 7), pp. 519(.
91 The close relationship between continuity of site and occupation, and geographical/
climatic situation has been emphasised by Guillou, La ClvlllsaUon byzantlne, pp. 19ff., 4 Uf.,
followed by Hendy, Studies, pp. 90-100 (Anatolia) and 78-85 (Balkans).
The cities and the land 123
seem to be incomplete, might support this evidence, and suggest that the
bishops in question were indeed normally resident in their 'cities'. It might
be objected, of course, that conditions in some areas must have led to
abandonment, even if temporary - a point made explicitly in the record of
the Quinisext council. 94 And while it has been argued that. since more
bishops attended the Quinisext than attended the council of 680, there
may have been a recovery in the fortunes of cities in parts of Asia Minor as
a result of the truce with the Arabs made in 679, the evidence of Theo-
phanes referred to above casts some doubt on this. In addition, the truce,
which came into force in 680, will just as probably have facilitated the
movement of Churchmen to Constantinople for this council, a point
demonstrated by the fact that news of the empire's Bulgar war reached
Apamaea in Syria 11 without difficulty. 95 But the truce itself only lasted
until 692. and while it certainly made communications between Con-
stantinople and the provinces easier, it was hardly long enough for any.
sort of urban economic recovery. The statement regarding clerics who had
left their cities and abandoned their flocks was made in 692 at the
Quinisext, some twelve years after the truce had first taken effect. This
hardly suggests that conditions had improved dramatically. Even if more
bishops did attend the council of 692, this reflects travel conditions only.
The fact that it may imply that bishops were, on the whole, resident in their
sees, says nothing at all about the 'cities' themselves. 96
The point made already must be stressed: the crux of the matter is.
surely, that the debate has wrongly assumed an intimate connection
between the question of whether classical urban life continued or died and
that of whether or not its sites were abandoned or deserted. The evidence
we have surveyed makes it clear that both questions are to a large extent
misguided. Classical civic life was already on its death-bed before the
seventh century: what was replacing it was provincial town life of a very
different character, on a very much less wealthy and less physically
extensive basis. Hostile attack and harassment speeded up the former
process and almost smothered the latter. But the organisational needs of
the church alongside local cultural and economic tradition kept many sites
alive, even if chiefly because of the shelter they offered. What survived was
an 'urban' culture of a sort: but it bore little or no relation to the antique
cities on whose sites it evolved, whatever the occasional exception may
suggest.
94 Mansi. XI. 9528-C (canon 18).
95 See Mansl. XI. 617 A-B: and note the comments of Trombley. ·A note on the See of
Jerusalem', 636f.
96 The evidence adduced by Hendy. Studies. pp. 76f. (letters. occasional references in narra-
tive and other sources) for provincial bishops normally residing In their sees In peace time.
is hardly relevant to the debate. which Is concerned with the specific conditions prevailing
towards the end of the seventh century.
124 Byzantium in the seventh century
Finally, it is worth emphasising the fact that the walled urban settlement
was an important element in Byzantine perceptions of their culture. Towns
or 'cities' which were destroyed were regularly rebuilt: 97 new 'cities' were
established, often specifically to provide shelter for a newly immigrant
community under imperial auspices: settlements were given the title of
'city' and the accompanying ecclesiastical hierarchy, when they became
important enough. 98 In other words, the fate of the Byzantine city is not
simply a question of economic resources, market potential, exchange
activity, or the administrative requirements of the state and the Church. It
is intimately connected also with the ideology of the Byzantine world and
its perception of self. Cities served not just as refuges or fortresses. markets
or administrative bases. They constituted an important element of Byzan-
tine self-identity. The continuity of site and settlement from the sixth· and
seventh centuries right through to the end of the empire is surely related to
this. 99
97 Eirene rebuilt the towns of Thrace after 784 (Theophanes, 417. 6-11 ): emperors were
regularly involved in the reconstruction of city walls throughout the empire (cf. Theo-
phanes, 481. 9 for Ancyra. Thebasa. Andrasus ).
98 E.g. Nicephorus, 66. 11: Theophanes, 429. 26 for Constantine V's construction of 'towns'
in Thrace for the Syrians and Armenians transported from Anatolia. The city of Gordoser-
bon in Bithynia, which appears in the list of conciliar signatories for 680, was probably a
settlement of Serbs from the great population transfer carried out under Constantine IV.
See Ramsay, Historical Geography, p. 19 7 and table. In general, see Ostrogorsky, 'Byzan-
tine cities in the early middle ages', 62f.
99 Hendy, Studies, pp. 9otT. and maps 20-3. For an important comment on the changing
cultural and economic function of late antique towns, see now also J.-M. Spieser.
'L'Evolution de la ville byzantine de I'epoque paleochretienne al'iconoclasme', in Hommes
et Richesses dans l'Empire byzantin 1: 1?-Vl.r' siecle (Paris 1989), pp. 97-106.
CHAPTER 4
125
126 Byzantium in the seventh century
owners and to smallholders, and its spread during the sixth century, is
especially important in this connection, as we shall see. 2 Along with free
emphyteutic tenants, land was farmed for the most part by dependent
peasants of one category or another: coloni adscripticii and liberi, for
example. 3
Until the sixth century, these seem to have constituted the largest group.
The latter were free persons restricted to their holdings for a period of up to
thirty years, after which they were permitted to leave: the former were
bound to their holdings hereditarily. The term colonus designated origi-
nally a free peasant farmer, then a free tenant of a holding, of equal legal
standing to the landlord. From the middle of the third century, it began to
be used not simply of one side in a contractual leasing arrangment. but of a
cultivator-tenant of dependent status. By the middle of the fifth century the
status of colonus was hereditary: and by the sixth century the majority
were regarded as effectively unfree as far as their mobility was concerned,
being classified as 'slaves of their land'. They could be released from their
obligations only by their landlord, and only under certain conditions with
regard to the land itself. 4 The term adscripticius refers to the fact that coloni
of this type were entered in the land-tax register, along with their holdings,
under the name of their landlord. The coloni liberi, while free in person, and
free too to make wills and pass on and inherit property, were, from
Anastasius' time, also forbidden to leave their holdings: but they continued
to be entered in the tax-registers under their own names, paying land-taxes
direct to the state, rather than through a landlord. 5 But this was in practice
2 See M. V. Levcenko, 'Materiali dlya vnutrennei istorii vostocnoi rimskoi imperii V-VI vv.' in
Vizantiiskii Sbornilc pod. red. M. V. Leveenko (Moscow and Leningrad 1945), pp. 12-95, see
p. 64: note that Justinian expressly recommended that such lessees should be relatively
well-ofT (euporos): see C] I, 2.24/5 (a. 530).
3 In general on coloni, and the various sub-groupings, see Tinnefeld, Die fruhbyzantinische
Gesellschaft, pp. 45-55: Jones, LRE. vol. II. pp. 795-803: for a good general survey see also
Patlagean, Pauvreti iconomique, pp. 263-340 ('La Terre et la societe'): and A.H.M. Jones.
'The Roman colonate', Past and Present 13 (1958), 1-13 (repr. in The Roman Economy.
pp. 293fJ.): P. Collinet, 'La Politique de justinien a l'egard des colons', SBN 5 (1936): de Ste
Croix, The Class Struggle in the Ancient Greek World, pp. 226-59: M. Kaser, Das romische
Privatrecht, vol. U: Die nachklassischen Entwiclclungen, 2nd edn (Munich 19 7 5), pp. 14 3-9:
D. Eibach, Untersuchungen zum spdtllntiken Kolonat in der kaiserlichen Gesetzgebung unter
besonderer Berucksichtigung der Terminologie (Cologne 1977), esp. pp. 47fT. For their status,
see R. Giinther, 'Coloni liberi und coloni originarii: einige Bemerkungen zum spatantiken
Kolonat', Klio 49 (1967), 267-71, and Eibach, Untersuchungen, pp. 132-204, critical of
}ones' traditional perspective.
4 See CTh. V, 17.1 (a. 332): coloni tied to the land; CTh. xm. 10.3 (a. 357): land not to be sold
without its coloni ( = C] XI, 48.2); C] XI, 68.3: status of coloni hereditary; C] XI, 52.1 (a.
393: the classical definition of a colonus as free in person, but 'slave of the land' on which
they were born: cf. C] XI, 48.21/1 (a. 530): Justinian asks what ditlerentiates a slave from
an adscripticius; cf. C] VU, 24.4/1 (a. 531).
s For adscripticii see C] XI, 48.22 (a. 531): publici census adscriptio; for the liber colonus, see C]
XI, 48.19; for the origins of the two categories, see }ones, LRE, vol. ll, pp. 797fi.: but more
Rural society 127
the only real difference between coloni liberi and adscripticii, for it seems
that the latter (contrary to the traditionally held view) could also take out
emphyteutic leases and act as legally independent and free persons. The
fact that their peculium, or personal property, and the rights and duties
attached thereto came under the authority of their landlords- traditionally
taken to be a sure sign of their servile status - has now been shown to be a
factor of their political-juridical position in respect of their landlords and
the estates of which they were a part. For such estates owed revenue to the
state and munera or civic burdens to the local municipality in whose
territory they were situated. From this point of view, the distraint (or the
possibility of distraint) by the landlord of the peculium of the peasants 'tied
to the land' functioned in the same way as the distraint by the res publica,
that is, the city, of the property of a member of the curial class who failed to
fulfil his civic liturgies or duties - munera. It served in effect as a security on
the returns from agricultural production, in which relationship the land-
lord functioned effectively as an agent of the city and thence, ultimately, of
the fisc. It must in addition be remembered that, if the adscripted colonus
had no freedom to leave his holding, neither had the landlord the freedom
to move or to expel him. or to increase the basic rent or tax imposition on
his holding. The relationship was regulated by the state to the mutual
benefit of both parties - in theory if not always in practice - and, of course.
and chiefly, for the securing of the state's revenue. The adscripticius thus
received what the ordinary tenant-farmer or freeholder did not, namely
security of tenure and the protection of state legislation. 6
Alongside these two major groupings were free smallholders, often no
different in economic condition than the coloni. with whom they might
share a village and a community. Juridically and economically, of course,
they were of slightly higher status, being both free in person and free to
alienate their own properties; but since they were subject to pressure from
both the state on the one hand. for taxes, and from the more powerful
landlords around them on the other hand, their position was rarely secure.
There is evidence for communities of such freeholders in most regions of
the empire into the early seventh century, 7 and indeed Justin 11 expressly
forbade the curatores and other officials of the imperial estates throughout
especially D. Eibach, Untersuchungen zum spdtantiken Kolonat in der kaiserlichen Gesetzgebung
unter besonderer Berucksichtigung der Terminologie (Cologne 1977). esp. pp. 132-204.
critical of the traditional perspective set out by )ones.
6 See J. Gascou. 'Les grands domaines. la cite et l'etat en Egypte byzantine'. TM 9 (1985).
1-90, esp. 22-7; and Goffart. Caput and Colonate. pp. 87ff.. for the position of such coloni in
relation to their landlords and the estates to which they were bound.
7 See }ones. 'The Roman colonate', 294(. Note that the sixth-century legislation often treats
such freeholders as subject to the same economic conditions and difficulties as the remai-
ning smallholders- coloni- within the empire. Cf. ]GR I. coli. 1. nov. 1 (p. 2.7sq.) (a. 566);
nov. 11 (p. 18.4sq.) (a. 575 = DOlger. Regesun. no. 40): see }ones. LRE. vol. II. pp. 7780".
128 Byzantium in the seventh century
the empire to lay claim to the nearby villages and their lands, whether
these villages were of freeholders surrounded by civic lands or the estates of
senatorial landowners or of the Church. They were also forbidden to
exercise any form of patronage - patrocinium - over such communities. 8
The extent to which this pattern of landownership and land-exploitation
survived into and beyond the seventh century is difficult to say. It has often
been argued that the civil strife under Phocas - followed, first. by the
Persian and then by the Arab onslaught - was responsible both for the
decimation of the senatorial landed elite in the provinces and the reduction
in the numbers of latifundia-style estates in the eastern half of the empire. 9
There is, in fact, little evidence to demonstrate that this was the case and,
indeed, little theoretical justification - in terms of how Byzantine society
moved from the situation familiar from the sixth century to that which we
find in the ninth century and later - for assuming this. Partly, the
argument rests on methodological misapprehensions about the possi-
bilities of generalising from the late seventh-century Farmers' Law, which
does not mention such estates. But, as we shall see, there is no reason why
it should: and negative evidence is hardly a suitable foundation for such an
extensive explanatory edifice. 10
Of the group of landowners referred to who dominate in the sixth
century, there is no doubt that the Church and the state continued to be
major landowners within the lands remaining to the empire after the
s ]GR I, coil. i, nov. 12 (p. 20.33sq.). For patrocinium, see Tinnefeld, Die friihbyzantinische
Gesellschaft, pp. 36-44: Jones, LRE, vol. 11, pp. 775-8: Brown, The World of Late Antiquity,
pp. 36-7: L. Harmand, Le Patronat sur les collectivitis publiques des origines au Bas-Empire
(Paris 19 57), pp. 427fT. and 448fT. Patronage functioned quite simply: a community
placed itself under the protection of a powerful person (at first, usually a military officer
with troops at his disposal, sometimes even a whole garrison: later also private persons.
such as a powerful landowner in the district), in order to obtain some protection from state
officials or tax-collectors, or to render assistance in some local feud or conflict with
another landlord. In return, the protector or patron received recompense in cash or kind:
but he could extract greater returns, through the peasants' mortgaging their holdings to
him, for example. Frequently, peasants found it simplest to hand over their land to their
new landlord and receive it back again with security of tenure and tenancy. as his coloni.
In this way, many originally independent and free smallholders became the tenants of
more powerful landowners, including the Church.
9 For example, Ostrogorsky, Geschichte, p. 112. Ostrogorsky's basic argument was that
these developments promoted the more-or-less complete replacement of the traditional
system of latifundia estates and the colonate by a patchwork of free peasant communities,
from among whom the soldeirs of the thema forces were enrolled, a process set in motion
by the Emperor Heraclius. See also Stein, Studien, pp. 157fT. This basic thesis was given a
slightly different nuance, although the general idea remained, by the Soviet historian
M.Ya. Siuziumov, 'Nekotorye problemy istorii vizantii', Voprosy istorii 3 (1959), 98-117.
according to whom the seventh and early eighth centuries witnessed the final transform-
ation from the slave mode of production to a proto-feudal state of development.
1o See for example, F. Winkelm ann, 'Zum byzantinischen Staat (Kaiser. Aristokratie, Heer)'.
in Byzanz im 7. ]hdt., pp. 161-288. esp. p. 198: Tinnefeld, Die fruhbyzantinische Gesell-
schaft, pp. 98-9.
Rural society 129
t4 The Church, for example, was permitted to sell ofT land both to the fisc and to private
persons under specific circumstances- as when it had debts to make good. See Justinian.
Nov. 46, proem; 1: 2: 6.2: 120.4: the Church could also sell land in order to raise funds for
the release of prisoners from the enemy. See Justinian, Nov. 65 (a. 538).
Rural society 131
in any district. If bishops had left. it is unlikely that many lay landowners
would have stayed to be killed or captured. But the abandonment of their
lands made possible both the imposition of authority from a new source
and the casting-off of the ties between landlord and tenants' obligations on
the part of the peasantry. I will discuss this and related developments
below. 15
One of the most frequently cited texts in this debate is the ninth-century
Life of St Philaretus the Merciful, a Paphlagonian landowner of some
means who gave up his considerable wealth in charitable acts and who
was compelled to surrender properties he could no longer adequately
exploit, to the advantage of his neighbours, both richer landowners and
the villagers of the area. 16 Even taking into account the probable exagger-
ations in the number of animals and properties Philaretus is supposed to
have possessed (designed to emphasise the extent of his generosity and
piety), it is clear that Philaretus stood for a landowner of considerable
wealth, presumably a character not unfamiliar to those who read or heard
the hagiographer's account. His livestock included 600 bullocks, 100 pairs
of oxen, 80 pack-horses and mules/donkeys, 800 horses, 12,000 sheep:
while he owned 48 large parcels of land distributed over a wide area,
including also land in the areas of Pontus and Galatia. He was born,
according to the Life, in 702: and it is reasonably clear from the description
that his estates were for the most part inherited from his family. 17 His
neighbours included other landowners, 18 as well as smallholders: and it
seems equally logical to infer that the history of such estates reached back
well into the seventh century. Philaretus himself was regarded by the small
farmers and peasants around him as a powerful landowner: while it is
clear from the rest of the narrative that the most powerful and wealthy
elements of the ruling class, both in the provinces and in Constantinople,
regarded him as their equal. 19
15 See Haldon, ·some considerations', 97f., and ·some remarks on the background to the
iconoclast controversy', BS 38 (1977), 161-84, see 174f. For the relevant canons of the
Quinisext, see Mansi XI. 9458-D (canon 8), 9518--C (canon 18), 960C-E (canon 37),
961A-C (canon 39). For the tenth-century evidence, see the Fiscal Treatise (ed. DOlger),
p. 116.2-3: 118.42-119.1: and cf. 119.6-7.
16 M.-H. Fourmy and M. Leroy, 'La Vie deS. Philarete', B 9 (1934), 85-170; and see also
L. Brehier. in B 1 ( 1924), 177-90.
17 See J.W. Nesbitt, 'The Life of St Philaretos (702-92) and its significance for Byzantine
agriculture', Greek Orthodox Theol. Review 14 ( 1969), 1500'.: H. Evert-Kappesowa, ·une
grande propriete fonciere du Vllle siecle a Byzance', BS 24 (1963), 32-40.
1s Vita Philareti, 117.
19 See H. Kopstein, ·zu den Agrarverhaltnissen', in Byzanz im 7. ]ahrhundert, pp. 1-72. see
63f., although historians are divided as to whether Philaretus was a landed magnate or
merely the son of a wealthy peasant family which made good. See, for example, M. Loos,
'Quelques remarques sur les communautes rurales et la grande propriere terrienne a
Byzance, VI1e-x1e siecles', BS 39 ( 1978), 3-18. see 9fT.
132 Byzantium in the seventh century
That large private estates existed, therefore, side by side with the estates
of state and Church in the late seventh and eighth centuries is clear. There
seems no reason to doubt that they had continued to exist, and to come into
being, throughout the seventh century. But Philaretus' own background
and that of his family remains unknown, and a question mark must remain
over the issue of the degree of physical continuity of such estates.
The text of the Vita Philareti also refers to the large estates of the Church
as something that is taken for granted in provincial life: and it refers to
villages of independent peasants, who own and farm their own holdings
and who pay taxes directly to the state. 20 And this brings us to the next
question, namely, what was the extent of such village communities within
the empire? And what is the significance of the so-called Farmers' Law for
this question?
The Farmers' Law is usually thought to date from the last twenty years or
so of the seventh century or the first two decades of the eighth century. It
appears to be a privately sponsored compilation, although this does not
exclude the possibility of its having been consulted by officials with judicial
authority. and it was designed to regulate property-relations and tenure
within an agricultural-pastoral community - a village - the majority of
whose occupants seem to have been independent smallholders. but among
whom were to be found various categories of lessee and tenant, as well as
domestic slaves and wage-labourers or journeymen. Its legal foundation is
at least Justinianic, and some aspects may well be pre-Justinianic. The date,
however. does remain very uncertain, and it may well be a compilation of a
later period. In this respect, arguments based upon it must be treated
carefully, although it is possible to argue that the relationships described
therein can be applied with hindsight to the period with which we are
concerned.
Now it has been argued by several historians that the Farmers' Law is
good evidence for (a) the dominance of such free village communities in the
Byzantine world at this time (and at the expense of the earlier dominance of
large senatorial latifundia); and (b) the strong influence of Slav social
institutions, in particular the obscina or commune, on Byzantine peasant
society, a result of the settlement by the state of large numbers ofSlavs from
the Balkans in Asia Minor. 21
20 Vita Philareti, 117: for the Church estates, see ibid., 15.26: 157.5 (Philaretus' grandsons
handed their lands over to a convent).
21 For the Fanners' Law (nomos georgikos) see W. Ashburner, 'The Fanners' Law', ]HS 30
(1910), 85-108: 32 (1912), 68-95 (text. translation and commentary). There is a
Rural society 133
The first argument is based on the existence and widespread dissemi-
nation during the medieval period of the Farmers' Law itself and on
evidence from the ninth and tenth centuries which suggests that commu-
nities of peasant proprietors subject directly to the fisc formed a central
element in the rural population of the empire. 22 The second argument is
based on the known introduction of Slav colonists into the empire and on a
failure to consider adequately other elements which might have contri-
buted to this apparent increase in peasant proprietorship which are .inter-
nal to late Roman and Byzantine social and economic relations. 23
In fact, as has been shown, the growth in the numbers of such commu-
nities, their increased importance to the economy of the state and the
related changes in the basic system of taxation - from the late Roman
capitatio/iugatio to the middle Byzantine land- and hearth-tax- can all be
explained within the context of developments internal to the dynamic of
relations of production in the late Roman social formation, although
external factors - warfare on the one hand, immigration on the other -
certainly played an important role.
We have seen that those who worked the land can be divided into a
number of categories, both from the legal and from the economic point of
view. But the proportion of free tenants paying both taxes and rents, of
coloni liberi who were effectively treated as free tenants after they had
cultivated their holdings for thirty or more years, and of small-scale
wide-ranging discussion. For the best recent survey of the problems and the literature. see
Kopstein, 'Zu den Agrarverhaltnissen', 40fT.: P. Lemerle, 'Esquisse pour un hlstolre
agraire de Byzance: les sources et les problemes', RH 219 (1958), 32-74, 254-84: 220
(1958), 42-94: see 219 (1958), 32-74: and the revised, English, translation: The
Agrarian History of Byzantium from the Origins to the Twelfth Century. Sources and Problems
(Galway 1979), pp. 32fT. For an attempt to date part of the contents of the Farmers' Law
to sources of the pre-Justinianic period, see N. Svoronos. 'Notes sur l'origine et la date du
Code Rural', TM 8 (1982), 487-500. Svoronos' analysis suggests that many features of
the code or law predate the codification of Justinian I and are drawn from texts of an
earlier period which were available to the compilers of the later seventh century. But this
has been heavily criticised and shown to be based on dubious methodological suppositi-
ons. See L. Burgmann, 'Ist der Nomos Georgikos vorjustlnianisch?'. Rechtshistorisches
Journal! (1982), 36-39.
For the arguments over Slavisation, see for example E.E. Lipsic, Byzanz und die Slawen.
Beitrdge zur byzantinischen Geschichte des 6. -9. ]ahrhunderts (Weimar 1951), pp. 30fT. with
literature: but see the detailed discussion of Ostrogorsky, Geschichte. pp. 113-14 and note
3. A more recent review of the problem is presented in R. Poptodorov, 'Siedi ot slavjans-
koto pravo v'v Vizantijskoto'. lzvestija Crkov Noistoric. i Arkhiv. Institut, Sofija 11 (1984).
126-37, which argues that both the Ecloga and the Farmers' law show traces of a
barbarisation and Slavisation of classical Roman law: although. as with the earlier
arguments, the methodological grounds upon which such conclusions are based are not
very satisfactory.
22 For text, tradition and dissemination of the Farmers' Law. see also the detailed comments
of Ostrogorsky, Geschichte, p. 7 5 note 10; and J. Karayannopoulos. 'Entstehung und
Bedeutung des Nomos Georgikos', BZ 51 (1958), 357-73.
23 See Ostrogorsky, Geschichte, pp. 113f. and note 3.
134 Byzantium in the seventh century
peasant emphyteutees, paying a fixed and possibly very low rent (and often
holding their leases, which were transferable, in perpetuity and hereditari-
ly)24 seems to have become increasingly important during this period, as
the relevant imperial legislation demonstrates. Just as significantly, the
later Byzantine term for a dependent peasant, paroikos, is to be found in this
sixth-century legislation, 2 5 referring, however, to a lessee of land, a locator
(or colonus, in one of its original meanings). This points the way to the
gradual assimilation of all three categories of tenant smallholder into a
single body of tenants, paying a rent to their landlord and tax to the state,
bound to their properties according to late Roman law or to their lease
(although, as we have seen, emphyteutic lessees could cede or sell the land
- that is, the lease - to a third party, and were often regarded, at least in
respect of non-Church lands, as the possessor and not simply the locator, or
tenant).
It is important in this connection to note that the Ecloga of Leo Ill and
Constantine V places a great deal of emphasis on this particular form of
contractual relationship, which again seems to point to its importance at
this period. 26
In the first half of the seventh century, the Life of Theodore of Sykeon
portrays a western Anatolian society of free peasant smallholders and
communities, in which the community clearly plays a role as a corporate
body; the Life refers likewise to peasant farmers fleeing from the tyranny of
their landlords 27 and to the existence of large estates belonging to the
Church of the nearby city of Anastasioupolis. 28 The late seventh-century
Fanners' Law similarly refers to the village community - ;, TOu xwpiou
xoLv<im]~ - and to the communal lands belonging to the village as a
24 See above: and P. Lemerle, The Agrarian History of Byzantium from the Origins to the Twelfth
C£ntury. Sources and Problems (Galway 1979), p. 25.
2s See Justinian, Nov. 7, proem, 1 (a. 535); Nov. 120.1 proem (a. 544); C] I, 2.24. proem; I,
34.1. The term occurs earlier for coloni in a variety of documents, see A. Deleage. La
Capitation au Bas-Empire (Paris 194 5 ), pp. 182ff.
2& See in particular the comments of M. Kaplan, 'L'Exploitation paysanne byzantine entre
l'antiquire et le moyen age (VIe-vme siecles): affirmation d'une structure economique et
sociale', in V. Vaviinek, ed .. From Late Antiquity to Early Byzantium (Prague 1985),
pp. 101-5, see 102f., and 'Remarques sur la place de l'exploitation paysanne dans
l'economie rurale'. in Akten des XVI. Internationalen Byzantinisten-Kongresses, ll, 2 (Vienna
1982), pp. 105-14 ( = ]OB 32), seep. 107f. with references. Kopstein, ·zu den Agrarver-
haltnissen', p. 66, argues that paroikos relates only to ecclesiastical lands and their leases.
In fact, as Kaplan suggests, the tenn begins with this general meaning, but had by the
early ninth century begun to acquire the meaning later attributed to it (a dependent
peasant) as a result of the rapid spread of this system of leasing land, and its replacement
of the colonate. See Ecloga (ed. Burgmann), 12.1-6.
27 Vita Theod. Syk., 147.49sq. (fleeing colonus): 98.1sq.: 114.1sq.; 115.2sq. etc. (free pea-
sants); 143.1 (the village community).
2s Ibid .. 76.1sq.: and cf. 34.6-7 for the lands of the Church ofHelioupolis in Bithynia.
Rural society 135
whole. 29 There seems little reason to doubt that the Farmers' Law, com-
piled on the basis of extracts from the Codex Iustinianus and the customary
law of part of the empire and designed to regulate the institutions of the
independent peasant village, represents a relatively ancient tradition both
socially and economically. 30 There is no reason to doubt either that such
communities existed in an unbroken tradition throughout the seventh
century: for although the point is stiU debated, it seems that the Farmers'
Law presents nothing in its regulations or assumptions that is not already
present in the late Roman village community. 31 But the terminology has
undergone a certain evolution: the term georgos ('YErop-y6c;), which could
refer to both coloni adscripticii or liberi, or yet again a free smallholder or a
lessee (locator, £f.L<pUTEUTTt c;) in the fifth and sixth centuries, occurs in the
Farmers' Law to describe the members of the village. Since the latter
clearly hold land, over which they have sole jurisdiction and which they
are free to leave, the term can refer to the last three categories only. 32
The Farmers' Law describes the relationships which might come before a
court within the village community: it makes it clear that social differenti-
ation was a normal element of the community: wealthier and poorer
smallholders, and hired labourers, are mentioned, for example. It describes
an economy of cereal, fruit and vine cultivation, of sheep and cattle raising:
it also frequently refers to the sub-tenanting of holdings among the vil-
lagers, and to the fact that some villagers might also be the tenants of
larger landowners - individuals or institutions - from outside the village. 3 3
29 See in particular on this question the old but still very valuable work of A.P. Rudakov,
OCerki Vizantiiskii kul'turi po dannim greceskoi agiografii (Moscow 1917 and London 1970),
pp. 1740'. For the village community, see the Farmers' Law, art. 81.
1o See the literature in notes 117 and 118 above; and St. Maslev, 'Die soziale Struktur der
byzantinischen Landgemeinde nach dem Nomos Georgikos', in F. Winkelmann and
H. Kopstein, eds., Studien zum 7. ]ahrhundert, pp. 10-22, see 10-12.
31 See the summary of the debate in Maslev, 'Die soziale Struktur', and Svoronos, Notes sur
l'origine et la date du Code Rural, esp. the final comments on p. 500.
12 See the evidence summarised by Kopstein, 'Zu den Agrarverhaltnissen', pp. 41f. For the
wide application of georgos - originally limited just to coloni - during the later sixth
century, see P. Lemerle, The Agrarian History of Byzantium from the Origins to the Twelfth
Century (see note 21 above), pp. 200'.
33 See the Farmers' Law, esp. art. 9 and 10 for the tenant (mortites) of the (larger) landowner
or landholder. In general on the content of the Farmers' Law, see Kopstein, 'Zu den
Agrarverhaltnissen', pp. 41-8 and 49-53: Maslev, 'Die soziale Struktur' (note 30 above):
and H. Kopstein, 'Zu einigen Aspekten der Agrarverhaltnisse im 7. Jahrhundert (nach den
juristischen Quellen)', in Studien zum 7. ]hdt., pp. 23-34, see 290'. The morti arrangement,
which involved a rent of only ten per cent on the income from the land, seems to represent
in practice, if not in name, the earlier emphyteutic lease, designed to enable the landowner
to keep land under cultivation by offering a relatively attractive arrangment with tenants.
As we have seen, such leases were increasingly employed through the sixth century, see
below, and note that the Ecloga knows only emphyteutic and ordinary leases. The term
morti does not occur, and it is tempting to assume that the morti arrangement was the
equivalent of the emphyteusis.
136 Byzantium in the seventh century
It refers to the common land of the village: and it refers to the practice of
bringing abandoned land back into cultivation and dividing it among
(some) members of the community. The common grazing of livestock on
the fields after the harvest was also a feature - normal in many peasant
societies, of course. 34
The relationship between such a community and the state is referred to
only obliquely: when a peasant is unable to gain a livelihood from his land,
whether he has rented a part of his holding to another (being unable to
farm it himselO in return for a portion (usually a halO of the resulting yield:
or whether he has rented all of his holding, taking up work for others on a
waged basis: or whether he has fled, unable to pay his taxes and his debts,
then the burden of taxation was transferred to those who could maintain
his plot. If no one was in a position to do this, the whole community was
made responsible for the taxes owed, although possibly - as in the ninth
and tenth centuries - a reduction in the total owing was made in order to
avoid the impoverishment of the remaining members of the village. If, after
a certain (unspecified) time, the land was still unoccupied, it was- along
with other untenanted holdings - formally confiscated by the state and
redistributed to members of the village collectivity. 35
I will deal with this question in more detail in chapter 5. But there is no
explicit evidence in the Farmers' Law that communal fiscal solidarity was
firmly established.
The Farmers' Law therefore seems to represent a village community not
too different from those known from Anatolia, Syria and other regions of
the empire in the sixth century. The differences which have been noted
provide no real objections to continuity of basic structure and social
organisation. For example, there is evidence in the late Roman metrokomiai
(or extended villages) of Syria and Egypt for a regular redivision of
holdings, an absence of family property and less emphasis on the rights of
individuals to occupy and cultivate abandoned village land. In theory -
although the legislation itself hints at the reality being rather different-
such community land could not be held by an outsider. The village
community of the Farmers' Law, in contrast, has both heritable family
For social differentiation in this sort of community. note the opposition between the
'landowners of the village' and the ordinary 'inhabitants' (tenants, leaseholders etc.) of
the village in the Vita Theod. Syk., 116: 118: for the 'leading men' of the village, see also
ibid., 114: and Vita Philareti, 137.23. Cf. Loos, 'Les Communautes rurales', 9 with
references: Patlagean, Pauvreti economique, p. 265.
34 For example, P. Stirling, 'A Turkish village', in T. Shanin. ed .• Peasants and Peasant
Societies (Hannondsworth 1971), pp. 37-48, see 40fT.; D. Thomer. 'Peasant economy as
a category in economic history', ibid., pp. 202-18: R.H. Hilton, Bond Men Made Free
(London 1973), see pp. 71f.
35 See Kopstein, 'Zu den Agrarverhaltnissen', p. 53 note 1: Lemerle, Agrarian History,
pp. 41-5.
Rural society 137
property and outsiders in the village: it expressly permits the cultivation of
abandoned land by neighbours: and it envisages no mass redivision of
holdings. But the late Roman evidence is specific to Egypt and Syria, while
the Fanners' Law represents a geographically and chronologically very
different context. And the evidence of the Life of Theodore of Sykeon does
suggest an Anatolian village economy and structure very similar to that
described in the Farmers' Law, but for a period one hundred years earlier.
In discussing the nature and evolution of rural communities, people who
argue for and against continuity must also bear traditional regional
variations and cultural differences in mind, as these examples suggest. 36
The juridical character of the village community seems to have evolved
also during the period from the sixth century to the later seventh or early
eighth, and these are developments which are important for our under-
standing of the role played by village communities in the social relations of
the seventh-century Byzantine world. Central to this question is the nature
of the relationship between the state, the cities and the countryside.
This change in juridical status can be detected in the term used to
describe and to define the village. In the late Roman period, certainly by
the sixth century, two terms of equivalent value - kome and chorion, the
former the traditional word for a village of small proprietors, the latter for
an inhabited holding or part of an estate within a single fiscal unit - were
used to describe village communities. 37 The reasons for the semantic
equivalence of the two, as has been demonstrated, lie in the fact that, as the
development of the colonate and smallholding came to dominate on large
36 See especially Kaidan, Derevniya i gorod, pp. 31fT., for the metrokomiai. Lemerle, Agrarian
History, pp. 7f. believes that the metrokomia with its collective liability for taxes was
already in existence in the fifth century as the standard form of non-dependent village
throughout the empire. M. Kaplan, 'Les Villageois aux premiers siecles byzantins (VIe-xe
siecle): une societe homogene?' BS 43 (1982), 202-17 (see 206f. and note 31) argues in
contrast that it was a limited phenomenon occurring in some eastern districts only.
Partly, the debate revolves around the technical meaning of the terms Of.LOX1lv<rov and
Of.LOOOUAOv in respect of the allocation of deserted lands (epibole). But as }ones, LRE, vol.
II, p. 815 note 10 5 points out, the terms refer to fiscal census units, not necessarily
communities in the collective sense, thus supporting Kaplan's contention.
As far as concerns the area to which the Farmers' Law was originally intended to apply,
it should be noted that pastoral activity occupies more than fifty per cent of the text's
interests. Regulations concerning livestock, especially cattle, outnumber those dealing
with agricultural activity. The Anatolian plateau, and especially the central and eastern
sections, present themselves as obvious candidates. But this remains still in the realms of
hypothesis.
37 Original sense of kome: Libanius, Discours sur les patronages, ed. L. Harmand (Paris 1955).
15 (cap. 4) and 17 (cap. 11). For a comment, see G. Dagron. 'Entre village et cite: la
bourgade rurale des we-vne siecles en Orient', KO£JI(I)Jiia 3 (1979). 29-52. For the
original sense of chorion: Digest X. 1.4/5 (168): and for a comment, M. Kaplan, Les
Propriitis de la Couronne et de l'Eglise dans l'empire byzantin (?-Vf siecles) (Paris 1976)-
for kome = vicus, chorion = fundus. See also Kopstein. ·zu den Agrarverhaltnissen'.
pp. 56fT.
138 Byzantium in the seventh century
estates (as opposed to the dominance of agricultural slavery), the small-
holders and tenants themselves usually dwelt in village communities on
their lands. As the social and juridical differences between free peasant
smallholders in komai on the one hand and dependent peasants on the
chorion or fundus of their landlord on the other, were gradually ironed out,
so the technical difference between the two terms vanished. Chorion
eventually predominates, both because it reflects an equivalent semantic
use of the term, but also because it bore a fiscal significance, representing
as it did in origin a single fiscal unit, the property of a landlord occupied by
his tenants. 38 As the cities ceased to function as the administrative centres
for the fiscal assessment of their regions, this role was transferred to the
smaller, but more immediately relevant, unit of the village. Chorion, with
its original fiscal significance, as well as its meaning of village, replaced
kome. But the development was a gradual one. Even in the Farmers' Law
the term chorion, while referring also to the village. still bears a wider
significance.
These changes in terminology are important, however. For while it
seems clear that the village community described in the Farmers' Law is in
itself not new, it is clear that such villages now represented a more
important element in the totality of the relations of production, especially
with respect to the state and its revenue-raising apparatus. The compi-
lation of the Farmers' Law and its wide dissemination themselves reinforce
this view: both in Byzantine society in general and in the eyes of the state
(and the officials who exercised judicial power in the provinces) the village
community was, or was becoming, an economic and social element of
much greater relative importance than had hitherto been the case.
Such communities existed throughout the later Roman world, and
indeed the nucleated settlement was the usual form of settlement outside
the cities, whatever the legal status of its inhabitants. 39 The qualitative
change in their role does not necessarily imply that there were more of
them. What it does suggest is that the village, and its individuallandhold-
ers, were becoming the key element in the state's administration of its
revenue-collection, in contrast to the later Roman period, when it had been
1s This development has been admirably summarised by Kaplan, •Les Villageois aux prem-
iers siecles byzantins', 203ft'.: see also Patlagean, Pauvreti iconomlque, pp. 241f.
19 For the settlement-pattern and the nucleated village, see Padagean, Pauvreti iconomique,
pp. 241fT.: Dagron, •La bourgade rurale': M. Kaplan, ·Quelques remarques sur les paysages
agraires byzantlns (VIe siecle - milieu XI~ siecle)', Revue du Nord 62 (1980), 156ft'. On
social differentiation, see note 3 3 above: for an example of a village of tenants (locatores,
emphyteutlli, coloni liberi- albeit not specified so exactly) see Vitll Theod. Syk., 34, 76, 162
(villages on the estates of a landowner from Ankara). See esp. N. Svoronos, ·sur quelques
fonnes de la vie rurale a Byzance, petite et grande exploitation'. Annales 11 (19 56),
325-35 (repr. in Etudes sur l'organisation intirieure, la sociiti et l'iconomie de l'Empire
Byzantin 11 (London 1973).
Rural society 139
the landlord and the city who had been the chief intermediaries. The
evidence from the later period. when the village or chorion as a fiscal unit
and as a juridical entity played the key role, demonstrates the results of this
evolution. 40 But the terminological changes evidenced by the increasing
use of chorion for village and then fiscal community, which begins in the
sixth century and proceeds throughout the seventh, show that the social,
economic and administrative shifts which this development represents
were already under way.
The village community of the Farmers' Law is thus a traditional element
of the rural economy. Indeed, the degree of social differentiation and
dependence presented in the Farmers' Law suggests that such communi-
ties already had a long history. The important question, however, is how
widespread such communities were in the Byzantine world. In the
Farmers' Law, it is clear that the dominant element seems to be the
independent smallholders who either own their land or rent it on a more or
less permanent basis -the last point is hypothetical, but is supported by the
context which we have described for the period. As we have also seen,
Philaretus possessed a number of holdings which will have been farmed by
his own tenants or by hired labourers. From later sources it is clear that
such holdings will normally have been part of other village communities
which had come under the sway of the landlord in question- the Farmers'
Law already presents some evidence of this process, which was itself
nothing new. According to the Vita Philareti, both the local big land-
owners and some of the villagers themselves were keen to occupy and
cultivate the lands which Philaretus himself was unable to keep up, again
a procedure implicit in the provisions of the Farmers' Law. 41 Together, the
Farmers' Law and the Life of Philaretus show that both independent
peasant village communities and large estates with interests in the sur-
rounding villages - as well as, presumably, villages of a greater dependent
status - were an integral part of the rural economy of later seventh- and
eighth-century Byzantine society.
40 For taxation in the tenth century (assessment, application, extraction), see F. DOlger,
Beitrdge zur Geschichte der byzantinischen Finanzverwaltung besonders des 10. und 11.
]ahrhunderts (Byzantinisches Archiv IX, Leipzig 1927 and Hildesheim 1960): G. Ostro-
gorsky, 'Die Uindliche Steuergemeinde des byzantinischen Reiches im X. Jahrhundert',
Vierteljahresschrift fiir Sozial- und Wirtschaftsgeschichte 20 (192 7), 1-1 08; Ch.M. Brand,
'Two Byzantine treatises on taxation', Traditio 25 (1969), 35-60: J. Karayannopoulos,
'Fragmente aus dem Vademecum eines byzantinischen Finanzbeamten', in Polychronion.
Festschrift Franz DOlger zum 75. Geburtstag (Heidelberg 1966), pp. 317-33; N. Svoronos,
'Recherches sur le cadastre byzantin et la fiscalite aux Xle-xne siecles: le cadastre de
Thebes', BCH 83 (1959), 1-166 (repr. in Etudes III).
41 For proasteion, see Lemerle, Agrarian History, and the Fiscal Treatise (ed. DOlger, Beitrdge);
see esp. M. Kaplan, 'Les Villageois', esp. 214, for the social differentiation in the Vita
Philareti.
140 Byzantium in the seventh century
The increased importance of such independent communities - as impli-
citly evidenced by the Farmers' Law and as is made clear from later
evidence (in the tenth century it is taken for granted that they represent the
central element in the state's fiscal operations)- may suggest also that the
number of such communities increased during this period. Some of the
possible causes of such an increase have been argued at length: the
abandonment by landlords of their country estates and the consequent
assertion by the peasants of their independence; 42 the immigration of large
numbers of Slav settlers with their community structure and organi-
sation:43 and the growing independence of peasant smallholders with
perpetual, or long-term, heritable leases, paying low and fixed rents to
landlords who may often have been permanently resident away from their
estates and properties. 44
There is little reason for doubting that the Slav immigrants, having been
settled by the state, constituted communities which held and cultivated
land to maintain themselves. Justinian IT's explicit intention was to
promote the availability of soldiers from this source, a point on which I will
say more in chapter 6. 45 But it seems unlikely that these transfers of
population affected the social structure of the rest of the empire in such a
way as to bring about administrative changes in the fiscal system and at
the same time promote a sudden development of free peasant communities.
Two fundamental causes seem to be operating. On the one hand, a
development which we have already noted, the change in emphasis in the
mode of exploitation of large properties: the gradual weakening of the
adscripted colonate in favour of long-term and often heritable leases on
state, Church and private lands tended to reduce the need for estate-
owners to supervise either directly or indirectly the production process on
their lands. As long as rents were collected, interference was unnecessary:
and anyway the producers were responsible under the terms of the leases
for the state taxes. This reduced both the administrative costs and the fiscal
obligations of landowners to the state. It removed the need for bailiffs,
except as rent-collectors. But it also weakened the landlords' direct control
over their property, while reinforcing the relationship between producers
and state. The juridical differences in status of the various types of producer
- coloni, leaseholders, smallholders and peasant proprietors - will thus
42 See Kopstein, •zu den Agrarverhaltnissen', p. 59, basing her argument on the fact that
evidence from the canons of the Quinisext in 692 for clerics fleeing their cities might also
apply to secular landowners.
43 Kopstein ibid. and literature: Charanis, •Ethnic changes', 42f. and 'Transfer of population',
143.
'" See above, pp. 134f.
45 See Theophanes, 347f. (A.D. 658), 364 (A.D. 689): see Charanis, 'Transfer of population',
143f.
Rural society 141
have become less significant to the fiscal requirements of the state, less
relevant to the process of production and less relevant to the landowners
themselves. The long-term cumulative result must surely have been a very
considerable increase in the numbers of communities subject directly to the
fisc, albeit made up of persons of very varied legal status. Most importantly,
the great majority will have possessed freedom of movement and have
been, in effect, possessores, even if not owners, of their holdings, whatever
their original condition. The peasants of the Farmers' Law, as well as those
in the Life of Theodore of Sykeon and those referred to in the Life of
Philaretus, must not be taken to represent a uniform body of free peasant
proprietors. They represent farmers with freedom of movement, freedom to
transfer their land or to transmit it to their heirs. All of these provisions
were possible within the terms of the normal emphyteutic lease, as well as
straightforward proprietorship. 46
On the other hand, we are probably dealing also with a change in
emphasis - reflected in the sources from the Farmers' Law on - in
government fiscal policy. The cities could no longer - and had been for
some time unable to - cope with the problems of taking fiscal responsibility
for their territoria. State officials had taken over the supervision and
administration of these tasks since the fifth and sixth centuries. As we have
also seen, landlords - estate owners - no longer played such a crucial role
in this context either. The state had, as a result, to concentrate on the level
at which wealth-production actually took place: in other words, on the
land and the communities which farmed it. The centres of production were
the villages, and these now replace the towns or cities in the fiscal
administrative structure of the early Byzantine state. In a much more
significant way than before, the village comes to occupy a central position
in the society and the administration of the empire from the later seventh
century onwards.
The basic taxes had been assessed in the sixth century on the capitatiol
iugatio equation, according to which land was taxed relative to its produc-
tivity when under cultivation (or otherwise exploited), and the agricultural
producers (or animals grazing on pasture land) were taxed only in associ-
ation with productive land. 47 Supposedly, the last reference to this system
46 See the remarks of M. Kaplan, 'Remarques sur la place de I' exploitation paysanne', 106f.
with literature, and the comments on the rise of emphyteutic leasing in the sixth century
above and in chapter one infra.
47 See chapter 1.
142 Byzantium in the seventh century
occurs for Sicily during the first years of the first reign of Justinian 11; 48
between then and the reign of Nicephorus I (802-11) a major change took
place, when tax was no longer raised on the basis of the combined
assessment of capitation and iugation, but by separate assessments, the
kapnikon, or hearth-tax: and the synone, or land-tax. The former was, in
effect, a tax on the household-property of the adult members of a house-
hold: the latter was a tax on .productive land.
It has further been argued that a change took place at this time in the
methods by which the state tried to maintain the continued productivity of
the land. Abandoned or otherwise uncultivated holdings in the later
Roman period had, from the fourth century at least, been transferred to the
neighbouring landowners or landholders, who were made responsible for
the taxed normally pertaining to it. This system, referred to as the epibole
(tOn aporon), or adiectio sterilium, had by the later ninth century been
replaced by a different system, in which the state intervened directly to
exempt abandoned properties until the owner or his/her heirs could bring
it back into cultivation again. If this had not happened within a period of
thirty years, then the state simply took it out of its original register and
fiscal district and gave it to a new owner.
Now, in spite of the arguments of several scholars, the old system seems
still to be in operation in the Farmers' Law, although not explicitly referred
to as epibole. Thus, while there was a change in terminology, the new
system does appear only from the second half of the ninth century. 49
It has generally been assumed that the abandonment of the older system
of assessment based on the capitatio/iugatio formula- which reflected the
needs of the state to ensure that land was cultivated in order to secure its
revenue- demonstrates that the lack of manpower which gave rise to it no
longer existed: in other words, that manpower was no longer a problem.
And it has been argued further that this is because of the growth in the
number and extent of communities of free peasants, and in particular the
48 See E. Stein, 'Vom Altertum zum Mittelalter. Zur Geschichte der byzantinischen
Finanzverwaltung\ Vierteljahresschrift fiir Sozial- und Wirtschaftsgeschichte 21 (1928),
158-70, see 150 and 152: G. Ostrogorsky, 'Das Steuersystem im byzantinischen Alter-
turn und Mittelalter', B 6 (1931), 229--40, see 237: the references are in the accounts of
the Lives of Popes John V and Conon (Libtr Pontificalis, I 366.8-10: 368.19-369.2).
49 See Haldon, Recruitment and Conscription, pp. 52f.; Lemerle, 'Esquisse', RH 219, 60f..
263f.: Agrarian History, pp. 46f.: and esp. J. Karayannopoulos, 'Die kollektive Steuerver-
antwortung in der friihbyzantinischen Zeit'. Vierteljahresschrift fur Sozial- und Wirtschafts-
geschichte 43 (1956), 289-322: Kopstein, 'Zu den Agrarverhaltnissen', p. 47 and note 4.
For the first reference to the kapnikon, see Theophanes, 486.29-487.1: and Theophanes
cont. 54.4 for the rate at which it was raised (2 miliaresia per household). In general. see
Ostrogorsky, 'Die landliche Steuergemeinde', 51fT.: DOlger, 'Beitrage', 52 (but with a
different view on its origins from that of Ostrogorsky ).
Rural society 143
10 (1961), 53-7: Kopstein, 'Zu den Agrarverhaltnissen', 59: W.E. Kaegi, jr., 'Some
reconsiderations on the themes: seventh-ninth centuries', ]6BG XVI (1967). 39-53.
Lemerle, Agrarian History. pp. 48fT.• places great emphasis on the importation of Slav
populations in relieving the labour-shortage. But see below.
52 See, for example. the comments of }ones. 'Capitatio and iugatio', 291f.: and esp. Goffart,
st See above. the canons of the Oulnlsext. the miracles of St Theodore at Buchalta. the
archaeological and narrative evidence for the abandonment of urban sites, the catalogue
of Arab raids Itself, year by year. Note also M. Kaplan, 'L'Bconomle paysanne dans
l'Brnplre Byzantln du ve au xe slkle', Kilo 68 (1986), 198-232, see 221-2. who surveys
the disastrous effects of such hostile activity on peasant agricultural production: and d.
the Plscal Treatise (ed. DOiger, <rtfge), 116.2-3, 119.1. Note especially canon 95 of the
Qulnlsext, which notes that the ecclesiastical authorities were faced by a number of
problems as a result of the large number of refugees coming out of Galatla (Mansl. XI.
9848-B). But see also Haldon. ~e Mlr&cles of Artemlos and Contemporary Attitudes'.
p. 34 and n. 8 for some problems with this text.
55 The VIta Phllaretl ( 115) notes that PhUaretus lost much of hls livestock to Arab raiders: the
Fiscal Treatise details enemy raids as the cause of Insecurity and the abandonment of land
by even the better-ofT peasants- see 116.2-3, 119.1.
56 Ps.-Methodlus, Apolcalypu, see XI, 9-17 (the text makes explicit mention of the abandon-
ment of cities, the enslavement of the population, the destruction of crops, as well as the
decline In the population of the affected districts): Haldon, 'Ideology and social change',
168 note 74 with literature.
Rural society 145
cla I and II, for Phrygia Salutaria, Caria and Lydia; but also for Blthynla, in
the Opsilcion district neighbouring Constantinople. 57 .Areas such as Blthy-
nia clearly suffered greatly during the Arab siege operations from 674 to
6 78, and the long-term effects of this warfare must have been apparent for
many years. But Arab raids penetrated deep into Anatolla on many other
occasions and, while frontier regions and areas where the Arab forces
wintered or were regularly present will have been most affected, it would
seem that nowhere was entirely free from harassment and economic and
demographic disruption. ss
The generally unquestioned assumption that there was a demographic
increase in Anatolia at this time, therefore, seems to be fundamentally
flawed, based on a set of hypotheses that have little foundation in the
sources for the period, and which Indeed are in clear contradiction to the
logic of the situation which the sources do portray. Ostrogorsky's carefully
developed thesis is based, in effect, on three elements: the destruction or
disappearance of large estates: the supposed establishment under Heracllus
of soldiers' lands: and the assumption that the Farmers' Law represents the
generality of rural communities throughout the empire. None of these is, in
fact, more than a hypothesis: the first two are extremely improbable, and
there is certainly no evidence of any substance in their favour. The
Farmers' Law, as I have suggested, does represent an increase in the
importance of such communities and may represent also an increase in
their numbers. But I do not think that this is enough to assume the
veritable social and demographic revolution for which Ostrogorsky argu-
ed. 59 On the contrary, the evidence seems to point the other way: and
while the transfer of Slavs in such large numbers must have improved or
stabilised the situation, the fiscal response of the state, in eventually
severing the link between land and labour for tax purposes, actually points
in the opposite direction to Ostrogorsky and those who have followed his
s1 See Zacos and Veglery, vol. I, pt. l, pp. 190f. table 33 (dated to the year 694/5).
58 The best synopUc account of this warfare Is to be found In Lllle, Die byza11tlnlsche Realctlo11,
see pp. 7611'.: also Haldon. 'Ideology and social change', 184.
59 See Ostrogorsky, Geschlchte, pp. 110fT.: Gulllou, 'Transformation des structures·. 77, also
argues for increased agricultural productivity during the seventh and eighth centuries
and Into the early ninth. Over such a long period (during the later part of which the
empire's lands were a good deal more secure than In the earlier part) he may be correct-
but his argument rests partly upon the assumption that the state could only intensify Its
demand for revenues If productivity had Increased. an assumption which Is dubious.
While it is true that a peasant subsistence economy has only a limited potential for
quantitative extension before lt collapses in on Itself (see W. Kula, An P~onomlc Theory of
the Feudal Systern: Towards a Model of the Polish Econorny. 1500-1800 (London 1976) see ·
pp. 28fT. and 16511'. for comparative data), the desperate situation of the Byzantine state in
the later seventh and early eighth centuries must have made Increased demand on limited
resources inevitable. But lt will have been the form that this demand took that was crucial
to Its potential success.
146 Byzantium in the seventh century
reasoning. Shortage of manpower can traditionally be met by landlords
and/or tax-collecting institutions in one of two ways (dependent also, of
course, on which options were available as cultural and political possi-
bilities). The first is to tie the labour force to the land, a process which
involves close supervision by the state, a stable population, the co-
operation of the landowners and landlords, and - as far as possible -stable
political conditions. This was the route taken by the Roman state dwing
the fourth century, a process which continued into the fifth and sixth
centuries with decreasing momentum. It was a pattern followed also in
Eastern Europe, for example, from the fifteenth century, as population
decline became apparent, and as the flight of peasants to hitherto unex-
ploited lands outside seigneurial political control threatened to damage the
economic interests of the feudal class of landlords. 60
The second way is to attract labour power through offering or accepting
land on conditions and terms relatively advantageous to the cultivator:
low rents, for example, or a low rate of taxation, heritable tenures, freedom
of movement, freedom to alienate the property or the lease and so on. This
pattern was partly followed in England for a period after the devastation
caused by the Black Death. 61 It seems also to have been followed in the
East Roman world during the sixth century and after, and the popularity
and spread of advantageous emphyteutic leases, or similar contractual
forms, during this period certainly seems to represent already the
awareness of landlords, institutional or private, of the advantages such
leases had in retaining their agricultural labour force, and in bringing back
uncultivated land into productive use. 62
Now, in the seventh-century context described above, is it really likely
that the state 'relaxed' its fiscal policy because sources of labour were
plentiful? It seems most improbable. In fact, it must have been faced with a
major difficulty in terms of the effectiveness of its legislation, for it was
clearly simply impossible to enforce regulations which compelled coloni, for
example, to remain on their holdings or to impose fiscal solidarity on
communities of smallholders which may well have resulted in mass aban-
donment of the land, under the conditions we have described for many
areas. Parts of Anatolia, and indeed of the Balkans (or those districts
remaining in Byzantine hands), were at times full of refugees of one sort or
60 See, for example. M. Dobb, Studies in the Development of CApitalism (London 196 7).
pp. 530'.; R.H. Hilton and R.E.F. Smith. The Enserfment of the Russian Peasantry (Cambridge
1968), pp.l-2 7: and for a summary of developments throughout Eastern Europe, ADder-
son, Passages, pp. 252fT.
61 See G. Duby, Rural Economy and Country Life in the Medieval West (London 1968 ).
pp. 72ff.: and see M.M. Postan. 'The fifteenth century', Economic History Review 9
(1938-9), 16~7.
62 See chapter 1. and pp. 134f. above.
Rural society 147
another, seeking safety, or work, or both. Every Arab raid set elements of
the population in motion, even if flight was only to a local fastness: many
of the larger and safer urban centres In the west and north-west of Asia
Minor must have contained far more people- who needed food and shelter
- than they could adequately cope with. And even if this did not affect all
areas at the same time and in the same degree, it represented a more or less
continuous state of affairs from the 650s and 660s well into the first half of
the eighth century. Not only coloni, whether liberi or adscripticii, but
agricultural producers with freedom of movement, will have been
affected. 63 The net result was that the close connection forged over the
preceding centuries between a settled population and its land was, in many
regions, broken. Land was abandoned, even if only temporarily, and this
meant an immediate reduction in resources and, in particular, provisions
for the persopnel of the state - the army especially. Faced with the
impossibility of enforcing the older legislation, and the need to find some
alternative way of raising revenues, as well as of restoring abandoned land
to productive use, here was reason enough for remodelling the traditional
system of assessment, even if only selectively at first.
But a more compelling reason exists, and one which helps to locate the
change in the middle years of the seventh century.
As we shall see in chapter 5, there are good grounds for believing that
the greater part of the state's revenue had, from the late 650s if not already
in the 640s, been assessed in kind, primarily in order to maintain and
support the armies or themata which, from the early 640s, began to be
cantonned across Anatolia. In itself, the procedure was not new, a part of
the regular assessment of many areas having always been collected in
produce for the provisioning of the army. But a result of the generalisation
of this practice was that the land-tax itself came to be referred to by the
term traditionally applied to a compulsory purchase or levy of provisions
and materials for the state, especially the army. The term in question is
synone or, in Latin, coemptio. The only context for such a shift, from a cash
assessment and collection to one carried out mostly in kind, can reason-
ably be shown to be the period with which we are concerned, the 640s and
650s. That the change had occurred already by the later seventh or early
eighth century is nicely confirmed by the Farmers' Law, where the regular
land-taxes on a property are referred to as the extraordina of the public fisc
(TQ E~Tpa6p3Lva TOU 81} f.LOO'LO\J AO)'O\J ). 64 Now the term extraordinaria
had referred exclusively to exceptional levies above the usual assessment
and could in no way have applied in the sixth century, for example, to
61 See in particular the 95th canon of the Quinisext already referred to (Mansi XI. 984B-E).
regarding the refugee problem in Asia Minor.
64 Farmers' Law art. 19 UGR 11, p. 66).
148 Byzantium ln the seventh century
regular taxes. The synone or coemptlo, on the other hand, was just such-an
extraordinary levy and would be perfectly well described in this way. 65 As
the hitherto limited practice of collecting a portion of the state revenues in
kind was thus applied throughout the empire to the land-tax, so the terms
which had described extraordinary levies In kind seem to have been
generalised and applied to the ordinary assessment on land. The common
element was collection in kind.
There is indeed some evidence to suggest that a reorganisation of the
land-tax assessment had taken place by the 660s. In about 667. an
lmperlalfussio or command was Issued, ordering the drawing-up of tax-
rolls for the populations of Calabria, Sicily, Sardinia and Africa. The same
lusslo ordered also the registration of units of assessment- capita - and the
raising of a ship-tax from the landowners of the said provinces. 66 The
order coincides, of course, with the presence of the Bmperor Constans 11 in
Sicily and reflects accordingly the needs of the court, army and Oeet at that
time. In 681 another imperial iusslo was issued, by which the number of
capita. or units of assessment, and the rate of collection of the coemptio,
along with other yearly assessments, was reduced for the population of the
papal patrimoniallands In Sicily and Calabria. 67 These two texts together
suggest a significant development. In the first place, the drawing-up of new
tax-registers (diagrafa) implies a major reassessment or reorganisation of
fiscal liabilities. In the second place, the coemptio - synone - is treated
explicitly as a regular, yearly assessment, a character which it had never
65 See the detailed discussion in J.P. Haldon: 'Synone: Re-Considering a Problematic Term of
Middle Byzantine Fiscal Administration', BMGS 18 (1994) 116-53 (repr. ln itkm, Stllu,
Army and Society in Byzantium [Aldershot 199 S] VIn).
66·-uiir PontljJcalls, I, 344.2: 061ger, Rtgtsun, no. 234.
67 u•r Pontlftcalls, I. 366.8: Dtilger, Rtgtsun. no. 250. Note also Lfber Pontlftcalls. I.
368.19-369.2, according to which an Imperial command to Pope Conon In about 687
reduced the taxes of the papal patrimony In Brutttwn and Lucanla by 200 annonacaplta
per annum. The term used strongly suggests a unit of assessment upon which the
calculation of the tax- annonalsynoni- was based. By the 730s the system was well
established. An edict of Leo Ill of 7 31 for Slclly and Calabria orders the Increase of the
taxed by thirty-three per cent and on the papal patrimonlal lands the entering or adult
male taxpayers and their heirs on the tax-registers. See Theophanes. 410.8: cp6pou.;
xaq>a~Lx~: OOiger, Rtgtsten. no. 300. Whether this latter procedure can be taken as
evidence for the existence of the lcapnllcon or Ita ancestor -since male heads or households
only are to be registered -Is uncertain. For the letter ofTheodore the Studlte (seep. 149
below). see PG IC. 929-33, esp. 932B, and the detailed discussion on the whole question
of distributive and contributive tax-assessment In N. Olkonomld~. 'De l'lmp6t de distri-
bution a l'lm~t de quotlt6 apropos du premier cadastre byzantln (7e- ge sl~cle)', ZR Vl26
(1987), 9-19- the first really to address this crudallssue. Of course, mlllarlsla were ftrst
Issued under Leo Ill so that, If the kapnllcon or Its ancestral form were already In existence
as a cash levy, lt would have been raised In either copper follels or silver hexa&rams. But
neither the copper nor the silver coinages were particularly stable In the later seventh
century, and this must have presented a number of problems. Possibly, then. lt Is to Leo ID
that the Introduction of the lcapnllcon must be ascribed. For the coinage, see Hendy. Studies.
pp. 494-6 and 498-501.
Rural society 149
possessed in the late Roman period. The occurrence of coemptio and capita
together, the former representing the actual tax, the latter the units of
assessment, raised regularly. is good evidence for the existence by this
time of the new procedure. The date of the two orders, applying to the
West, would tend to support the date and the reasons suggested for Its
probable introduction in the East in the 640s or 650s. It also suggests
the way in which the later kapnikon was to evolve. as a separate assess-
ment on heads of families in fixed dwellings. calculated differently from
the capltalsynone system, but clearly fixed to the notion of residence, as
the name implies.
The synone element of the later kapnikon/synone pair can thus be taken
back with very great probability to the 640s or 650s. There Is no reason to
assume that the kapnikon element - whether under that name or not - was
not originated at the same time. The older assessment was. after all, a
land-tax which combined both agricultural land and livestock and other
property in a single calculation: the new procedure may simply have
meant the separate assessment of each. Given the preconditions described
already, and the need to raise a very large part of Its revenue In kind, it
must have made good fiscal and administrative sense to add to the original
assessment, based on both capita and luga and now raised in kind, a second
assessment. For while the collection of the land-tax In kind will have
reduced some of the state's difficulties, it was also much less flexible than a
collection based in cash: and the overall effect must have been a reduction
In the amount of actual wealth thus expropriated. The introduction of a
'new' tax, raised on households - which is what the term kapnlkon clearly
implies - may have been Intended to compensate for this by Introducing a
more flexible (for the state, at any rate) element into the equation, to be
raised in cash.
A letter of Theodore the Studlte, dated to the year 801, offers some
valuable evidence in this context. Referring to the fact that the Brnpress
Eirene had substantially lightened the burden of many tax-payers. it
remarks in particular that the need for the poor to engage ln extra (paid in
cash?) work. not to free themselves from poverty, but to be able to pay the
tax-collectors the levy 'which cannot be combined',ls now over. This levy,
it states, has existed for a long time: and it has been suggested that this is a
reference to the kapnlkon, a flat-rate hearth-tax, levied at a rate of two
millaresla per household, which cannot be acquitted In kind or in any other
way except in coin. Like any flat-rate levy, therefore, it probably hit the
poorest members of the community hardest. As we have seen, the kapnlkon
is first explicitly mentioned for· the reign of Nicephorus I. although the
context implies that it was already then old and well established. It seems
not unlikely that it, too, should be taken back into the seventh century. to
150 Byzantium in the seventh century
the time when the state was obliged to split its major tax-assessment on
land and persons into two portions.
A second point in this connection concerns the nature of the assessment
itself. A recent study has pointed out that, whereas the late Roman
assessment was distributive, that is to say, the state fixed its total revenue
requirements (as far as it was able) in advance, and then distributed the
demand across the different units of assessment, the middle Byzantine
system was contributive, that is, taxes were assessed on the basis of the
ability of individual units of assessment to pay. The assessment could vary,
therefore, according to the wealth of the tax-payers as well as the demands
o( the state. The split between the assessment on land and the fixed rate on
households which underlies the difference between synone and kapnikon
may well represent the first step in this shift. Oikonomides has collected
evidence which suggests strongly that the weight placed by the state on
oaths in respect of statements of property-value and wealth in the later
seventh century and up until the early ninth century (again a situation
changed by Eirene's reforms mentioned in the letter of Theodore the
Studite and evidenced also in a novel ascribed to her reign) is a sign that
such a system was possibly already in operation. A distributive system did
not require such accurate information, since demands were issued accord-
ing to state requirements only, not the amount of taxable wealth available.
It is precisely the conditions of the seventh century which we have
described - population movement, insecurity of agriculture and rural
production in general in many areas - which may have forced the state to
fall back upon a contributive assessment, secured on the basis of central
assessments of the wealth available from specific regions and specific
tax-payers. Censuses in this context will have been unavoidable.
The loosening of the direct tie between tax-liability and land with labour
will have had several consequences. In the first place, it had the advantage
for the state that refugee populations (which could hardly be punished as
the old laws demanded) were no longer in breach of imperial legislation- a
trivial point in some respects, but important with regard to the authority of
the government. Secondly, it represented an effort to regain some at least
of the 'lost' tax-payers - who, according to the traditional system of
assessment, were only liable if they cultivated land - by making the
'hearth-tax' or kapnikon (in its ancestral form) independent and separate
from the possession of land. Households or heads of households were
henceforth liable to tax regardless of their relationship to the land. This
alteration, while it must have been difficult to carry through, necessitating
many detailed censuses throughout the empire, will also certainly have
increased the tax -revenue, since it taxed the inhabitants of cities and
non-agricultural communities, too, unless they received specific exemp-
Rural society 151
tion. 68 Thirdly, the change in the system of assessment must have recog-
nised and at the same time thereby promoted greater mobility, since -
although the state still required the maximum amount of land under culti-
vation - it was no longer possible rigidly to tie the agricultural population
to the land, nor was it in many regions at all practicable. In recognising the
change and in adjusting its methods of assessment, the state also averted
the possibility that tied coloni on state lands or over-taxed freeholders would
abandon their holdings and take up advantageous leases on Church or
private estates. 69 Fourthly, the conditions which gave rise to these changes
in fiscal practice must have promoted the frequent and widespread transfer
of liability for taxes and/or the cultivation of the land - the old epibole - as
individuals and sometimes groups of peasants gave in to the pressure to
escape hostile action or the effects of bad harvests, for example, both before
and after the" changes. The consequence was more regular supervision on
the part of the fisc over the affairs of the rural communities and, if the sixth-
century pattern is anything to go by, increased hardship on those landhold-
ers and communities who had to shoulder the extra burden. 70
Finally, and given the options for dealing with demographic decline dis-
cussed already, it is highly probable - and the existence of the Farmers'
Law amongst the texts, is good evidence for this- that the state both reass-
1,
The changes which I have outlined so far clearly did constitute a shift in the
relations of production in the countryside. While labour power was scarce,
cultivable land deserted and the state able to impose a uniform policy on the
rural population with great difficulty - the latter an effect of the divergent
interests of the older landowning element of the ruling class and the new,
particularly the military, service meritocracy - the condition of the
peasantry with regard to the assertion of its rights of tenure, and commu-
nal solidarity in respect of the fisc, had improved. But clearly, a number of
factors militated against the disappearance of large estates and of social
equilibrium in peasant communities.
In the first place, as we have seen, areas where a strong military presence
was required will have been easy prey to the landed property ambitions of
officers who, in return for protection from various threats - whether from
the enemy or from government officials, for example - will have been able
to gain power over smallholders and peasant communities and indeed over
the property of both resident and absentee landlords without much diffi-
culty. As in an earlier period, it would not have proved difficult to turn the
'protection' into a rent, until the patronage was effectively converted into
one form of possession or another through lease, donation or sale. 75
Social differentiation within peasant communities, the impoverishment
of some smallholders to the advantage of others (clearly present in the
Farmers' Law) and in particular the subdivision of holdings among heirs,
leading to holdings which might eventually become too small to be
economically viable, these factors must all have facilitated the encroach-
ment of the wealthier peasant on the land of the poorer, and of the big
estate owner on the lands of peasant communities in general. 7 6 Together
75 See, for example, Haldon, 'Some considerations', 9 S-8: Jones, LRE, vol. n, pp. 776f.
76 For the effects of these factors ln the late Roman period. up to the later sixth century, see
Jones, LRE, vol. 11, pp. 773-81.
154 Byzantium in the seventh century
77 Compare the effects of the severe winter and bad harvests of the years 927/8 and 938/9,
described in the novel of Romanus I which dealt with the results (DOlger, Regesten,
no. 628: text: ]GR I. pp. 205ft'.). See Ostrogorsky, Geschichte, pp. 227fT.: R. Morris, 'The
powerful and the poor in tenth-century Byzantium: law and reality', Past and Present 73
(1976), 3-27.
78 The best summary of the provisions of the Farmers' Law is to be found in Kopstein, 'Zu den
Agrarverhaltnissen', pp. 40-53: for Philaretus, see ibid., pp. 61-2 (summary of text):
Kaplan, 'Les Villageois'. 214f.
79 The tenants of Church and monastic lands are referred to in the early ninth century as
paroikoi, which may mean simply tenant or bear a more specific and technical meaning
similar to that of colonus liber of the legislation of Anastasius and Justinian. See Theo-
phanes, 486.30. For the technical meanings of paroikos, see Lemerle, Agrarian History,
pp. 179-82.
Rural society 155
advantages were, from a theoretical standpoint, evenly balanced. Indeed,
it ntust be emphasised that while the conditions of the seventh century do
seem to have resulted in a number of important and substantive changes,
not all areas within the empire, nor all of the rural population, will
necessarily have been affected in precisely the same way. Considerable
room for regional variation should be allowed within the general explana-
tory framework.
And so, while the overall effect of the economic and social dislocation of
the second half of the seventh century and of the opening years of the
eighth century seems to have been to promote an increase in peasant
mobility and in the numbers of peasant smallholders subject directly to the
fisc, with all the contingent results for the state and its fiscal apparatus,
already the age-old disadvantages which accompanied the subsistence
economy of the peasantry were leading to a new phase of polarisation
between estate owners and peasant communities, on the one hand, and
within such communities on the other. The evidence of the Life of Philare-
tus, for the later eighth century, and of the measures taken by Nicephorus I
with regard to the tax-burden of the impoverished peasantry, as well as
those of Eirene in respect of taxes which affected the poorest members of
society in the provinces and in the capital, make this much clear. 80
The origins of the provincial landed elite, the 'aristocracy' of the ninth
and tenth centuries and after, are to be sought for the most part in the
same social and economic dislocation and turmoil as the increased mobi-
lity and numbers of the peasant freeholders. Whereas the latter were
spread geographically throughout the empire (at least, there is nothing to
contradict this assumption), the later evidence for the location of the more
powerful provincial families suggests that it was precisely in areas of
relatively low population density, and which formed the wide band of
territory constituting the frontier zone, that this section of the ruling class
had its origins.
It has already been demonstrated by several scholars that the dominant
elements of the Byzantine ruling class in the period from the ninth to the
eleventh centuries originated in the eastern themata of Anatolikon, Kappa-
dokia, Paphlagonia, Charsianon and Boukellarion. 81 Out of the forty-seven
8° Theophanes, 486.23-6; see Haldon, Recruitment and Conscription, p. 50 note 87. For
Eirene's reforms, see the letter of Theodore the Studite of 801 (PG IC, 929-33) with note
67 above.
81 See especially Sp. Vryonis, jr., 'Byzantium: the social basis of decline', GRBS 2 (1959).
159-78, see 161f.; Vryonis 'The internal history of Byzantium during the "Time of
Troubles" (1057-1081)' (Diss., Harvard 1956), pp. 1730". and 390f.; and The Decline of
Medieval Hellenism, pp. 24f and list. See also A.P. Kaidan, Social'niy sostav gospodstvuius-
cego klassa Vizantii XI-XII vv. (Moscow 1974), pp. 195, 204 and lists. More recently
Winkelmann has shown how the development of nomina gentilia is, initially, to be found
among these provincial families. The degree to which this reflects the bias of the sources
156 Byzantium in the seventh century
family names located by the sources either explicitly or by implication
(ownership or large-scale estates), thirty derive from the districts of Anatoli-
kon, Kappadokia and Paphlagonia. Similarly, Kazdan's analysis of the
origins of the eleventh- and twelfth-century civil elite shows that, whereas
the great majority of the known members of the military elite came from
central or eastern Anatolia and the Caucasus, with smaller percentages
from Macedonia, Bulgaria and outside the empire, the majority of the civil
elite hailed from Constantinople or its immediate hinterland, coastal
Greece and coastal Anatolia, with the Aegean region. 82 The close connec-
tion between the homelands of the military elite, and the non-urban and
plateau zone of Asia Minor, with its predominantly pastoral economy, and
the concomitant identification of the greater part of the civilian elite with
the urbanised or more densely populated regions of the empire, becomes
immediately apparent. 83 Now it is significant that not only was the
military elite drawn for the most part from areas of a chiefly pastoral
economic character where towns had usually been limited to those dis-
tricts in river valleys, for example, which could support them through a
limited amount of arable exploitation: 84 they also represented those areas
which, from the seventh to the later ninth century, formed the frontier, as
mentioned above. 85 Their association with a pastoral economy was
ancient, 86 and some were the site of large-scale imperial stud-farms in the
later Roman period. 87 The same type of economic activity was still carried
on in the tenth and eleventh centuries, as the Life of the magnate-turned-
monk Michael Maleinus implies: the property he gave away on taking holy
orders consisted chiefly of herds of cattle and flocks of sheep. 88 Cedrenus
notes that the estates of Eustathius Maleinus in the themes of Boukellarion
and Charsianon consisted mostly of large ranches: 89 and already in the
fourth century (and therefore probably earlier) some senatorial magnates
and their interest in the political-military conflicts of the empire, on the one hand, and a
more-or-less accurate picture, on the other, remains uncertain. But the general context of
the growth of such families would suggest that they do illustrate an actual tendency. See
Wlnkelmann, Quellenstudien, passim and pp. 211f.
82 Kaf.dan, ibid. Clearly, a complete catalogue is not possible: but the bias of the sample
offered by the sources is suggestive and is supported by other evidence discussed below.
83 See Haldon, ·some considerations', 95ft'., esp. 97-8: Kaidan. ibid.: Hendy, Studies,
pp. 100fT.
84 The best survey is that of Hendy, Studies, pp. 90-100.
85 See Lllie, Die byzantinische Reaktion. map at p. 336: and cf. Hendy. Studies, map 25.
86 See Strabo, Geographica, XIT. 2. 7fT.
87 Jones, LRE, vol. 11, pp. 767-9: E. Kirsten, art. Cappadocia, in Reallexikon fur Antike und
Christentum IT (1954), cols. 869f.
88 Vie deS. Michel Maleinos (ed. L. Petit, in ROC Vll (1902), 543-603), see 557.31sq.
89 Cedrenus, vol. n. 448.9-16: Scylitzes, 340.
Rural society 157
context of ongoing warfare and military conflict may well have been more,
rather than less, conducive to the appropriation of lands and the evolution
of large-scale landed property in the provinces during the seventh and
eighth centuries, at least where a pastoral economy dominated. 94
The implications of this concordance are considerable. In the first place,
it seems that the dominant position won over the period up to the tenth
century in these eastern and central Anatolian lands by this class of
military magnates was not necessarily replicated in the more densely
populated regions with a more strongly arable tradition. It has been
demonstrated that the newly reconquered territories in south-eastern and
southern Asia Minor and in northern Syria, taken in the period from the
middle of the ninth to the middle of the eleventh century, were almost
without exception kept firmly within state hands. 95 By the same token, the
military elite seem never to have established themselves as firmly either in
the European provinces or in the western and northern plains and littoral
of Asia Minor, areas where the heavily agricultural and densely settled
nature of the land made such a dominance much less straightforward. 96
This does not mean that large estates, relatively speaking, farmed by
tenants of varying degrees of dependent status, did not develop. But it is
clear that they did not develop on the same scale as in the East,
undoubtedly a result of both lack of opportunity on the part of the local
military and state establishment: western Asia Minor, for example, was
never subject to the degree of population collapse and economic dislo-
cation that typified the history of the eastern regions during the seventh
and early eighth centuries. It also suggests that the geography of owner-
ship in the predominantly agricultural zones, with a much greater parcelli-
sation and subdivision of the land among both peasantry and estate-
owning families, prevented the rapid consolidation of large tracts of land
into estates. This was clearly the case in the sixth century and before. In
western Asia Minor, for example, in the district of Magnesia on the River
pp. 164-8; and the comment of Kazdan and Constable. People and Power in Byzantium.
p. 51.
94 See Winkelmann, Quellenstudien, esp. pp. 28f., for example. But comparative evidence
from the later period of Byzantine history -from the twelfth century in Asia Minor. along
the Byzantine-Turkish frontier region, and from the middle of the thirteenth century.
along the border regions between the empire of Nicaea and the Turks - suggests very
strongly that warfare and economic insecurity are not incompatible with a pastoral
economy and the growth of estates. See the comments of M. Angold, A Byzantine
Government in Exile: Government and Society under the Laskarids of Nicaea ( 1204-1261)
(Oxford 1975), p. 101: and also Vryonis, Decline of Medieval Hellenism, pp. 145-55. See
also C. Cahen, Pre-Ottoman Turkey: A General Survey of the Material and Spiritual Culture and
History c. 1071-1330 (London 1968), pp. 143ff.
95 See N. Oikonomides, Les Listes de preseance byzantines des IXe-xe siecles (Paris 1972).
pp. 355f. and 363; and Hendy, Studies, p. 104.
96 Hendy, Studies, pp. 85fT. (Balkans) and 132fT. (general discussion).
Rural society 159
The fate of the older landowning elite is uncertain, as we have seen, and it
is equally impossible to relate its fortunes to particular regions of the
empire or to specific patterns of landholding and their survival, or their
decline from the sixth century. On the other hand, something can be said
about the changes in the composition of the ruling class of the seventh-
century world, from which certain inferences may be drawn.
The chief landowners of the late Roman period had usually been
members of the senatorial order, which had since the fourth century
undergone an enormous expansion, chiefly a result of the Diocletianic
reorganisation, through which senators were initially excluded from all
but a few minor civilian posts. The military and most civilian posts of the
state were thenceforth supposed to be occupied by members of the eques-
trian order, membership of which depended upon office, granted by the
emperor. The senate itself was a mostly hereditary body, although new
members were regularly adlected by the emperor.100 As a result of Diocle-
tian's reforms, the senate lost much of its former political power, although
as a body it still represented the old aristocracy of land and office in the
West, and always had great social prestige.
This situation began to change during the fourth century. partly
because Constantine I began to employ members of the senatorial order in
the administrative machinery of the state on a much wider basis,
effectively ignoring the restrictions imposed by Diocletian. Through large
numbers of grants of senatorial status to outsiders the senate expanded:
99 See the remarks of Winkelmann, Quellenstudien, pp. 2 9-31, with sources and literature,
for the ninth century.
100 For the procedure, see )ones, LRE. vol. II, pp. 5 30f.
Rural society 161
1o5 See CTh. VI, 6.1 (a. 382) for consuls: and Zosimus, vol. 11, 40 for the title of patricius. The
Emperor Zeno had insisted upon the rank of consul or the office of praetorlan praefect in
order for the title of patricius to be bestowed (see CJ Xll, 3.3 proem), but Justinian
withdrew this ruling in 537 Uustinian, Nov. 62, 2.5). See Stein, Bas-Empire, vol. 11,
p.430.
106 Cf. CJ XII, 1.11 101 See Digesta I, 9.12 c.l and Jones, LRE, vol. IT, p. 529.
1os See Justinian, Nov. 62, proem and 1; CJ XII, 16.1 (a. 415 = CTh. VI. 23.1). Note Stein,
Bas-Bmpire, vol. II. p. 429: Jones, LRB. vol. 11, p. 535.
Rural society 163
113 See Justinian. Nov. 62. 1 and Stein. Bas-Empire. vol. n. p. 432 and literature. Justinian
also decreed (Nov. 62. 2. a. 537) that patricii were henceforth to have precedence over
those with consular titles and that precedence among this group was to be determined on
their having held one of the variety of consular offices (whether titular. honorary or
whatever). According tD this novel. the prefect of the city (praefectus urbls) was now to
have first place, followed by the 'other' patricii, then the consuls and consularll, and then
the praetorian prefects, magistri militum. and other lllustres. The conslstory (consistorium)
included leading members of the senate and the civil and military establishment appoin-
ted ad hominem: the magister officiorum. quaestor, comes sacrarum largitionum. comes rei
privatae. praetorian prefect (when present), comes domesticorum, comes excubitorum.
magister militum praesentalis. along with other former and titular holders of offices, as well
as those who were not formally members of the senate but whom the emperor wished to
consult. See Jones. LRE. vol. I. pp. 333fT. By the early seventh century. the sacellarius
seems also to have played a key role: he is referred to as the highest-ranking of the
senators present at the interrogation of Maximus Confessor (see PG XC, 88C: 101A-B:
113A-B). A description preserved in the tenth-century Book of Ceremonies (De Cerimo-
niis), 628.10-14 for the year 638 describes a senatorial procession of the endoxotlltoi
patrikioi, along with those of apo hypaton rank and others of senatorial grade down to
simple illustres.
11 4 See }ones' commentary. LRE. vol. 11. pp. 551fT.; and for evidence of continuity, especially
in the West. see Arnheim, Senatorial Aristocracy. pp. 103fT. and 155fT.
Rural society 165
11 5 For example, the magister militum vacans Martin us, in 53 5: and the three magistri militum
vacantes under the command of Belisarius in Sicily in the same year. See Stein, Bas-
Empire, vol. 11, pp. 323-4 and note 1: p. 430 and note 3.
116 For a more detailed analysis of titulature, see chapter 10 below.
166 Byzantium in the seventh century
of the empire, often endowed with titles of senatorial rank. 117 But persons
of Iranian, Slav and Germanic origins were also to be found. 118
At the same time, while there seems little reason to doubt that many of
the leading officers and persons mentioned in the sources in this connec-
tion did hold senatorial dignities, whether or not this was made explicit,
the position and role of the senate changes over the period under examin-
ation here. Traditionally, the senate had played, since the fifth century, a
central role in the selection and ratification of a new emperor - and during
the events surrounding a succession in general. It has been shown that this
was the case during the fifth and sixth centuries, as well as in the events
surrounding the election of Heraclius and his immediate successors. 119
And while, according to Justinian's novel62, the senate had by that time
entrusted its executive functions to the emperor, 120 it is clear that the
senate as a body, made up in part at least of active officials of state of
considerable power and wealth, along with other members of the landed
wealthy elite of the empire, continued to exercise a very great de facto
authority. Those who were included among the group of leading advisers
to the emperor had formed a cabinet within the older consistory and were
referred to as the proceres sacri palatii. They represented the real power at
the court. The senate and the consistory themselves - which from Justi-
nian's time were effectively equivalent bodies with a shared membership-
had few opportunities formally to intervene. Only at times of crisis, such as
when a problem over the succession arose, for example, were they able to
function as an independent body, usually to represent, as well as their own
117 SeeP. Charanis, 'The Armenians in the Byzantine empire', BS 22 (1961), 196-240, esp.
205f. and 'Ethnic changes', 32fT. See also W. Seibt, Die byzantinischen Bleisiegel in
6sterreich I, Kaiserhof (Vienna 1978), p. 165: Winkelmann, Quellenstudien, pp. 203fT.
and literature at p. 2 30 note 849. But note the more reserved position of S. Gero,
'Armenians in Byzantium: some reconsiderations', Journal of Armenian Studies 2 (1985),
13-26.
11s See Winkelmann, Quellenstudien. pp. 199fT. (mostly eighth century or later): H. Ditten,
Prominente Slawen und Bulgaren, pp.IOOff.: R. Guilland, 'Les Patrices byzantins de la
premiere moitie du VIle siecle', T6J.UX ei~ J.LvrJJ.I-71" K. L ilp,tiVT'ov (Athens 1960),
pp. 11-24 (repr. in R. Guilland, Recherches sur les institutions byzantines (2 vols .. Berlin
and Amsterdam 196 7), pp. 162-9) and 'Patrices de Constantin IV it Theodose m·,
Hellenika 23 (1970), 287-98 (repr. in Titres etfonctions Vlll).
119 See the detailed studies of Ch. Diehl, 'Le Senat et le peuple byzantin aux VIle et vme
siecles', B I (1924), 201-13: H.-G. Beck, Senat und Volk von Konstantinopel. Problemeder
byZtlntinischen Verfassungsgeschichte. in SBB (1966). pp. 1-75 (repr. in Ideen und Realitd-
ten in Byzanz XII (London 1972).
120 Justinian, Nov. 62, proem: 'Antiquissimis temporibus Romani senatus auctoritas tanto
vigore potestatis effulsit, ut eius gubematione domi forisque habita iugo Romano omnis
mundus subiceretur, non solum ad ortus solis et occasus, sed etiam in utrumque latus
orbls terrae Romana dicione propagata ... Postea vero quam ad maiestatem imperato-
riam ius populi Romani et senatus felicitate reipublicae translatum est, evenit ut ii, quos
ipsi elegerint et adminstrationibus praeposuerint, omnia facerent quae vox imperialis eis
iniunxisset ... '
Rural society 167
interests, those of the population of Constantinople and the ruling adminis-
trative circles. 121 The occasions on which senatorial intervention was
important during the sixth century are illustrative: the selection and
acclamation of a successor to Anastasius in 518; during the Nika riot in
532: during the reign of Maurice, when the senate formally advised the
emperor to treat with the khagan of the Avars: and before and during the
revolution which led to the downfall of Phocas. 122 In addition, of course,
the senate was present and played a formal role at all accessions and
acclamations: but its power as a body was, on the whole, less important
than the power exercised by its members as individuals within the
government.
In the seventh century this general pattern is repeated. The senate
appears to have played a formal role as one of the three constitutive
elements in -every imperial election (senate, people and army): in the
accession of Phocas, 123 of Heraclius, 124 of Heraclius Constantine - in the
last case the Armenian chronicler Sebeos emphasises the fact that Hera-
clius placed his son's future in the care of the senate, a fact which may
suggest the reason for the central role played by this body in the events that
followed, and hints also at the differences between the various factions
surrounding Heraclius on the one hand, and his wife and niece Martina on
the other. 125 In the confused events following the death of Heraclius
Constantine, the deposition of Martina and Heracleonas, the rebellion of
Valentinus and the accession of Constans II as sole ruler, the senate again
plays a crucial role and is, according to the words of the young Constans,
reported by Theophanes, the adviser to the emperor and the protector of the
people. Sebeos also notes the central role of the senate and lays stress on the
fact that it was the latter body which worked against the plans of the
general Valentinus to have himself confirmed as co-emperor. 126 Heraclius
seems to have placed a great deal of value on the senate and its support,
both in the proceedings against Priscus, the son-in-law of Phocas (and a
member of the senate himselO and in his dealings with the Avars. 127 The
12s See PG XC 88C; 113A-B: the sakellarios Troilus ranked highest among the senators. For
possible seals, see Seibt, Bleisiegel. no. 132, a seal of Troilus patrikios; and Zacos and
Veglery, no. 3061, seal of Troilus, apo hypatOn. See also PG XC 101A-B (Troilus and
Epiphanius, both patrikioi). Other senators of consular rank named include Paul and
Theodosius (PG XC, 960: and see 1090, 113A-B. 13 7B).
129 PG XC 113C. See also note 13 9 below.
130 PG XC, 1208. For Andreas, the son of Troilus, see Seibt, Bleisiegel, at no. 132: Theo-
phanes, 351.29: and P. Peeters, 'Une vie grecque du Pape S. Martin', AB 51 (1933). 259
and note 1. For the patricius Justinian. see Guilland, Recherches, vol. 2. p. 166.
131 Theophanes, 352.19sq. See Diehl, 'Le senat et le peuple', 208: also Michael Syr. XI. 13
(vol. II 455f.).
132 Nicephorus, 44.16-20.
133 Nicephorus. 48.12-14: Zonaras XIV. 26: Agathon Diac., 192. See Beck, Senat und Volk.
p. 31.
134 For Theodosius Ill see Theophanes, 390.20sq.: Nicephorus, 52.15sq. On these events.
see Beck, Senat und Volk. pp. 31 tT.
Rural society 169
of imported labour power, all promoted the importance and the numbers of
communities of independent peasant smallholders subject directly to the
fisc. By the early eighth century the sum total of all these changes and
developments adds up to a very different set of relations of production
within the Byzantine world of Asia Minor and the Balkans.
CHAPTER 5
173
174 Byzantium in the seventh century
another, all these lands were administered by this department, whose staff,
therefore, was considerable. Often, large tracts of whole provinces - as, for
example, much of Cappadocia I or Bithynia - belonged to the imperial
domain. The administration of this property was headed by the comes rei
privatae. His bureau (officium) was divided into a number of subdepart-
ments or scrinia, each responsible for specific functions: grants of lands,
rents, leases and so on. In each diocese and province were provincial staffs
to collect and supervise rents, and to administer the various consolidated
or dispersed estates. The revenues drawn from this source were employed
in the first instance in the maintenance of the imperial household, being
dispensed probably through its treasury, the scrinium largitionum privata-
rum. But the emperor could also draw upon the res privata as a source of
reserves for purposes of state or the granting of largesses.
Anastasius formalised this arrangement by setting up a new depart-
ment, separate from the privata, called the patrimonium, at the disposal of
the emperor and subordinate to the department of the sacrae largitiones (see
below) -the privata continuing to be used as a source of state and fiscal
income. Already in the later fourth century, the estates in Cappadocia (the
domus divina per Cappadociam) had been transferred directly to the charge of
the praepositus sacri cubiculi, the palatine official directly responsible for the
imperial household and its administration. Under Justinian, further
marking-off occurred, with the result that the res privata was divided by
566 into some five branches: the original res privata, the patrimonium, the
domus divina per Cappadociam, the domus dominicae (two sections, each
under curatores, administering estates whose revenues were allocated
apparently to the personal expenses of the rulers) and the patrimonium
Italiae under its comes (following the reconquest of Italy: it seems to have
been constituted of land confiscated from the Ostrogothic nobility and
rulers, as well as of older imperiallands). 1
t For a full and detailed treatment. see )ones, LRE, vol. I. pp. 412-2 7: Stein, Bas-Empire, vol.
I, pp. 174 and 341; vol. II. p. 67 and note 1. pp. 423fT., 472-3 and 748fT.: note also J.B.
Bury, The Imperial Administrative System in the Ninth Century, With a Revised Text of the
Kletorologion of Philotheos (British Academy Suppl. Papers I. London 1911), p. 79. who
assumes the curator mentioned in a novel of Jus tin 11 UGR I, coli. 1, nov. 1: a. 566 = DOlger.
Regesten, no. 4) to be an independent official in charge of both the Cappadocian lands and
the domus dominicae. a forerunner of the later megas kouratOr (d. Oikonomides, Presiance,
p. 318). According to a novel ofTiberius Constantine UGR, I, coli. 1. nov. 12: a. 578-82 =
DOlger, Regesten, no. 6 7) the domus divinae included also the patrimonium for practical
administrative purposes: and although several curatores are referred to in this novel. there
is every reason to suppose that the system was again centralised during the seventh
century - possibly before the Arab wars, possibly as a result of them. There may in any
case. as Bury supposes, have been several curatores under the disposition of a (megas)
kouratOr at Constantinople. perhaps that in charge of the estates of Hormisdas. See Jones,
LRE. vol. I, p. 426: Stein, Studien. p. 98 and note 7: the curator of the estates of Hormisdas
was clearly one of the leading officials in charge of imperial properties. See also the
Fiscal administration 175
The department of the sacrat largiUones administered bullion from gold
and sliver mines. as well as the mines themselves, together with the mints.
the workshops where parade armour was decorated with precious metals,
the production and collection of clothing (for historical reasons) and the
state dye-works. During the fourth century the armour-decorating work-
shops were transferred to the supervision of the magister officiorum. The
count of the sacred largesses (comes sacrarum largitionum) also issued the
donatives in silver and gold which the soldiers received. As with tile res
privata there was a central bureau with provincial staffs. The central
officium consisted of ten departments or scrinla, responsible for general
clerical matters, revenues, accounts, messengers, military donatlves,
bullion. diocesan reserves of gold, and mints: as well as the imperial
wardrobe, silver and silver coin, palatine silversmiths, copper, and (origi-
nally) arms and armour decorators. Bach diocese had a representative
from the department, and there were a number of regional treasuries
where gold, silver and finished clothing could be stored. The mints were
supervised from these points. In addition, the sacrae largitlones had repre-
sentatives in the cities, responsible for administering the revenues drawn
from confiscated civic lands: it also had its own transport service (like the
res privata): and it was responsible for the controllers of foreign trade, the
comites commerciorum. The Income of the largitiones derived from the
surviving cash taxes in gold and silver, customs and import duties, the
donations made by cities and the senate on the occasion of an imperial
accession (the aurum coronarium and aurum oblaticium) and quinquennial
celebrations, as well as the commutations received in lieu of recruits, the
aurum tironicum, and of military horses, each rated at about 25-30 gold
solidi. A cash assessment on land may also have provided some funds,
although the rate of assessment is unknown, as is the extent of application
of such an assessment. 2
The mints were probably the most important element in the administra-
tive machinery of the largitiones. They were run by procuratores and staffed
by monetarii, who constituted a hereditary group from the fourth century,
often quite wealthy, although by origin they were mostly imperial slaves.
Following the reconquests of Justinian's reign, there were mints at Con-
discussion of D. Felssel. 'Magnus. Megas et les curateurs des .. malsons divines" de Justin 11 a
Heraclius'. TM 9 (1985). 465-76. esp. 474f.; and M. Kaplan, 'Ouelques aspects des
.. malsons divines" du VIe au IXe siecle', in Mila11ges N. Svoronos (Paris 1986), pp. 70-96.
For the scrinlum largitlonum privatJJrunt, see Notitia Dig.• occ. XII. 4. Bury surmises (Admi-
nistrative SystetrJ, pp. 81-2) that part of the income from this source also went Into the
emperor's private treasury, the sacellun1. See below.
2 See )ones. LRB. vol. I. 'pp. 427-34; Stein, Bas-Brnpire, vol. 11, pp. 426f., 761f. and 766-9;
J.P.C. Kent. in B. Cruikshank-Dodd, Byzantine Silver Stllmps (Dumbarton Oaks Studies VII
Washington D.C. 1961), pp. 3Sff.: and the contribution of R. Delmaire, in Hommes tt richesses
I. 265-77.
176 Byzantium in the seventh century
stantinople, Thessaloniki, Carthage and Ravenna, the last two acquired by
reconquest, all producing gold coin: and at Nicomedia, Cyzicus, Antioch,
Alexandria (and temporarily also at Rome, Salona, Carthagena, and
Cherson) producing copper. During the reign ofMaurice, a mint was set up
in Sicily, at Catania: and dwing that of Heraclius, temporary mints were
established at Constantia in Cyprus and at Seleucia in Isauria (later at
Isaura itselO (from 582/3, and in 615 to 618 respectively). 3 The mints
themselves were organised at the diocesan level, and although this had not
been the original intention, since several of the mints actually pre-dated
the reforms of Diocletian and Constantine through which the dioceses were
established, the result in the sixth century was that the major dioceses had
each one mint for copper: while the minting of gold was limited to
prefectural capitals or their equivalents, that is, Constantinople, Ravenna
and Carthage.
The bullion for the coinage came from levies in kind where the land was
ore-bearing, from mining and panning, from confiscated plate (not always
inconsiderable amounts) and, chiefly, through the recycling of gold coin
via the fiscal machinery of the state back to the largitiones. From Valens
and Valentinian onwards gold coin was melted down in the provinces
before being shipped back to the capital, or the imperial comitatus, in
bullion form for re-minting. The export of gold was strictly prohibited, as
was the clipping of any coin, in particular gold. By these means the state
tried to recover the gold it issued in coin, although inevitably it was not
entirely successful. But as }ones notes, the frequent re-minting of the gold
must have constituted a crucial factor in the maintenance of the weight
and purity of the solidus. 4
In spite of their sizeable incomes and their functions, both the sacrae
largitiones and the res privata were over-shadowed by the praetorian
prefectures. The prefecture comprised a specific territorial area, subdivided
into dioceses, under vicarii, and then into provinces under local governors
with a variety of titles (moderatores, rectores and so on), each comprising a
group of civitates. The office of the prefecture was responsible for the corn
supply for the capital(s) and certain other cities, as well as for the costs
incurred in transporting this by the guild of state shippers or navicularii; it
was responsible for the rations or ration allowances, in kind or in cash, for
the army, civil service, and related departments of state, as well as the
3 }ones, LRE. vol. I, pp. 374 and 437fT.: A.R. Bellinger, Catalogue of the Byzantine Coins in the
Dumbarton Oaks Collection and in the Whittemore Collection, vol. I, Anastasius I to Maurice,
491-602 (Washington D.C. 1966), pp. 64f.: M.F. Hendy, 'On the administrative basis of
the Byzantine coinage, c. 400-900. and the reforms of Heraclius', Birmingham University
Historical Journal, 12/2 (1970), 129-54, see 140fT.: Ph. Grierson, DOC 11, 1. pp. 209 and
327-30.
4 Jones, LRE, vol. I. p. 4 3 Sf.
Fiscal administration 177
fodder allowance of officers and troopers in cavalry units and their civilian
counterparts. It was also responsible for the maintenance and operation of
the public post; for that of the state arms workers along with their
materials (although not for the arms factories or fabricae, which came
under the authority of the magister officiorum); and for the public works of
the provinces, levying labour and materials from local communities for
roads, bridges, granaries, post stations and so on. From Diocletian's time
the rate of assessment in kind (later commuted into cash) and the estimates
needed to meet this wide range of needs had been systematised into a single
general levy, raised each year, referred to as the indictio. The rate might
vary from year to year, however, according to need, and the assessment
was at least in theory not a fixed tariff. As the greater part of this
indictional levy was commuted to gold during the last years of the fifth
centwy, in the East, so the prefectures were able to build up reserves to
meet exigencies and thus, to a degree, make the maintenance of a single
established rate possible.
Until Justinian's reign, there were t~vo prefectures in the eastern part of
the empire, that of Illyricum and that of Oriens, the former based at
Thessaloniki, the latter at Constantinople. The size and wealth of the latter
gave it a pre-eminent position. During the reign of Justinian, the prefec-
tures of Italy (based at Ravenna) and Africa (based at Carthage) were
re-established (in 537 and 534 respectively), and as we have seen, the
quaestura exercitus was also set up. Map VI illustrates the diocesan and
provincial composition of the empire c. 565. 5
Since it is of some importance for an understanding of the development
and origins of the later provincial and central administration, it is worth
pausing for a moment to examine in greater detail the structure of the
prefecture of the East. Each diocese was represented by a scrinium
(although Egypt, which was otherwise an independent diocesan district
under the Praefectus Augustalis, was included in the scrinium for Oriens, to
which it pertained); there was further a scrinium for Constantinople, for
public works, for arms (the assessment and collection of materials for the
state factories) and other departments for the purchase of corn for Con-
stantinople and other cities: for the assessment and collection of the
annonae (rations) for the troops (referred to as the stratiotikon); and there
was also a prefectural treaswy or area, divided into two sections on
account of the size and complexity of the fiscal operations of the Eastern
prefecture, the general and the special bank (genike trapeza, idike trapeza).
The special bank was responsible for the assessment of the collatio lustralis,
the tax on merchant and craft sales introduced by Constantine I, but
5 See }ones, LRE, vol. I. pp. 3 7(}-2 and 448f. For map VI see p. 228 below.
178 Byzantium in the seventh century
1s See the original analysis of Stein, Studien, pp. 149fT.: also Bury, Administrative System,
pp. 86, 90 and 98: and emending Bury's identification, Oikonomides. Presiance.
pp. 313-14 and 316 with literature: Hendy. Studies. p.412: V.Laurent, Le Corpus des
sceaux de l'empire byzantin, vol. 11: L'Administration centrale (Paris 1981), pp.129-30 and
303fT.
16 Hendy, Studies, p. 412: cf. Jones, LRE. vol. 11. pp. 567f. on the sacrum cubiculum: Oikono-
mides, Preseance, pp. 314f.: Laurent, Corpus, vol. 11, pp. 383ff.
17 Bury, Administrative System, pp. 95f.: }ones, LRE, vol. I. p. 428. This department should
not be confused with the oikeiakon vasilikon vestiarion under the epi tou oikeiakou vestiariou
or protovestiarios. descended from the palatine comitiva sacrae vestis of the sacrum cubicu-
lum. See Oikonomides, Preseance, p. 305 with literature: Bury. Administrative System,
pp. 95f. and 125: Hendy, Studies, pp. 412-13: Seibt, Bleisiegel. p.184.
18 Jones, LRB. vol. I, p. 369, vol. 11, pp. 832fT. for the cursus publicus, its administration and
supply by the praetorian prefecture, and the inspectorate exercised by the master of
offices. See Bury, Administrative System, pp. 91-2: Oikonomides, Preseance, p. 311: D.A.·
Miller, 'The logothete of the drome in the middle Byzantine period'. B 36 (1966), 438-70:
Hendy, Studies, p. 608 and note 240.
19 }ones. LRE. vol. I. p. 414: Bury, Administrative System. p. 111: Oikonomides. Preseance,
p. 338: Laurent, Corpus, vol. 11, pp. 289-99.
°
2 Klet. Phil. 121.6: Oikonomides, Preseance, pp. 314f. and literature: H. Ahrweiler, 'Recher-
ches sur l'administration de l'empire byzantin aux IXe-x1e siecles', BCH 84 (1960),
1-109, see 43.
21 Klet. Phil. 15.15: Oikonomides, Preseance, p. 314: Ahrweiler 'Recherches'. 43: Dolger,
Beitriige, pp. 21f.
22 See Ahrweiler, 'Recherches', 67fT.: 43-4.
182 Byzantium in the seventh century
The function and responsibilities of the various fiscal sekreta of this period
are reasonably clear, although the sources of revenue for departments
such as the eidikon, for example, are difficult to determine. The genikon,
through its officials deputed to the provinces - epoptai, exisotai and dioiketlli
(only the last group of whom seem actually to have been based in the
themata)- was responsible for the calculation, assessment and collection of
the chief public taxes, the demosia, primarily the land-tax and the kapnikon,
or hearth-tax. 2 3 The stratiotikon was responsible for calculating the regular
and expeditionary requirements of the troops, who were paid through it,
and through the thematic protonotarios and chartoularios from the geni-
kon. 24 The later eidikon, in its original form of the idike trapeza of the
praetorian prefecture of the East, had probably functioned as a central and
provincial clearing-house for assessments in kind - ores, weapons,
clothing and so forth - before passing on the materials to the relevant
departments: iron, for example, to the state arms-factories under the
praetorian prefects, later supervised by the magister officiorum: 25 clothing
(assessed and collected by the department of the largitiones, although the
prefecture played a key intermediary role), passed on at provincial and
diocesan level to the actuaries of the military units. 26 In the same way, the
sacrae largitiones had stored and sold off bullion excess to the state's
requirements. 27 The later eidikon seems to have retained these functions (as
the regular use of both the forms idikon, special, and eidikon, dealing in
items in kind, suggests) 28 and certainly controlled the imperial arms
storehouses and was responsible, via the protonotarioi and stratigoi of the
themata, for the production and distribution of weapons and other military
equipment. 29 The public vestiarion, once an element within the largitiones,
had inherited that department's function with regard to mints and bullion,
as well as, apparently, the stores for the imperial fleet and iron for other
items of military hardware. 30 The sakellion exercised a general fiscal
23 See esp. DOlger, Beitrdge, pp. 14fT. and 47: Laurent. Corpus, vol. II, pp. 129-30.
24 See Haldon, Byzantine Praetorians, pp. 314-18 with literature.
2 s The scrinium armorum of the prefecture was responsible for this function: see Lydus, De
Magistratibus Ill, 4-5.
26 See C] XII. 1-4 (three constitutions addressed to the praetorian prefect. one to the comes
sacrarum largitionum ).
27 See Cruikshank-Dodd, Silver Stilmps, pp. 23ff.
2s See Stein, Studien, pp. 149-50: DOiger. Beitrdge, pp. 19-20 and 3 S-9: Laurent, Corpus,
vol. 11, pp.191-3: and esp. Hendy, Studies, pp. 628-9.
29 See Haldon, Byzantine Praetorians, pp. 316-17, 32~2 with sources and literature.
Jo See Klet. Phil. 121.15-26: Oikonomldes, Prisiance, p. 316: Bury, Administrative System,
pp. 95-7: Hendy, Studies, p. 412: Seibt, Bleisiegel, pp.184-S: Laurent, Corpus. vol. II.
pp. 353fT. The vestiarion may also have continued to operate weaving establishments or
supervise the production of cloth, as the existence of maglstri linteae vestis in the old
officium of the comes sacrarum largitionum might suggest: cf. Notitia Dig., Or. Xlll, 14: C/ XI,
8.14: although the majority of such establishments now came under the eidilcon.
Fiscal administration 183
The later system of fiscal and economic management, while clearly derived
directly from that known in the sixth century, has obviously undergone a
series of changes - changes which produced a less hierarchical and very
much more centralised set of institutions. It is the evolution from one to the
other that concerns us here.
In the first place, the central role of the sakellion and the sakellarios
deserves attention. The subdepartment of the sacellum within the sacrum
cubiculum had acted as a personal treasury for the emperors from the later
fifth century, possibly earlier, although the first reference to a sacellarius is
for the reign of Zeno. 35 Thereafter the proximity to the emperor and
31 Klet Phil. 121.3-14: Oikonomides, Preseance, pp. 314f. Its income derived in the first
instance from the res privata - the properties later under the megas kouratiJr.
32 Klet. Phil. 123.11-20; Oikonomides, Preseance, p. 318; Bury, Administrative System,
pp.100-3; cf. Jones, LRE, vol. I. pp. 425-7; the megas kouratiJr seems to have been a new
creation of Basil I, associated with the estates of the Mangana; although a single curator
had remained in charge of imperial estates (excluding those of Cappadocia) since the later
sixth century. See Kaplan, 'Maisons divines', 83fT.
33 Bury, Administrative System, pp. 124-5; Oikonomides, Preseance, p. 305.
34 For the protovestiarios, see note 17 above. The koitiJn was embraced within the oikeiakon
vasilikon vestiarion, although it constituted an independent section. For tribute, see DAI (De
Administrando Imperio) 50.53. See also Hendy, Studies, p. 227 and note 41; and DOiger.
Beitrdge, p. 25 note 3.
35 John of Antioch, frg. 214.4. Sacellarius was a title applied to a number of officials serving
in the capacity of treasurer to a particular department or individual, in the Church, for
184 Byzantium in the seventh century
consequent importance of the imperial sacellarius meant that officials
entrusted with this post occupy a more significant position in the imperial
administration than the position alone might warrant. Ad hominem
appointment of particular persons not formally connected with them to
military commands or other such specialised tasks was a common feature
of imperial administrative practice: and the sacellarius was on several
occasions entrusted with such missions. Narses was Justinian's sacellarius
between 530 and 538, and went on to high office: 36 the sacellarius
Rusticus was entrusted by Justinian with the delivery of money for the
army in Lazica: 3 7 the former sacellarius of Phocas was killed in 610: 38 the
sacellarius Theodore Trithyrius is referred to during the reign of Heraclius
by later chroniclers as leading imperial troops (in 635) in Syria; 39 while
the sacellarius Philagrius was entrusted by the Emperor Heraclius Con-
stantine with the protection of his son, the future Constans 11, as well as
with considerable funds in cash. 40 Sacellarii were thus becoming increas-
ingly important during the later sixth and the first part of the seventh
century: and indeed during the reign of Constans II, the sacellarius, referred
to as the leading dignitary of the palace, led the interrogation of Maxim us
Confessor and appears to have been one of the emperor's most trusted
political aids. 41
Not only was the sacellarius, therefore, one of the leading officials in the
imperial personal retinue, he and his department seem to have been
increasingly involved from the time of Justinian in the fiscal affairs of the
state: the delivery of pay to the troops, which seems to have been regarded
as part of his regular functions, 42 or (with a similar supervisory mission in
respect of military pay and recruitment) actually commanding military
example, or in the army: the sacellarius of the general Peter, magister militum in Numidia
(see PG XC, 112A, 113A) is mentioned during the interrogation of Maxim us Confessor in
the mid-seventh century. See Bury, Administrative System, pp. 80f.
36 Procopius, De Bello Persico. I. 15.31 (a. 530) and De Bello Gothico, IT. 13.16 (a. 538).
37 Agathias Ill, 2: see Bury, Administrative System, p. 85: Stein, Studien, p.146.
1s Chron. Pasch. 701: Nicephorus, 5.6.
39 Theophanes, 337.23, 338.3: Nicephorus, 23.12: see Lilie, Die byzantinische Reaktion,
p. 42: Stratos, Byzantium in the Seventh Century. vol. Il, pp. 64fT.
40 See Nicephorus, 28.12: John ofNikiu, 192. See Laurent, Corpus, vol. Il, no. 740, a seal of
Philagrius, koubikoularios and sakellarios. Philagrius is referred to by Nicephorus as 6 Twv
paaa.Aa.xwv XP"lJ.LcXTwv TaJ.&,wc;, as is Theodore Trithyrius at Nicephorus, 23.12, Leontius,
at ibid., 5.6, and Stephen. the sakellarios of Justinian II at ibid., 37.13, all of whom are
otherwise referred to by the specific title of sakellarios (Theophanes, 337.23: 338.3:
367.15: Chron. Pasch. 701), as we have seen. The seal provides final confirmation of the
views of Bury (Administrative System, pp. 84-5) and Stein (Studien, p.146) that the phrase
6 Twv paaa.Aa.xwv XP"l JJ.(iTwv TaJ.&,iac; is equivalent to sakellarios.
41 PG XC, 88C, 89A, 113B.
42 See notes 3 7 and 40 above: note Hendy. Studies. pp. 410-11. who points out that Pope
Gregory claimed to be acting as imperial sacellarius in paying the expenses of the local
troops in 595. See Greg. I. epist. V, 39 (MGH, Ep. I, p. 328).
Fiscal administration 185
47 See, for example, Zacos and Veglery. nos. 747: seal of Antiochus, koubikoularios, vasilikos
chartoularios and sakellarios (7th cent.): 911: seal of Leontius, koubikoularios, chartoularios
and sakellarios (7th cent.): 932: seal of Mauricius, koubikoularios, imperial chartoularios,
and sakellarios (650-750); 1365: seal of Philagrius, koubikoularios and sakellarios (7th
cent., and cf. 747, above; and 750: seal of Antiochus Philagrius, c. 550-650): 1678: seal
of anon., koubikoularios and sakellarios (7th cent.).
4H PG, XC . .I 20B: Mansi XI, 209C.
49 For the castrensis sacri palatii, see Notitia Dig., Or., xvii: and for a xa<rrpi]at.oc; Tile; -DE~ac;
TfXX1T'E,'Jlc;. see Vita Danielis Styl., 25: for the same official under Justinian: }ones. LRE. vol.
2, pp. 567-8 note 7.
so The autonomy and the momentum of organisation demonstrated by the establishment of
the imperial estates and the patrimonium in the later sixth century, independently of other
institutions. has already been noted by Kaplan, 'Maisons divines', esp. 92.
Fiscal administration 187
51 This development, and the numismatic evidence for it, has been fully analysed by Hendy,
'Administrative basis'. Justinian had effectively abolished the separate vicariates (diocesan
govemorshlps) of Asiana, Pontica and Oriens by combining them with the provincial
govemorships of Phrygia Pacatiana, Galatia I and Syria I respectively: those of Pontica
and Asiana were effectively restored after 548. See ]ones, LRE, vol. 1. pp. 280fT., 294.
52 Hendy, 'Administrative basis', 147-52, and Studies, pp. 417-20. The temporary mints at
Jerusalem and Alexandretta, at Constantia in Cyprus, at Seleucia and Isaura in Isauria,
are to be explained in terms of the exigencies of the warfare of the period 608-26/7
(Hendy, Studies, pp. 41 Sf.).
53 Chron. Pasch., 696 (cf. Theophanes, 297.20 who mentions his execution in 609).
54 Chron. Pasch. 721 :· 8eo&Oaw~ 6 iv8oE6-raTo~ 1TaTpixux xai. ~o'Yo-Di,.,~. For his identity as
a military logothete, see R. Guilland, 'Etudes sur l'histoire administrative de I' empire
byzantin: les logothetes', REB 29 (1971), see 25-6 and note 9: N. Oikonomides, 'Les
premiers mentions des themes dans le chronique de Theophane', ZRVI16 (1975), 1-8,
see 6 note 23: Hendy, •Administrative basis', 154: Studies. p.413. Against this, see
Haldon, Recruitment and Conscription, p. 34, note 43 with literature.
55 See Chron. Pasch. 694.8.
188 Byzantium in the seventh century
and that the supervisory authority of the sacellarius and his department is
similarly to be dated to this time, if not slightly earlier. In consequence, the
rationalisation of the remaining functions of the largitiones into the 'new'
and independent bureau of the vestiarion, likewise under the general
supervision of the sacellarius, must also date to approximately the same
time. 66 While this scheme is, to a degree, hypothetical, the implications
follow directly from Heraclius' proven reorganisation of the system of
minting quite logically, although the later sources, such as the so-called
Taktikon Uspenskij and the Kletorologion of Philotheus, both from the
ninth century, present an already evolved structure which may no longer
exactly represent the original form of these new departments. But the
mention of two logothetai, for the years 602/3 and 626, demonstrates that
the Greek title for the head of the chief fiscal bureau was already current. 67
Heraclius' reorganisation of the mints, therefore, may reasonably be
taken, at least partially, to reflect a wider piocess of fiscal administrative
reorganisation, a process which seems already to have commenced before
his reign, however, and which this reorganisation may have completed.
The causes of this process of centralisation are more difficult to locate
and can on the whole only be guessed at. The precarious economic posi-
tion of the empire in the last years of the sixth century certainly provides a
context. 68 But inherent structural tendencies within the organisation of
the fiscal-civil administration may equally well have been working them-
selves out. 69 The result seems to have been that the greater autonomy of
66 It is significant that the traditional system of control-stamps on silver plate associated with
the largitiones begins to break down at about this time, a point emphasised by Hendy,
Studies. p.413. See Cruikshank-Dodd. Silver Stilmps, pp. 31 and 45f. It is also significant
that the single zygostiltes in the bureau of the sakellion in the ninth century and later (see
T.Usp., 61.12; Klet. Phil., 121.8; 153.29; Oikonomides, Prisiance, p. 315 with sources
and literature; Hendy, Studies, pp. 317f.), responsible probably for controlling the purity
and weight of the coinage, appears on a seal of the seventh century (Zacos and Veglery,
no. 2803: John, skribiJn and imperial zygostiltes). Zygostiltes is here clearly an office, and
the epithet 'imperial' is therefore all the more significant. Whether the seal dates to the
period with which we are concerned here or to the later part of the seventh century, it is
evidence already that the functions of the earlier municipal zygostatai under the supervi-
sion of the praetorian prefecture (see CTh. XII, 7.2 = C]X, 73.2, emended: and cf. Justinian,
Edict XI) had probably been centralised within the bureau of the sakellion at an early stage;
given the mint reforms discussed by Hendy for the years 627-30, the latter date is very
probably the moment at which such a centralisation might have occurred. For the system
of control-stamps, and especially the gradual transfer of their administration to the city
prefect of Constantinople, as the department of the largitiones was progressively fragmented.
see D. Feissel. 'Le Prefet de Constantinople,les poids-etalons et l'estampillage de l'argenterie
au VIe et au VIle siecle', Revue Numismatique 28 (1986), 119--42.
&7 Note also the reference to a certain George, chartoularios of the sacred logothesion.
mentioned in a story from the last years of the reign of Heraclius or the first years of
Constans 11: see Miracula S. Artemii 25.29.
68 See chapter 1: and the summary ofJones. LRE, vol. I. pp. 298-315, esp. 305fT.
69 The development of two separate reserves within the Oriental prefecture, for example,
which appears in the last decades of the fifth century as a response to the fiscal
Fiscal administration 191
the two banks of the oriental prefecture on the one hand, and the increas-
ing intervention in, and supervision of. fiscal affairs by the sacellarius, the
emperor's personal treasurer, on the other hand- an effect of the lack of
cash resources and the multiplicity of demands on the limited revenue
available - coincided. The political-military collapse of the reign of Hera-
clius before 622-6 may have encouraged attempts to reorganise the state's
fiscal administration, to recognise some of the changes which had become
effective in the interim, and to continue and extend the process of central
supervision and control in respect of revenues, resources and expenditure.
As a corollary ofHeraclius' reorganisation of the mints, it is therefore likely
that the departments of the general, special and military logothesia, under
the general supervision of the praetorian prefect and the sacellarius,
together with those of the vestiarion and the sakellion, appeared in a form
which was recognisably that of the Byzantine rather than of the later
Roman state. The concomitant disappearance of the largitiones, and, with
them, of the final significant prop of the diocesan level of provincial
administration, together with the weakening of the power of the praeto-
rian prefect, will have had important implications for the later develop-
ment of the provincial civil administration, as well as the pattern of the
palatine establishment.
The lack of direct evidence concerning these developments has, of
course, turned this problem, and the related question of the origins of the
military provinces or themata, into the major vexata quaestio of this period
of Byzantine history. On the whole, it is now generally accepted that the
processes of both civil and fiscal, as well as military, reform or change were
gradual, beginning in the later sixth century, and concluded only during
the second half of the eighth century at the earliest. 70 Apart from the
administrative exigencies of the times, is illustrative of such tendencies: there is no reason
to suppose that the institutional framework of the state's fiscal administration did not
continue to develop, that is, that it was not a fixed, static block of organisational
relationships. For the fifth century, see Stein, Studien, p. 149 and Bas-Empire, vol. I, p. 221
and note 6.
70 The literature, as is frequently pointed out. is considerable. For the most recent general
surveys, see Lilie, Die byzantinische Reaktion, pp. 287fT. and 'Die zweihundertjahrige
Reform: zu den Anfangen der Themenorganisation im 7. und 8. Jahrhundert', BS 4 5
(1984), 27-39 and 19(}-201, see 27fT.: Haldon, Recruitment and Conscription, pp. 20fT.:
Hendr,. Studies, pp. 409fT. and 621fT. Of the older literature, the work ofJ. !'arayannopou-
los, 'Uber die vermeintliche Reformtiitigkeit des Kaisers Herakleios', ]OBG 10 (1961).
53-72, and Die Entstehung der byzantinischen Themenverfassung (Byzantinisches Archiv X.
Munich 19 59), esp. pp. 5ff. and 5 5-8: and Karayannopoulos, 'Contribution au probleme
des themes byzantins', L'Hellinisme con tempo rain 10 ( 19 56), 4 5 8-78: and cf. A. Pertusi,
'La Formation des themes byzantins'. in Berichte zum XI. lnternationalen Byzantinisten-
Kongress (Munich 1958), vol. I. pp. 1-40: and 'Nuova ipotesi sull' origine dei temi
bizantini', Aevum 28 (1954), 126-50, are all still important. See also J. Toynbee, Constan-
tine Porphyrogenitus and his World (London 1973), pp. 134fT. and 224ff.: and Oikonomi-
des, 'Les Premiers mentions': Kaegi, 'Two studies'.
192 Byzantium in the seventh century
references to the logothetai, and to the sakellarios and his important role
during the reign of Constans 11 already mentioned, the first references to
the leading officers of the developed establishment occur for the year
680. when certain high officials accompanied the emperor at the ses-
sions of the sixth ecumenical council. These are named in order as
follows: Nicetas, most glorious ex-consul. patriclus and master of the
imperial offices: Theodore, most glorious ex-consul and patricius, comes of
the imperial Opslklon and deputy general of Thrace: Sergius, most glori-
ous ex-consul and patrlcius; Paul, also most glorious ex-consul and
patrlcius; Julian, most glorious ex-consul, patriclus and logothete of the
military treasury: Constantine, most glorious ex-consul and curator of
the imperial estate of Hormisdas: Anastaslus, most glorious ex-consul.
patrlcius and second-in-command to the comes of the imperial excubitores;
John. most glorious ex-consul, patriclus and quaestor: Polyeuctes, most
glorious ex-consul: Thomas, also most glorious ex-consul: Paul. most
glorious ex-consul and director of the eastern provinces: Peter. most
glorious ex-consul: Leontius, most glorious ex-consul and domestic of the
imperial table. 71
Of the older establishment, the master of offices appears to have still
exercised important functions and counted among the leading officials:
and indeed he continued to exercise some of these functions well into the
eighth century. 72 Likewise, the curator of the imperial estates of Hormisdas
seems stlll to be functioning and may by this stage be the equivalent of the
later megas kouratOr, in charge of other imperial properties formerly
attached to the domus divina and the res privata. 73 The quaestor was also
present, and although his functions were altered in some respects. his
duties and authority remained much the same in the later period as in the
sixth century. 74 He may well already have taken over by this time the
scrinia libellorum and epistolarum originally under the disposition of the
magister officiorum, since the Greek term antigrapheis represents the Latin
magistri scriniorum and, as Bury noted, the antigrapheis are associated with
the quaestor in the proem to the Ecloga. 75
Leaving aside for the moment the military officials named, the remaining
palatine officials there represent either new offices or give their titles only,
but not their posts. The military logothete is represented, the head of the old
bureau of military finance in the officium of the praetorian prefect, as we
have seen, but from his high rank by now evidently an important
independent official. His presence would argue indirectly also for the
independence by this time of both the general and the special banks of the
prefecture: 76 while the presence of the domestikos of the imperial table
suggests that the subdepartment of the sacred table within the old sac rum
cubiculum was by this time also an independent bureau. 77 If this conclusion
is accepted, the further implication is that the sacrum cubiculum had by now
devolved into its constituent parts, an inference which the clear pre-
eminence of the sakellarios in the middle of the seventh century would tend
to support. 78 Thus the koiton under the chief parakoimomenos, 79 the
imperial private vestiarion under the protovestiarios (the old comitiva sacrae
vestis under its comes), as well as the sacellum and the imperial table, were
now all independent services in the palace.
References to the various officials of the central sekreta begin to occur in
the literary sources for the later seventh century. Thus Theodotus, the
monk, genikos logothetes during the reign of Justinian II. is mentioned for
the years 694/5, for whom there exists also a seal; 80 a seal of Paul, apo
hypaton and genikos logothetes may date to the same period: while seals of
s1 See Zacos and Veglery. nos. 961, 3162. 2903: N.P. Lihacev, 'Datirovannye vizantiiskie
peeati'. Izvestiya Rossiiskoi Akademii Istorii Material'noi Kul'tury 3 (1924), 153-224. see
180, no. 11; V.Laurent. 'Bulletin de sigillographie byzantine, I', B 5 (1929/30),
571-654. see 607 note 3: seal of Cyriacus. apo hypatOn and genikos logothetes (dated
696/7).
82 For example, Zacos and Veglery. no. 12 31. anon .. hypaws and charwularios of the genikon
logothesion.
83 Zacos and Veglery, no. 1093. seal of anon., chartoularios tou vasilikou koitOniou and
charwularios tou vasilikou vestiariou. See also nos. 1409 and 1714, of Andrew. chartoula-
rios wu vasilikou vestiariou. All these seem to date to the early part of the eighth century. It
is unclear whether no. 109 3 belongs to an official of the koitOn who functioned also within
the public vestiarion, or whether the private vestiarion is meant. The latter might seem
more likely, in view of the origins of both departments within the sacrum cubiculum.
although the later private vestiarion had no chartoularios in the ninth century and after
(see Oikonomides. Preseance, p. 305). The public vestiarion, on the other hand, was later in
the charge of a chartoularios. and this official. and certainly the Andrew of the seals 1409
and 1714, may well represent this bureau. See Oikonomides, Priseance, p. 316 and
references.
84 See V. Laurent, Les Sceaux byzantins du midailler Vatican (Medagliere della Biblioteca
Vaticana I. Citta del Vaticano 1962), no. 8: Zacos and Veglery, no. 2466: Bury.
Administrative System, pp. 77f.: Oikonomides, Prisiance, p. 322. For a further comment on
the fate of the sacrae largitiones, see R. Delmaire, 'Le Declin des largesses sacrees', in
Hommes et Richesses dans l'Empire byzantin 1: I?- VII~ siecle (Paris 1989). pp. 265-78.
Fiscal administration 195
that this pattern was probably already in existence much earlier, and by
the end of his reign. But this in itself is no argument for a major
transformation of either the principles or the practice of civil or military
administration - at least not at this stage.
While the various bureaux of the prefecture dealing with financial affairs
became increasingly independent, the prefecture seems still to have oper-
ated into the last years of the reign of Heraclius. In 629 the praetorian
prefect of the East is referred to in a novel, issued at Jerusalem, on the
juridical situation of the clergy, addressed to the patriarch Sergius. 8 5
Although no more explicit references to this official occur, other evidence
suggests that the prefectures continued for a while to be the main civil
administrative subdivisions within the surviving territories of the state. In
the first place, the praetorian prefect of Illyricum continued to exist until the
second half of the seventh century, although probably with only nominal
uthority over much of his former prefecture, which was now mostly
outside Byzantine imperial control. 86 In the second place, an early ninth-
century ceremony, preserved in the tenth-century Book of Ceremonies of
Constantine VII. lists the praetorian prefect and the quaestor (along with
the eparchs of the themata) together. 87 While it is certainly true that only
the title may have survived, as in many similar cases 88 (that of stratelates,
for example, or anthypatos or magistros), one might have expected it to have
been generalised as a title in the system of precedence, just like these latter,
which it was not, however: and it seems reasonable to suppose that, like the
offices of quaestor and prefect of the themata which it accompanies, it, too,
referred to an office, not a dignity alone. It may well be, of course, that the
praetorian prefect exercised a nominal supervision only by this time.
Already in the later sixth century he was referred to by the function for
which his department was best known: TTJV TJ"fEf.Loviav Twv <p6pwv Tile;
tW<xc; . . . ov E1Tapxov 1TpaLTWpLWV £Lw-6aaa,V ovo~a,ELV l'w~aLOL, 89
that is, for the collection and assessment of revenues. And whereas, by the
middle of the seventh century, the bureaux of the general, special and
military logothesia had taken on an independent existence, this does not
preclude the prefect's having still exercised overall authority.
85 ]GR I. coli. 1. nov. 25, 2 (a. 629 = DOlger, Regesten, no. 199).
86 See E. Stein, 'Bin Kapitel vom persischen und vom byzantinischen Staate', BN] I (1920),
5{}-89, see 83: Ch. Diehl, 'L'Origine du regime des themes dans l'empire byzantin', in
Etudes Byzantines (Paris 1905), pp. 276-92, seep. 290: H. Gelzer, Die Genesis der byzanti-
nischen Themenverfassung, Abhandlungen der konigl. sachsischen Gesellschaft der Wissen-
schaften, phil.-hist. Klasse (Leipzig 1899 and Amsterdam 1966), see pp. 35f.: Bury, ERE,
pp. 223 and 234 note 1: Ulie, 'Die zweihundertjahrige Reform', 35.
87 See Stein, 'Bin Kapitel', 71fT.: most recently, Kaegi. 'Two studies', 98fT. Cf. De Cer. 61.25:
and see below.
88 See Lilie's objection, 'Die zweihundertjahrige Reform', 35.
89 Theophylact Simocatta, VIII 9.6.
196 Byzantium in the seventh century
The praetorian prefect had charge also, of course, of the local civil and
judicial administration, and the provincial governors and their staffs: and
the late Roman provincial geography continues to exist well into the eighth
century, as the evidence of lead seals shows quite clearly. The provinces of
the sixth century occur on seals of the later seventh and eighth centuries to
the extent that, of those mentioned in the Justinianic legislation and whose
territory was still within the empire in the later seventh and eighth
centuries, twenty-six occur on seals of kommerkiarioi or apothekai (on which
see below) for the years c. 654-c 720. 90 While the traditional provinces
continued to exist, therefore, their local administrative apparatuses prob-
ably continued to function as far as was possible.
In this respect, the seals of a large number of provincial dioiketai are
significant. In the ninth and tenth centuries, the dioiketai were those officials
responsible for supervising the collection of taxes, and they were respon-
sible to the generallogothete. They represent the earlier provincial trakteu-
tai of the diocesan scrinia, responsible to the central clerks and chartularii of
the prefectural bureau. 91 As such, it is likely that they were also closely
connected with the chartularies of the provincial arcae taken over from the
largitiones, although evidence for these officials occurs only from the ninth
century. 92 But evidence for the continued existence of the dioiketai occurs
through the seventh and eighth centuries and into the ninth century in an
unbroken tradition.
From the second decade of the seventh century, general supervisors seem
to have been appointed over a whole group of provinces, possibly over the
whole of the Eastern prefecture. A seal of Theodore, megaloprepestatos
illoustrios and dioiketis of all (province names or designation illegible),
dating to the years 614 to 631 demonstrates that this practice was known
during the period of fiscal reorganisation under Heraclius: 93 while the
mention of Paul, the endoxotatos apo hypatOn and dioiketis of the eastern
90 For the Justinianic provinces, see Jones, LRE, map VI. Including the islands, Cyprus and
Honorias (which Justinian joined with Paphlagonia, but which seemed afterwards still to
have been treated as an independent province), there were 2 7 such provinces. For the
seals. see Zacos and Veglery. pp. 146fT. and tables 3fT. See below for seals of dioiketai
bearing provincial names. There are seals for l. 3 Anatolian provinces, plus seals for the
various isles making up the Justinianic insulae. and Cyprus. Armenia I and 11 are the only
provinces not found.
91 See, e.g., Theophanes, 367.27 for 694: and Bury, Administrative System, p. 89: Oikonomi-
des, Prisiance, p. 313. See also DOlger, Beitrdge, pp. 70fT.: N. Svoronos, 'Recherches sur le
cadastre byzantin et la fiscalite aux Xle-xne siecles: le cadastre de Thebes', BCH 83
(1959), 1-166. see 56f. For the earlier trakteutai, see, for example, Vita Eutychii 68: and
Justinian, Edict XIll, 9-12: 27: 28. In the Vita Eutychii, they are described as Touc; riJv
£1rapxwv ... 8LoLxoinnac;.
92 See Oikonomides Prisiance, p. 313.
93 Zacos and Veglery. no. 131.
Fiscal administration 197
provinces in 680 at the sixth ecumenical council: the seals of George and
Theodore, each apo hypatOn and diollcitis of the eparchlal (or provinces,
unspecified), dated c. 650-700: ofMarlnus, apo eparchon and dloilcitis of the
eparchlal, dated 650-700; of Paul, hypatos and dlollcitis of the Anatolllcol,
dated c. 700: of Leontius, patrlk1os and dlollcitis of the eparchlal, dated c.
650-700: and of Stephen, apo hypatOn and dlollcetis of the eparchlal, or
patrllclos and dlollcetis of the eparchlal, dated c. 650-700, demonstrates the
continuation of the same practice. 94 Throughout the same period, officials
issued seals bearing the title dlollcetis alone, without further elaboration,
and these may represent the subordinate provincial officials placed under
the authority of these general dloilcetal. 95
From the first half of the eighth centwy, a shift in the pattern becomes
evident, as ordinary dlollcetai or supervisors begin to Issue seals with the
name(s) of their provinces also. Thus there are seals for dlollcital ofThrace,
Hellas, Sicily, Buboea, Seleucla, Cyprus, Lydla, Bithynta, Galatla. 96 But
what Is interesting Is that seals for those fiscal officials bearing the general
title 'of the provinces' are limited almost without exception to the second
half of the seventh century and the first years of the eighth. 97
'" See Mansl XI. 209B: Rledlnger, 14.32: Zacos and _Veglery, nos. 821, 1031, 1178. 2290,
2897,1008 and 1014. respectively.
95 See Zacos and Veglery, nos. 1464, 1527, 1528 and 1439: K.Konstantopoulos.
Butav-rt4xci p.o~uPMPov~~a TOV iv ·At11vat~ 'Btt~.,xoij NOJLIDp.aTt,xoV Movasiov
(Athens 1917), nos. 325a, b, g: 586: Zacos and Veglery. nos. 749, 1724, 1991, 2069,
2018, 3109, 885. 956, 2352, 3189, 3192, 1698, 1866, 2120, 2158. 2399. 1951,
1847, 1917, 2302. 2297, 2531 and 2139: V.Laurent, Documents de slglllogrt11Jhle byMn-
tlne. La collecUon C. Orghldan (Paris 19 52}, nos. 249 and 2 51: G. Schlumberger, Slglllogra-
phfede l'emplre byzantln (Paris 1884 and Turin 1963). pp.497-8, no. 13: p.499, nos. 19
and 20: p. 536, no. 4: J. Bbersolt, Musia lmpirlaux ottomans. Catalogue& des sceaux
byzantlru (Paris 1922}, nos. 362 and 364 and 'Sceaux byzantlns du Mue de Constanti-
nople', RN, 4th ser., 18 (1914), 207-43 and 377-409, see 361 and 363: W.de Gray
Birch, Catalogue of Seals In the Department of Manuscripts In the British Museum V (London
1898), pp. 1-106, nos. 17, 615 and 17, 617. These date to the period c. 650 to c 900, the
majority from the eighth century. Por a fuller and more detailed list, see Wlnkelmann,
Rang- und Amurstrulctur, p.134.
96 See Zacos and Veglery. nos. 1044, 2114, 2081, 2082, 2078, 2079, 2019, 2020, 1895,
2183, 2426, 1628, 1642 and 3189 all dating to the period c 700-850. 'lbe &lvln& or
more explicit detail may have reflected a personal fashion, as well, of course. Thus the
Theodore, dlollcltls, ofZacos and Veglery, no. 3189, seems to be the same as the Tbeodore,
Zacos and Veglery, no. 2426, who was also dlollcltls of Lydla. See Zacos and Veglery.
p. 1778. There are for the same period a considerable number or seals or dlollcltal which
give the name of a town rather than a province. Por a list. see Wlnkelmann. Rang- und
Amurstrulctur, pp. 134f.
9 7 That or Serglua, hyptJtos and dlollcltls of the eptJrchlal (Zacos and Veglery, no. 487), dated to
the ftrst half of the eighth century Is the latest I have been able to ftnd extant. Prom Ita style
and lettering, however, lt might equally belong In the years around c. 700. Similar
considerations apply to Schlumberger, Slglllographle, pp. 499f., seal of Serglus. dlolkltb of
the eptJrchlal: and to Konstantopoulos, Molybdoboulla, no. 326a, seal of Theophylactus,
hyptltos and dlollcltis of the eparchlal (In the ftnt and last cases partially conftnned by the
rank, hypatos).
198 Byzantium in the seventh century
Three further points deserve our attention. First, the use of what are
clearly thematic circumscriptions begins to increase on seals of kommerlcia-
rlol and kommerkia (customs officials and depots- but see below) from the
early eighth century. suggesting that the military districts which had come
to overlie the older civil provinces were becoming increasingly important
from the general administrative point of view. 98 Second, a slight change in
the formula expressing the titles of two dlollcetai of the eparchlai suggests a
shift from a prefectural to a thematic emphasis. The dlolketis at the sixth
council formulated his title, as we have seen, thus: Paul. endoxotatos apo
hypat.On, kal dlollcetis tOn anatolllcon eparchlon. 99 In contrast, the seal of Paul.
hypatos kal dlolketis tOn Anatollkon, dated to the turn of the century, 100
seems clearly to name the thema of the Anatollkoi. The first Paul seems still
to bear the hallmarks of the oriental prefecture - compare the usual title of
the prefecture itself:"Ta QVUTO~LXcl 1TpaLTci»pLa, in legislative documents. 101
He is thus in charge of the fiscal dioikesis of the provinces of the prefecture of
the Bast. The second Paul, however, was in charge of a smaller area,
namely the provinces within the military district of the Anatolikon army.
The change in emphasis, if such it is, must reflect a recognition of a state of
affairs in which the Importance of new and developing provincial clrcum-
scrlptlons outweighed the relevance of the older establishment. Provinces -
eparchial - were being seen from the standpoint of which thema they
belonged to, a point which the seals of the lcommerkiarioi, apothekai and
kommerlcla referred to already makes quite explicit. As the new thematic
districts became more closely defined, and as officials of the central bureaux
- the chartularies of the genllcon in particular - were able to assume
responsibility for provincial fiscal administration under the local gover-
nors, so the need to appoint officials to oversee large groups of provinces
(perhaps a result of the obsolescence of the diocesan level of administration)
within, or over all of, the prefecture, will likewise have dlminished. 102
91 For example. Zacos and Veglery, no. 222. dated to the years 717-18, of anon., genlkol
kommtrklarlol of the apothilci of CA»lonea and all the tparchial of ArnJtnlakon: no. 15 5, with
table 18/2 (p.164). seals of the ArmtnlalcOn redated by Selbt,ln BS 36 (1975), 209 to the
early eighth century: no. 263, dated 745/6, ol the kommerlcla of the tparchlal of the
Imperial God-guarded Opslklon: and cf. nos. 242. dated 732/3, for the Anatollkon: no. 261.
dated 741/2, for Thrakislon: nos. 258 and 259, dated 730-41. for Thrace: and so on.
99 Mansi XL 2098; Riedlnger. 14.32.
aoo Zacos and Veglery, no. 2290. Lllle, 'Thraklen und Thrakeslon', 12 would Identify the
two Pauls as one and the same, with an assumed promotion from apo hypatDn to hypatos
In the Interim. See Wlnkelmann, Rllng- und Amterstruktur, p. 35. But ln view of the
frequency of the name, this must remain hypothetical.
101 B.g.,]GR I, coli. 1, nov. 25.2 (a. 629 = DOiger, Rtgesten, no. 199): TOi4i tv8o~OTaTOt.4i Twv
QVCI'fO~Lxci»ll i.£pci)v 11'paLTCdpWV.
102 A late seventh-century seal of an anon., hypatos and chartoularlos tou genilcou (Zacos and
Veglery, no. 1231) shows that this bureau already had its officials responsible for
provincial fiscal administration.
Fiscal administration 199
Finally, the fact that dioiketai responsible for 'the provinces' in a general
and non-specific sense seem no longer to issue seals after the first years of
the eighth century is extremely suggestive. It implies that officials with such
a wide jurisdiction throughout the empire were no longer necessary to the
fiscal administration. The fact that. with one dubious (and Western)
exception, all the known seals of dioiketai of named provinces are dated to
the eighth century and later, makes the conclusion that the two develop-
ments are somehow connected inescapable. 103
The significance of these general dioiketai must now be apparent. The first
of whom we have any mention is the Theodore whose seal, referred to
already, was issued some time between 614 and 631, a period of fiscal and
military crisis for the state. Thereafter, there are seals of six dioiketai 'of the
provinces' datable to the period c. 650-750, and there is mention of a fifth,
for the eparchiai of the East, in 680. Finally, for the years around 700, there
is a seal of a dioiketes of (the provinces oO the Anatolikon. All these officials,
with two exceptions, are very high-ranking persons, with the titles of
hypatos, apo hypaton or patrikios, testifying to their importance. 104 It is
surely no coincidence that the period in which these dioiketai functioned
begins at the time of substantial fiscal reforms under Heraclius and ends,
both as the themata begin to occur in literary sources and on seals as
administrative entities and as individual provincial dioiketai start to
(re)appear on issues of seals.
The solution to the problem of the general dioiketai is, therefore, an
administrative and institutional one. If, as seems probable, the genike
trapeza, or genikon, had become more or less independent during the reign of
Heraclius, whether already before his mint reform or, as seems more likely,
as a result of the ramifications of that reform, then the close connection
between this bank and the diocesan scrinia, 105 which actually dealt with
the calculation and collection of the public taxes - a connection hitherto
assured by the presence of all these bureaux within the same officium - will
have been severed. Yet it is clear that in the developed genikon logothesion of
the ninth century, the descendants of the officials of the former diocesan
10 3 The exception is the seal of Theodore, dioiketis of Hellas, dated to the period 650-750.
But it. too, may well be of eighth-century date. See Zacos and Veglery, no. 1628.
1 04 The two exceptions are the seals ofSergius (Schlumberger, Sig., p. 499), described simply
as dioiketis tOn eparchion (which may suggest an earlier rather than a later date - the
regular use of titles and rank increases during the seventh and especially the eighth
century. See Winkelmann, Rang- und Amterstruktur, p. 132): and of Marinus, apo epar-
chon and dioiketis t.On eparchion (Zacos and Veglery, no. 1178). Apo eparchon seems to
have been a relatively humble rank during the seventh century (see Zacos and Veglery,
no. 142: Winkelmann, Rang- und Amterstruktur. pp. 40f.).
105 Diocesan describes, of course, the competence of these scrinia. They were physically
located at Constantinople. For the theion logothesion at the end of Heraclius' reign, see
note 6 7 above.
200 Byzantium in the seventh century
Whether the praetorian prefect still had a role to play is, in view of the
almost total lack of evidence in this regard, impossible to say with certainty.
That the post continued to be filled, however, possibly as a civil administra-
tive figurehead, is suggested by the existence of two seals of the period
650-700, of Marinus, a1ro i1rapxwv xai. 8LOLX11Tilc; T<ilv E1Tap)(L<iiv, and
of the same Marinus, now promoted, a1ro u1rciTwv xai. £1rapxoc; Twv ... 108
It seems highly likely that the latter title should be completed 1TpaLTwpiwv:
although a thematic title, such as Anatolikon or Armeniakon is a possibility.
If the first suggestion is correct, then the praetorian prefect was still in
existence in the later seventh century and, furthermore, probably still
exercised a general authority over the departments formerly under his
direct control. 109 That the office survived until the early ninth century is
clear from its inclusion in a ceremony dating to the years 809-43,
although the status of the title is open to question. 110 Like that of
magister officiorum, the post of praetorian prefect of the East may
have retained some vaguely defined supervisory capacity, as has already
1os See Zacos and Veglery, nos. 1178 and 1179. A further three seals of Marinus, as apo
hypatOn kai dioiketis tOn eparchion exist. See Zacos and Veglery, note to no. 1178
(Konstantopoulos, Molybdoboulla, no. 58: N.P. Lihacev, lstoriceskoe znacenie italogreceskoi
ikonopisi Izobrazeniya Bogomateri (St Petersburg 1911), 117 (figs. 259 and 260).
1o9 If the second suggestion is preferred. then Marinus may well have been one of the
thematic prefects responsible for the provisioning of the provincial military at this time.
See Kaegi, 'Two studies', 104fT., esp. 107fT.
11 o The history of the debate around this passage, first discussed in detail by Stein, 'Ein
Kapitel', 70-82, has been briefly detailed by Kaegi. 'Two studies', 99fT. Stein based his
date for the passage (which actually describes a ceremony for the feast of Easter, not for
Pentecost as in the manuscript), on the presence of what he saw as a series of archaic
Latin terms and titles. He concluded from this, and from the fact that a dioiketis tOn
anatolikon eparchion, but not a praetorian prefect, appears in 680 at the sessions of the
sixth ecumenical council, that the praetorian prefect had therefore ceased to exist by 680.
He concluded further that the passage must itself date to the later seventh century, but
before 680. The importance of the passage in the De Cerimoniis for Stein lay in the fact
that both the praetorian prefect and the ·eparchs of the themes' occur among the list of
dignitaries presented to the emperor. The passage in question reads: PilAov TiTapTov · Ti>v
U1rapxov TWV 11'pat.Twpiwv, TOV XOt.ai0'1'wpa, av-6-u11'UTOU~ TWV -D£JA.(iTWV xat E11'apxouc;
(De Cer. 61.15-16).
Two sets of observations need to be made. In the first place, it must now be clear that,
unless the passage has been very heavily interpolated (which would render it useless for
Stein's argument also), it must date from after 809, since the domestikos of the Hikanatoi is
listed also (ibid. 61.17, cf. also 67.23), a unit which was first established in that year (see
Haldon, Byzantine Praetorians, pp. 24 Sf. ). Quite apart from this, the presence of tagmatic
officers of the scholai, and of the vigla, the former established as a tagma only under
Constantine V, the latter established probably by Eirene, makes it clear that the passage is
at the earliest of the early ninth century (Haldon, Byzantine Praetorians, pp. 228fT. and
236fT.: note also Guilland, Recherches, vol. Il, p. 70). In general style, and in respect of the
202 Byzantium in the seventh century
been suggested, perhaps over the provisioning and supplying of troops
in the provinces: the thematic eparchs (see below), who do seem to
have fulfilled this function until their replacement during the first half of
the ninth century by thematic protonotarioi appointed from the sacellium,
certainly came under the authority of the praetorian prefect. 111 And it
may well be that the praetorian prefect who survives in this early ninth-
century ceremony, equivalent in rank to the quaestor- with whom he was
grouped - did retain a general authority over the administration of
military supplies, through his subordinates, the anthypatoi and eparchai of
the themata, exercised through a much-reduced sekreton at Constantinople,
with a local bureau in each thema.
Now it has been suggested that the thematic protonotarioi, who begin to
appear in the literary sources from the second quarter of the ninth century,
and on seals shortly before this, were originally the local representatives of
the office of these thematic eparchs who, when the praetorian prefecture
and the dependent thematic eparchate were finally superseded, inherited
the functions of the thematic eparch within the administration of the
strategos. 112 But the protonotarioi were members of the sakellion at a slightly
later date, 113 and it is probable that this reflects a long tradition, since it
palatine titles which occur, it could well be contemporary with the Taktikon Uspenskij of
842/3. The text can tell us little or nothing about the later seventh-century or indeed the
early eighth-century establishment at all.
In the second place, where Stein assumed that the title anthypatos, which occurs in
respect of two groups of dignitaries (De Cer. 61.13: 'TTaTp&.xiouc; Touc; xai. civ{hnraTouc;:
61.16. av{hrrraTouc; Tciw -fiE~Twv xai. £1rapxouc;) signified, at least in the second case,
two distinct functions, it seems more likely that one group is meant, the eparchs of the
themat.Q who were also anthypatoi. Note Dt Cer. 67.17: £-rrapxiaac; -6EtJ.QT&.xac;
civihnraTiaac; (the presentation of the wives of the respective officials on the same
occasion): and cf. T.Usp. 51.25: ot av-6\nraToa. xai. i-rrapxoa. Tciw -fiEIJ.aTwv. The
eparchs and anthypatoi clearly represent one group, and Stein's whole discussion of the
question of the 'survival' of proconsuls therefore needs considerable revision. Guilland's
attempt (Recherches, vol. II. p. 69 note 15) to emend the text of De Cer. 67.17. which he
clearly thought problematic, in order to fit in with Stein's view, which he shared, by
inverting the order so that it would read avihnraTiaaa~. -fiEIJ.QTt.xac;. £-rrapxiaac;, must be
regarded with some suspicion. Correctly understood. such an arbitrary intervention in
the text is quite unnecessary. It is worth noting that two seals dated to the first half of the
ninth century, of Eustathius, imperial spatharokandidatos and anthypatos of the Anatolikoi
(Zacos and Veglery, no. 1901 ): and of John. imperial spatharios and anthypatos of the
Anatolikoi (Zacos and Veglery, no. 2049) do provide evidence for thematic officials
bearing the title anthypatos, suggesting that there may well have been thematic anthypa-
toi acting as civil governors, even if by the time of the Taktikon Uspenskij they had been
combined in practice with the position of thematic eparchs. Stein's argument is. there-
fore, partially vindicated.
111 Kaegi, ·rwo studies', 106f.. and De Cer. 61.15-16.
112 Kaegi, 'Two studies'. 109fT.. partly following and emending Stein, 'Ein Kapitel', 79fT. See
especially Winkelmann. Rang- und Amterstruktur, p. 142 with the evidence from both
seals and literary sources cited there. See also Haldon, Byzantine Praetorians. pp. 215f.
11 1 Klet. Phil. 121.6: cf. Oikonomides. Preseance. p. 315.
Fiscal administration 203
was the sakellarios, with his bureau, who in the late sixth and seventh
centuries seems to have been responsible for the general fiscal supervision
of state departments. More probably, the establishment of the themata as
territorial administrative units from the early eighth century meant an
increasing intervention in and supervision of the activities of the thematic
eparchs by the sakellarios, and the consequent increasing irrelevance of the
officials of the old prefecture in favour of those of the sakellion.
Two further arguments would favour this general hypothesis. In the first
place, it has plausibly been argued that the eparchs of the themata, who
occur in the ninth-century protocol in the Book of Ceremonies, and in the
Taktikon Uspenskij (dated to 842/3), are the descendants of those ad hoc
praetorian prefects appointed during the sixth and early seventh centuries
to supervise the arrangements for supplying troops in transit. 114 The fact
that they bear the title of anthypatos, however, deserves more attention.
Stein believed that the title represented a separate office and argued that
the anthypatoi of the themata were the civil governors, and that the eparchs
were the governors of the provinces within the themata. 115 This line of
reasoning then proceeds to argue that, since the ceremony is to be dated to
the seventh century (which is, as we have seen, incorrect), the mention of
these two groups of officials is evidence for a thematic civil administration
by 680 at the latest, and therefore for the existence of the themata as both
civil and military administrative units by this date. The argument is based
on several misapprehensions and is now generally rejected. 116 But Stein
was not entirely on the wrong track. For the fact that the eparchs are also
anthypatoi, that anthypatos is not yet a title or rank, even in the Taktikon
Uspenskij of 842/3, and that, crucially, thematic anthypatoi are evidenced,
for the Anatolikon at least, on seals of the early ninth century, is impor-
tant.117 Given the continued existence of a praetorian prefect in the early
ninth century - whatever his exact functions - it is not entirely improbable
that the posts of the former ad hoc prefects who had been responsible for
military provisioning, and those of the leading civil governors of the
provinces within the thema for which they were responsible, were eventu-
ally amalgamated. Both groups were at the disposition of the praetorian
prefect: both would have fulfilled functions which were in practice very
closely related. The fusion of the two, with the result that thematic prefects
11s The first mention of the title anthypatos as a rank seems to be that in Theophanes cont.,
108.1 (cf. Guilland, Recherches, vol. II. p. 71: Oikonomides, Preseance, p. 294: Bury.
Administrative System, p. 28) for the reign of TheophUus. In the Taktilcon Uspenslcij,
however, firmly dated to 842/3 (Oikonomides. Presiance, p. 45) the term seems still to be
a function, see T. Usp., 51.2 5: with the possible exception of the entry 6 11'aTpixLO.; xai.
avihnraToc; which, it has been suggested, represents the position created for Alexios
Mousele by Theophilus referred to in Theophanes cont. above (see T.Usp., 49.1 and Bury.
Administrative System, p. 28. For its still being a functional rank, see Winkelmann, Rang-
und Amt.erstruktur, p. 35). The dating of a nwnber of seals of the early ninth century
bearing the title anthypatos. on the other hand, suggests that it had already towards the
end ofElrene's reign a titular value- see the seals ofGregory Mousoulakios, who appears
to have held the ranks of anthypatos, patrikios, while also being komis of the Opslkion (see
Haldon, Byzantine Praetorians, p. 360 and note 1100: Zacos and Veglery, no. 3113A;
and Seibt, Bleisiegel, no. 1 58). But Gregory may be, like Alexios Mousele after him. an
exception. Other seals bearing the title are all to be placed in the middle decades of the
ninth century or later: see the list and commentary of Winkelmann, Rang- und Amter-
struktur, pp. 35-6. By the later ninth century, in contrast, and certainly by the time the
Kletorologion was compiled, all the strategoi of thematll, as well as members of the central
sekretll holding the higher posts, could be anthypatoi. See Guilland, Recherches, vol. II.
pp. 71fT. for a prosopographicallist.
Fiscal administration 205
the like. 119 Seals of protonotarioi are extant in considerable numbers, seals
of anthypatoi are relatively few. Two, with specific thematic titles (of the
Anatolikon), have been mentioned. Others cover the period from the
seventh to the early ninth centuries. 120 Whatever the explanation for the
imbalance, there is nevertheless a clear continuity from the sixth century
until the middle of the first half of the ninth century in the use of the title
anthypatos, often in conjunction with other ranks, to denote an office, and
not simply a dignity.
However uncertain the picture, therefore, there is good reasop for
believing that the praetorian prefect continued to exist until some time in
the period of 809 to 842: and that his bureau, which was responsible for
elements of the provincial civil administration and the supplying and
provlsioning of provincial troops was represented by anthypatoi and
eparchs, who in the final stages seem to have been amalgamated as a
single post in the themata. This amalgamation (with one such joint post for
each thema?) is the more likely in view of the fact that both officials were
responsible for exactly the same territorial circumscriptions. The general
hypothesis is supported by the survival of the older provincial governors,
or praetors, until the time of the Taktikon Uspenskij in 842/3, and their
subsequent emergence as the leading judicial officials in the themata. Once
more, a key element of the traditional civil and fiscal administrative
apparatus continued to play a role into the ninth century: and it seems
unlikely that all these titles represent no more than a fossilised echo of a
past system. Within the framework I have outlined, they played an active,
functional role in the state establishment.
A final point is worth making here. The boundaries of the original large
themata in Asia Minor corresponded, as we shall see, fairly closely, and in
most cases exactly, with older provincial boundaries. There was no agree-
ment with diocesan boundaries, however, since the themata represented
areas which could support a certain number of soldiers, as well as a degree
of strategic planning. This will be demonstrated below. Bach thema,
however, did consist of a group of older provinces, and the question arises
11 9 For example, Zacos and Veglery, nos. 3118, 2496, 3214, 1727, 2324 and many more.
See the remarks ofWinkelman, Rang- und Amterstruktur, p.142, with lists at pp.l20 and
122-31 where some 65 seals of protonotarioi are listed. By the ninth century, these
formerly prestigious titles had been greatly reduced in status.
120 See note 110 above. The other seals are: Zacos and Veglery, no. 2881, of John,
anthypatos (550-650): no. 775. Konstantinos, anthypatos (550-650), no. 1085,
Tryphon, Stratelatis and anthypatos (late seventh century): Schlumberger, Sig., 438,4:
David, anthypatos (eighth-ninth century): Konstantopoulos, Molybdoboulla, no. 295:
John, illoustrios and anthypatos (seventh to eighth century): cf. also Schlumberger, Sig.,
p. 438,2, seal of Andreas Botaneiates, imperial spatharios and anthypatos.
206 Byzantium in the seventh century
as to why the titles of anthypatos on the one hand (representing civil and
fiscal administration) and praetor on the other (representing judicial
administration), which in Justinian's time had equivalent status (both were
spectabiles), came to have different statuses by the early ninth century and
how the division of labour came to be attached to the two titles in this way.
Other titles, such as moderator or comes, were also available, but were not
retained. The only reasonable answer would suggest that some deliberate
administrative/legislative decision was taken at a certain point in the later
seventh or early eighth century; and that, perhaps for traditional reasons of
association, the two terms were thus assigned, the paramount civil
govemorships being described as anthypatoi, the judicial functions being
awarded to the praetors. But the Taktikon Uspenskij would not contradict
the notion that, until this time at least, the term praetors of the themata
referred to the civil governors of the individual provinces within each
thema, while the anthypatoi and eparchai were responsible for the whole
thema, including all its constituent provincial subdivisions. 121
To summarise briefly the results of th~ foregoing analysis. The evidence
points to a major restructuring of the fiscal administration of the state
during the reign of Heraclius. While the reform and reorganisation of the
system of mints constitutes the major single change, the logical con-
sequence of this centralisation of administration for the provincial organi-
sation of the sacrae largitiones, together with the evidence for the increas-
ingly important role of the sakellarios, and the appearance of high-ranking
logothetai during the reigns of both Phocas and Heraclius, seems to be that
the sekreta of the genikon, eidikon and stratiotikon, together with the sakellion
and the vestiarion, already existed in their essential form by the end of
Heraclius' reign. Apart from the reorganisation of the mints. however,
which itself may well have been a response to pre-existing tendencies,
exacerbated by the civil war and the war with the Persians, these changes
- essentially a reversal of the pattern which had hitherto operated -
evolved as logical and necessary consequences of each successive adminis-
trative alteration in the older establishment and follow quite consistently
from one another. They also conform to the possibilities presented by the
available evidence and represent the only coherent explanation for that
evidence.
At the same time, shifts in the pattern of provincial fiscal administration
occurred. In order to ensure a coherent policy, and to fill the gap left by the
disappearance of the diocesan tier, general supervisors were appointed to
oversee provincial tax-assessment and collection; and it is presumably not
121 See T.Usp., 53.3 (and note Oikonomides, Preseance. p. 344, who makes a similar sug-
gestion).
Fiscal administration 207
a coincidence that the first such official of whom we learn, Theodore, was
appointed during the reign of Heraclius, and possibly at the same time as
the reorganisation of the mints took place. By the early eighth century,
however, the establishment of the provincial field armies in Asia Minor and
the fixing of their boundaries lent to these new districts an administrative
identity (the equivalent of a group of provinces) which provided an
intermediate level of administration. They replaced, in effect, an adminis-
trative level similar to that represented by the older dioceses. In con-
sequence, fiscal supervisors could be appointed to these districts, the
themata, with their subordinate provinces, and the general (prefectural)
supervisors were superseded. Similarly, while the praetorian prefect
remained in existence, the civil provinces within the themata formed new
groupings, placed under a senior civil official, the proconsul, again equiv-
alent in many respects to the vicarii of the older dioceses: while the ad hoc
prefects appointed from the sixth century to deal with troops in transit
were made permanent as a result of the permanent presence in what had
been predominantly civil provinces of the field armies. By the later eighth
or early ninth centuries the functions of these two 'thematic' civil officials
had come to be formally assimilated; while the gradual evolution of the
various fiscal bureaux at Constantinople meant that their role was increas-
ingly redundant. Eventually - some time after 842/3 - they were abol-
ished, their function being assumed by the thematic protonotarioi of the
sacellium, their high status being transferred to the thematic governors or
strategoi, who were henceforth formally endowed with both civil and
military authority.
This is only a part of the story, of course, and it is necessary now to turn
to the military administration of the state, and to the vexed question of the
military provinces themselves, the themata.
CHAPTER 6
THE THEMATA
208
Military administration 209
one area or garrison town, the soldiers putting down local roots, and even
-as some examples from Africa. Italy, Egypt or Palestine demonstrate-
taking up other occup~tions. 2 For the limitanei, recruitment was assured
through hereditary conscription, and membership of these units was
regarded as a privilege, in view of the favourable tax-status of soldiers who,
while subject to the regular land-and-head tax, were exempted from all
extraordinary burdens. It was further assured through various forms of
voluntary recruitment for the regular units of the comitatenses. 3 Weapons,
uniforms and mounts were provided by the state, which also issued cash
allowances for their purchase, through the commissariat, and from civil-
ian suppliers or - as in the case of weapons and some items of clothing -
from the state factories or workshops. 4
The system of command at the beginning of Justinian's reign was, in
most respects, unchanged from that of the fifth century. The limitanei along
the frontiers were divided into a number of independent commands,
consisting of nine duces (of Palestine, Arabia, Phoenice, Syria, Euphraten-
sis, Osrhoene, Mesopotamia, Pontus, Armenia) on the eastern frontier, a
comes rei militaris in Egypt, three duces, of the Thebaid, Libya and the
Pentapolis in North Africa; and five duces, of Scythia, Dacia, Moesia I and 11
and Pannonia 11 on the Danube. The field armies were similarly grouped
into divisions, in this case five, two of them in and near Constantinople (in
Thrace and in north-west Anatolia) under the two magistri militum
praesentales, one in Thrace, one in Illyricum and one in the East. In
addition, military officers entitled comites rei militaris, who had authority
over civil governors also, were appointed to provinces where banditry was
a problem, notably lsauria, Pamphylia, Pisidia and Lycaonia. While the
master of offices exercised a general inspectorate over the limitanei, both
they and the field troops were subject directly to the authority of their
respective magistri militum. Justinian introduced several changes. The zone
of the magister militum per Orientem was divided into two, and a new
magister militum per Armeniam took over the northern section: new com-
mands for south-eastern Spain, for Italy (magister militum per Italiam) and
for Africa (magister militum per Africam) were established after the recon-
quest, the latter circumscription including also the isles of Sardinia and
Corsica. A combined military civil command of the Long Walls (established
by Anastasius under two vicarii, one civil and one military) under a praetor
2 Italy: Brown, Gentlemen and Officers, pp. lOUT.: Egypt: Jones, LRE, vol. Il, pp. 662fT.:
Syria/Palestine: Patlagean, Pauvreti iconomique, pp. 2 5 5ff. and 313-15: Durliat, 'Les
Finances municipales', 379 and 'Les grands proprh~taires et l'etat byzantin', 527f.
3 For sources and literature, see Haldon, Recruitment and Conscription, pp. 20-8 and Byzan-
tine Praetorians, pp. 103fT.
4 See }ones, LRE, vol. ll, pp. 671 and 834-7: Haldon, Byzantine Praetorians, pp. 114f. with
literature.
210 Byzantium in the uventh century
ofThrace, was also established. The number of commands of limitanei was
increased along the eastern front to deal with Persian incursions: and in
the Armenian zone the two duces of Armenia and Pontus were replaced by
five commands along a more advanced frontier. Similar commands were
established along the African frontier, in Tripolltania, Byzacium, Numidia
and Mauretania, Sardinia and in northern Italy. In general, Justinian main-
tained the division between military and civil spheres of authority; but in
Asia Minor he combined civil and military authority to deal with brigand-
age (in Isauria, Pisidia and Lycaonia): in Egypt the position of Praefectus
Augustalis and dux were combined: and the dux of the Thebaid was given
civil administrative authority to deal with raids from the desert tribes.
Apart from these units and their dispositions, the emperors also had the
palatine units of the scholae (by the sixth century a parade-force only) and
the excubitores, created by Leo I, who replaced the scholae as the elite
imperial bodyguard. In addition, the palatine corps of protectores et dom-
estici, both horse and foot, under their comites (later a single comes) formed
another parade unit. 5 Justlnian 's main strategic innovation was the estab-
lishment of the quaestura exercitus, comprising Caria and the Aegean isles,
together with the Danubian provinces of Scythla and Moesia 11. The aim
was to secure supplies and a sound base for the frontier units which could
thus avoid further impoverishing an already devastated region. 6
After Justinian's reign, several administrative changes were made, and
certain organisational reforms within the structure of the field armies took
place. Most of these seem to have occurred in the reign of Maurice. Of the
administrative changes, the establishment of the two exarchates of
Ravenna and Carthage were responses to the arrival of the Lombards on
the one hand, and to the constant raiding of the Berbers along the African
limes on the other. This move was partially the formal recognition of what
had hitherto been de facto the case, namely the greater importance of the
magister militum in each of the two prefectures as a result of the prevailing
political and military situation. Already both Solomon and Germanus had
combined the offices of magister milltum with that of praetorian prefect in
Africa: and although the praetorian prefect continued to exist as an
lndepenqent office separate from the exarch, the latter was officially
endowed with supreme authorlty. 7 It has recently been demonstrated in
addition that the mints of both Carthage and Ravenna began to produce
(for the first time in the former case) a regular issue of dated solidi, those of
Carthage dated indictlonally, those of Ravenna by imperial regnal years.
5 See )ones, LRE. vol. 11. pp. 655-7: Haldon. Byzantl~t Prattorlans. pp. 119-41.
6 )ones, LRB, vol. I, p. 280. Cf. Justinian, Nov. 41 (a. 536) and Lydus, De Maglstratlbus 11.
28-9 (pp. 83-5).
7 See Jones, LRE. vol. 11, pp. 655-6: Brown, Gentlemen and Officers, pp. 4611'.: Gulllou, Riglo-
nalisme, pp. 150fT. For the older literature. ·see Diehl, Etudes byzantlnts, pp. 157-84:
L'A/rlque byzantlne. pp. 48411'.
Militllry administration 211
This occurred between December 581 and August 582. Some time
between August 582 and August 583 a new mint, producing copper and
possibly also gold, was established at Catania in Sicily, which had since
537 been under a separate jurisdiction jointly administered by the quaestor
sacrl palatii and the comes patrimonii ~r ltllliam. The first reference to an
exarch for Italy is for 584: the first for Africa, 591. 8 There is little doubt
that this reorganisation of minting and the new issues which resulted
reftected also the new statute of the affected prefectures, and these develop-
ments seem to have coincided with and reflect the establishment of the
exarchates. with their greater political. military and fiscal independence. 9
In the tactical organisation of the armies, reforms also took place, mostly
during the reigns of Tiberlus Constantine and Maurice. The numerous
units of foederati, effectively by this time units of mixed - Roman and
barbarian - regulars in the comitatenses. came to be brigaded together in a
single corps. Similarly, the private bucellarii of the leading officers in the
praesental forces were also brigaded together as an elite force and were
incorporated into the state establishment. receiving pay and provisions on
the same basis as the regular troops. Both developments seem to have
occurred in the context of the wars in the Balkans in the 580s and 590s:
and at the same period an elite 'foreign legion' of Germanic cavalry, the
optlmates, seems to have been established, made up chiefly of Gothic and
Lombard mercenary soldiers at first, although later recruited from within
the empire also. These changes were accompanied by reforms in the
command structure of the armies, which represented the culmination of a
long-drawn-out development in which the older internal structure of
regular units dating back to the time of Dlocletian and Constantine was
replaced or modified by a system which more closely reflected the func-
tional needs and the language of the late-sixth-century army . 1 Finally, °
there is some evidence that the old division between the two magistri
mllltum praesentales and their armies ceased to have any practical sig-
nlftcance, so that there came to be usually only one praesental force under
a supreme commander, normally operating in Europe. This development
was to have important consequences in Heraclius' reign and after. 11
The system which is described ln the sources of the ninth century is very
different. The magistri mllltum, with their field armies, and the limitanei
under their duces are no longer to be found. Instead, the territories
8 See Pelaglus 11, Bp. I, 703-5 (PL LXXII): Greg. I, Bp. I, 59.
9 Por the most recent treabnent, see Hendy, Studies, pp. 4061T., with sources and literature.
10 On these developments see Haldon, ByzantitJe Praetorians. pp. 96fT. and 107fT: and Rtcruit-
rnent and ConscrlpUon, pp. 31-2.
11
ByzanUne Praetorillns, pp. 176ff. See also idem, i\dministrative continuities and structural
transformations in East Roman military organisation c.SS(}-640', in L'Armu romaint et les
barbares du ~ au 7e sikle, eds. F. Vallet, M. Kazanski (Paris 199 3) 45-51 (repr. in Stau, Army
and Society in Byzantium, V).
212 Byzantium in the seventh century
remaining in the empire (or regained since the seventh century) were
divided up into a number of military provinces, or themata, each governed
by a strategos, or general, who - at least in terms of general authority -
held both civil and military powers: although the civilian officials and their
spheres of action within each thema were closely supervised by their
respective chief bureaux at Constantinople. The themata varied in size, but
were subdivided for military purposes into tourmai, or divisions, each
consisting of a number of drouggoi, or brigades. the latter in twn made up
of several banda, or regiments. By the ninth century, the chief territorial
division within the thema was the bandon. also called a topoteresia; but it is
clear that the older provinces of the late Roman period survived well into
the eighth century and possibly into the early ninth. The strategoi were
subject directly to the emperor, by whom they were nominated. They
commanded mixed forces of infantry and cavalry, made up of volunteers
and conscripted soldiers, the latter enlisted according to an hereditary
personal obligation. The frontier districts were organised into 'passes', or
kleisourarchiai, each under a kleisourarch. 12
The thematic administration, which by the middle of the ninth century
clearly included also the civil government of the areas encompassed by
each thema, was controlled from Constantinople by the various fiscal
administrative sekreta - the genikon, eidikon and stratiotikon, supervised by
the sakellion and the sakellarios - through their thematic representatives:
the protonotarios for the sakellion; the chartoularioi of the provincial treasu-
ries for the genikon, along with their subordinate fiscal officials - dioiketai,
epoptal, exisotai and so on - and the thematic chartoularioi of the stratioti-
kon. The latter were attached directly to the staff of the strategos, who had
his own corps of guards, and a staff of clerical officials, in addition to the
military officers of his command. 1 3
While the number of themata had multiplied during the eighth century
and especially the ninth century, partly through the subdividing of older
and larger themata, partly through the acquisition of new (reconquered)
territories, there had been originally only four such regions: the Opsikion,
the Anatolikon, the Armeniakon and the Thrakesion: together with a fifth
division, the fleet of the Karabisianoi, which included the islands of the
Aegean and part of the south-west coast of Asia Minor. It is now generally
agreed that the Thrakesion army, which represented the older division of
the magister militum per Thracias, had been established in the area later
known as the thema of the same name some time during the middle years
12 For a descriptive survey of the themata, see CMH. vol. IV, part 2, pp. 35fT.: Toynbee.
Constantine Porphyrogenitus, pp. 1340'. and 224ft'. For further literature on their origins
see chapter 5, note 70 above.
11 For a summary, see Oikonomides, Presiance, pp. 341fT. with literature.
Military administration 213
of the seventh century and that lt ls as old as the other original themata. 14
During the reign of Justinian Il these five divisions existed alongside the
forces of the exarchates of Italy and Africa: and, as has long been recog-
nised, they were descended respectively from the armies of the maglstrl
mllltum praesentales. per Orlentem, ptr Armeniam, per Thraclas, as we have
already noted, and from the forces under the quaestor exercltus. 1 5
The first reference to these divisions together occurs In the lusslo of the
Emperor Justinian 11. sent to the pope in 68 7 ln confirmation of the acts of
the sixth ecumenical council of 680. As witnesses to the orthodoxy of the
emperor and his subjects, the emperor lists the following:
delnceps mllltantes lncolas sanctl palatil, nee non et ex collegils popularlbus et ab
excubltorlbus. lnsuper etlam quosdam de Chrlsto dllectls exercltlbus, tam ab a Deo
conservando Obsequlo, quamque ab Orlentall, Thraclano, similiter et ab Arme-
nlano, etlam ab exercltu Itallano, delnde ex Caravlslensls et Septenslensls seu de
Sardlnla atque de Africa exercltu.t6
By this date therefore the basic elements of the later system of thematic
armies appears to have been established. It is the process of this estab-
lishment. the origins of the armies concerned, and the transformation from
late Roman Institutions and practices to which I shall now turn.
Two questions present themselves: When did these forces occupy Anato-
lia? And how were they recruited, organised and supported? Two related
questions follow: What was the relationship between these forces and the
civilian population, and between their commanders and the civil admin-
istration? And what was the relationship between the establishment of
these forces in Asia Minor and the later system of military land-holding
familiar from the legislation of the tenth century? The first and third
questions are probably the most straightforward. and I will deal with them
first.
The first explicit reference to the Opslklon (Latin Obsequlum) division is for
680, when the komes of the Opsiklon is listed among the officers accom-
panying the emperor during the sessions of the sixth ecumenical council;
although there is good reason to think that the Opsikion army existed
1" See the now out-of-date but still important work of Gelzer, Themenverfassung, pp. 9f. and
1911'.: and also Ostrogorsky, Geschlchte, pp. 80f., with map and literature: Lllle, Die
byzantlnlsche Realctlon. pp. 287fT.: Haldon, Byzantine Praetorlans, p. 165. For the first
references to the districts and armies of the thernata In the sources, see Pertusi, De
Thenaatlbus, comm. pp. 104-11, 114-20. 124-30 and 149fT. Por the Thralceslon therna,
Lllie, ...Thraklen" und ..Thrakeslon"', 22-7.
15 See Pertusi, De Thematlbus, comm. pp. 105f. and 149: Haldon, Byzantine Praetorlans, p.
16 5 with literature: H. Antoniadls-Bibicou, Btudes d'hlstolre maritime d Byzance, d propos du
Thime des Caravlslens (Paris 1966), esp. pp. 6311'.: Toynbee, Constantlne Porphyrogenltus,
pp. 235(.
16 Manst XI. 73 7f.: Rledinger, 886.20-25.
214 Byzantium in the seventh century
already in the 640s and before: 17 in addition, it is almost certain that the
Armenian noble Mzez Gnouni - the Mizlzios of the Greek sources - was
komes of the Opslkion in the 660s, and up to his death after the assassi-
nation of Constans 11 In 668. 18 Certainly by the late 680s this army was
seen as occupying a defined region. as later sources testify, although the
evidence of seals of lcommerkiarioi show that the traditional provincial
names continued to be employed by contemporaries as before. 19 The
Armeniakon and Anatolilcon themata appear in references for the years 667
and 669 respectively: 20 the Thrakesion thema is that referred to as the
Thracianus exercltus in the iusslo of 68 7 referred to above: 21 while the
Caravisianl - Karablslanol - appear In the same document. and at approxi-
mately the same time in an account contained In the collection of the
miracles of St Demetrius at Thessaloniki. 22
The word thema· is itself a problem. In the older literature, and in
particular in the work of Ostrogorsky, it was argued that it bore a specific
technical meaning, namely a definite region, occupied by a military corps
commanded by a strategos, who was· the governor-general of his region
and in whose hands both civil and military authority were unlted. 23 This
view has been challenged from a number of different perspectives, but most
importantly. the earliest reference to the word thema, in the ninth-century
Chronography of Theophanes Confessor, has generally been regarded as
an anachronism, contemporary with the compiler of the chronicle, not
with the events described. The case cannot actually be conclusively proved
in either direction. In the last analysis, the most that can safely be said
about the term in these earliest occurrences is that it refers merely to
armies: it is clear that in mentions of themata from the later seventh century
this is how the word is used. 24 That it was later applied to the districts
where these forces were based Is not in doubt. But this does not seem to
happen until the later seventh century (according to the ninth-century
historical sources) or the beginning of the eighth century (according to the
11 Mansl XI. 209: Riedinger. 14.20-21: Haldon. ByzanUnt Praetorians. pp. 144!. and 175-80.
•s Haldon, Byzatttlr~e Praetorlans, pp. 179f.
'' See Theophanes. 364: Nlcephorus, 36. 20. For the seals, Zacos and Veglery, no. 186
(dated 694/5) of George. apo hypatOn, (for) the Slav prisoners of the tparchla of Blthynla:
no. 187 (dated 694/5) of George, apo hypaton, of the apothllcl of the Slav prisoners In
Phrygia Salutarla: no 243 (dated 731/2), of the lmperlallcornmerlda ofBithynla, Salutarla
and Pakatlane; and so on. See Zacos and Veglery, tables.
20 Theophanes, 348. 29: 352. 14-23.
21 Mansi XI. 737: Riedlnger. 886.23. See IJlie, • -rhrakien" und lhrakesion" ', 22ff.
22 See the references assembled in Pertusl. Dt Thttnatlbus, p. 149.
21 See the classic summary of this position in Ostrogorsky, Geschichtt, pp. 80fT.. with the
older literature up to 1960.
24 For summaries of the debate and a critique of the Ostrogorsky thesis. see Ulle, Die
byzat~tlnisclte Rtalctlon, pp. 28 70'.: Haldon, 'Some remarks', 167, and Recruitment and
Conscription, pp. 300'.
Militllry administration 215
contemporary documentation). 25 Note that the traditional title of the
regional military commanders - magistri militum -was still in use in 662,
in the district of Lazica in the Caucasus. 26
The word thema, then, seems to be a term introduced during the
seventh century - possibly right at the beginning, but by no means cer-
tainly - to mean an army or division. From its use in later sources. on
contemporary seals and from the list of armies in the iussio of Justinian 11
of 68 7 it is clear that it was applied to the forces of the various maglstrl
mllitum, each of whose corps was described as a thema. At some point
during the seventh century, these forces occupied areas of Asia Minor on
what was to become a permanent basis, each covering a number of
provinces: so that by the early eighth century, the civil provinces could be
counted on occasion in 'thematic' groups, that is, according to which
army occupied them. From this time, therefore, the term thema, while
retaining its original sense of army, could refer also to a distinct geo-
graphical area, and fiscal administrators could be referred to officially as
supervising the provinces of such-and-such a thema. 27
The process by which these armies arrived and were established in Asia
Minor seems now generally agreed: the armies of the magister militum per
Thracias were at some point transferred to Anatolia. either under Hera-
2s Theophanes, 364, 14-16: et~ Ta TOv U+ ..x£ou ... tLiPTI: Nicephorus, 36. 20: et~ ri}vTov
u...XLoU Ae'YOJA.Ell'l\11 xwpav. On the value of these later references and the problems of
interpretation which accompany them, see the comments of Lllie, 'Die zwelthundertjiihr-
ige Reform', 30. For the first references In contemporary documents to thematll, see the
seals noted in chapter 5, note 98 above for the years 717/18 and later: and that of Paul,
dlolkitis of the Anatolikon, dated to c. 700 (Zacos and Veglery, no. 2290).
26 See Devreesse, Hypomnestlcun1, 70. 1-2: lt occurs also - as OTpa'Ml~a,.,c; £11 TOL~
ci11a1'o~a.xoic; f.l.ipea"v - in the (probably late seventh-century) fictional Ufe of St Andrew
the Fool: PG CXI, 632A.
27 The origins and etymology of the word remain unclear: see the literature cited in Haldon,
Recrultrnent and Conscrlptlor1, p. 31 and notes 3 5 and 36. More recently lt has been sug-
gested that the term Is an early seventh-century loan word, from the Chazar turklc word
talrnen, meaning a division of 10,000 soldiers, although I do not find this particularly
convincing. See J. D. Howard-Johnston, 'Thema', In Malstor. Classical, Byzantine and Ren-
aissance Studies for Robert Browning, ed. A. Moffatt (Byzantina Australlensla V. Canberra
1984), pp. 189-97. More convincingly. see J. Koder. 'Zur Bedeutungsentwicklung des
byzantinischen Terminus Thema', JOB 40 (1990) 155-65, suggesting that the term may
already have been employed with the meaning 'designated region' before the middle of the
seventh century. It has also been argued that the themats are to be ldentllled with a
number of districts which appear in the earliest Arab accounts of the conquest of Syria
and which clearly predate the actual conquest of these areas. These districts are referred to
as Junds (Arab. Jund, pi. Ajnad), and it has been argued that they actually represent the
military zones of a Heraclian thematic reorganisation. See I. Shahld. 'Heraclius and the
then1e system: new light from the Arabic', B 67 {1987), 391-403: and I. Shahld,
'Heracllus and the Theme System: Further Observations', B 69 {1989), 208-43. In fact,
216 Byzantium ln the seventh century
3& A point elaborated by Hendy, Studies, pp. 623f. The pattern is not entirely preordained,
however. There is evidence for units of scholarii in the provinces of Phrygia Salutaris
(Dorylaeum, Cotyaeum), Bithynia (Nicomedea, Cion, Prousa) and Hellespontus (Cyzicus)
-see Theophanes, 236. 16sq.; Vita Theodore Syk., 156. 68: 159. 9-11, 38: for domestici
protectores in Galatia I (Ancyra, Anastasioupolis) - see Vita Theodore Syk. 45. 3; 76.3;
Procopius, Historia Arcana XXIV, 25. These areas were all to become part of the Opsikion
district. But there is also evidence for scholarii and domestici in Cappadocia (Justinian, Nov.
30, 7.2 (a. 536)): and for domestici in Galatia Salutaris (Vita Theodore Syk. 101. 5, at
Pessinus) as well as scholarii (Justinian, Edict vm. 3 (a. 548). These areas later formed part
of the Anatolikon and Armeniakon districts. Scholarii were for a time also based in Thrace:
see Theophanes, 236. 16sq., and cf. Hoffmann, Bewegungsheer, vol. I. p. 298: Haldon,
Byzantine Praetorians, pp. 128 and 13 5 and notes.
Military administration 219
The actual date of the withdrawal and the stationing of the Armenian
and Oriental forces seems to have been after the battle of Yarmuk in 636,
in which the joint forces of both field divisions were heavily defeated.
Heraclius withdrew with part of the Oriental force into southern Anatolia,
leaving some units to garrison the cities of Palestine and north Syria that
were still in Roman hands. The forces of the magister militum per Armeniam
withdrew to their bases in Mesopotamia and Armenia. The remaining
Oriental forces were withdrawn from Egypt under treaty in 641 after the
fall of Alexandria. 37 Shortly after 636, Heraclius issued a general order to
the Roman forces in the East, to maintain themselves in their quarters and
bases and to defend their positions against the Arabs, but not to go over to
the offensive or to risk open battle. 38 This is a significant development, for
it clearly represents a first step in the process of permanently establishing
troops in Asia Minor on the one hand, but implies on the other no more
than that the troops should remain (in the districts under the magister
militum per Armeniam, at least) in their traditional quarters and garrison
towns: or (in the case of the troops of the magister militum per Orientem) in
the regions which had been (temporarily) assigned to them in southern
and eastern Asia Minor. By the same order, the troops in the cities and
fortresses still in imperial hands in Palestine and Mesopotamia were also to
adopt a purely defensive strategy.
From the later evidence of the tenth-century compilation De Thematibus
('On the themata'), compiled by the Emperor Constantine VII, it is possible
to reconstruct, approximately, the areas occupied by these forces. The
Opsikion division was already based in the provinces of Hellespontus,
Bithynia, Galatia I, part of Phrygia Salutaris, and Honorias; 39 the Anatoli-
kon forces occupied eventually the southern part of Phrygia Salutaris,
together with Phrygia Pacatiana, Galatia Salutaris, Lycaonia, part of
lsauria, Pamphylia, Pisidia and Lycia; 40 those of the Thracian contingent
the provinces of Asia, Lydia, Caria and a small part of Phrygia Paca-
tiana;41 and those of the Armeniakon the provinces of Cappadocia I and 11,
37 See Baladhuri, 207, 210 and 253: Michael Syr., vol. ll, 424: and cf. Lilie, Die byzantinische
Reaktion, p. 42 note 5 and pp. 300-1: and for Egypt, pp. 48-51 with literature and
sources. See also Stratos, Byzantium in the Seventh Century, vol. ll, pp. 88fT.
38 See DOlger, Regesten, no. 210 with sources. The order was issued probably in 63 7. See
also the discussion of W. E. Kaegi, jr., 'The frontier: barrier or bridge?', 17th International
Byzantine Congress, Major Papers (New York 1986), pp. 279-303: cf. Baladhuri (as in note
37 above).
39 See Pertusi, De Thematibus, 128, 132 and 135: }ones, Cities of the Eastern Roman Provinces,
a pp. iv, tables viii, xii, xiv, xix, xx.
40 Pertusi, De Thematibus, 114f.: }ones, Cities of the Eastern Roman Provinces, a pp. iv, tables xi,
xii, xiii, xv, xvi, xvii. xviii, xxx.
41 Pertusi, De Thematibus, 125: Jones. Cities of the Eastern Roman Provinces, app. iv, tables vii,
ix, x, xi: only the cities of lerapolis, Laodicea and Colossae/Chonae from Phrygia Paca-
tiana- see De Thematibus, lll. 36-7; and Pertusi, ibid., 150.
220 Byzantium in the seventh century
Armenia I-IV, Paphlagonia and Helenopontus. 42 The naval division of the
islands seems at this stage not to have had any mainland territory,
although it is difficult to state with certainty whether Caria belonged
entirely to the region settled by the Thracianus exercitus/Thrakesianoi. It
may be that the littoral of the province, or certain cities and ports along it,
such as Corycus on the Gulf of Attalia, or Kibyra (Cibyra), from which the
later naval thema of the Kibyrrhaiotai takes its name, did form part of this
command. 43
It is possible that the two Cilicias, or parts of them, were originally
intended to be included within the districts covered by the Oriental forces:
but although Byzantines and Arabs continued to fight over these
provinces, it seems clear that it was Heraclius who decided to withdraw to
the Taurus mountains and to establish a new defensive line there, which
was, in the event, to become the new frontier. Both Arabic and Syriac
sources report that Heraclius evacuated the troops and the civil population
alike from Cilicia, and indeed that he established a kleisoura, or several
kleisourai there, on analogy with those existing already along the north-
eastern frontier. 44 These were garrisoned outposts designed to control
access to the mountain passes into Roman territory and had been a normal
feature of the Armenian frontier zone for many years. The establishment of
such garrisons in the Taurus at this time- 638-40 -illustrates the fact
that the Byzantines clearly recognised the danger which now threatened
the provinces of Asia Minor. 45 It seems most likely, therefore, that the
forces of the three magistri militum of Thrace, Oriens and Armenia were
already in the areas which they were to occupy according to later seventh-
century sources by about 640.
The early relationship of these field armies with the civilian government
and population is clearly a more difficult problem. What can be said at the
outset, and which has already been demonstrated, is that the late Roman
provinces continued to exist. Their fiscal administration was still super-
42 Pertusi . .De Thematibus. 118: Jones. Cities of the Eastern Roman Provinces. app. iv. tables
xxii. xxiii. xxiv, xxv, xxvi, xxvii and xxxii. Paphlagonia has until recently been taken to
belong originally to the Opsikion - see Pertusi, De Thematibus, 134 with references. 136f.
But see W. Treadgold, 'Notes on the numbers and organisation of the ninth-century
Byzantine army', GRBS l l (1980). 269-88. see 286-7: and Hendy, Studies. p. 649 with
note 414.
43 See Pertusi, De Thematibus. 149-50: Jones, Cities of the Eastern Roman Provinces, p. 517:
Antoniadis-Bibicou, Histoire maritime. p. 85: and the remarks ofHendy, Studies, p. 652.
44 Baladhuri, 210 and 253: Michael Syr., vol. 11. 424. For the kleisoura, see Michael Syr ..
vol. ll. 422-3: and the discussion of Lilie. Die byzantinische Reaktion, p. 303 note 35.
45 For the older kleisourai. see Karayannopoulos, Entstehung, p. 52 with note 1.
Military administration 221
48 For a detailed description, see Jones, LRE, vol. n. p. 672, with notes 150 and 151; Haldon,
Byzantine Praetorians, p. 113 and note 111.
49 Jones, LRE, vol. 11. p. 673: see C/ Xll, 37.1-3. 5-11. 14-19: 38.1-2: Justinian, Nov. 130,
1-8: cf. J. Maspero. Organisation militaire de l'Egypte byzantine (Paris 1912). pp. 109ft'.
5o Jones. LRE. vol. 11. pp. 673-4: Kaegi. ·rwo studies', 103ft'. with sources.
51 Maurice, Strategikon I. 2. 16. See Haldon, Byzantine Prattorians, p. 113.
52 Kaegi, ·Two studies', 106f. 53 Hendy, Studies, p. 620.
Military administration 223
seventh and early eighth centuries does seem to have been employed to
pay the troops on a number of occasions - signifies more probably the
abandonment of a system of cash payments to soldiers. 69 If this were the
case, then a reasonably precise date can be ascribed to the implementation
of these changes, that is to say, the last years of the reign of Constans II.
This is, of course, some twenty years after the arrival of the field armies in
Asia Minor. But the discrepancy need be more apparent than real -
payments in copper, possibly at a reduced rate (in comparison with the
sixth century), as well as occasional payments in silver and gold, were still
made, 70 while the troops might already have been supported by supplies
and equipment issued for the most part in kind.
That the extent to which the land could support the armies which
occupied it was taken into account from the beginning is clear from the
actual size of the districts which were allotted to each thema or army. As
maps VI and VII will show, the forces occupying the most fertile zone
received by far the smallest district in which to billet its troops and from
which to draw its resources. In contrast, the Armenian forces, which fell
back into eastern Anatolia, occupied the least fertile area made up of some
of the most arid sections of the central plateau, and in consequence -
although there is every reason to suppose that the magister militum per
Armeniam commanded forces significantly less numerous than those of the
magistri militum per Thracias or per Orientem -seem to have been allotted a
much wider resource-area from which to support themselves. The district
of the Opsikion is not part of this pattern, in so far as it existed in effect - as
the area in which the praesental and some palatine forces had always been
stationed - before the 640s and the withdrawal from the East. The
Anatolikon, on the other hand, occupied the area between the Thrakesion,
Opsikion and Armeniakon armies, and once again its extent, contrasted with
both the Thrakesion and the Armeniakon, suggests the nature of the land
from which it was intended it should support itself. While this line of
reasoning is hardly conclusive by itself, it is very suggestive, and it is a
further indication that the withdrawal of 63 7 and after was carefully
organised and co-ordinated, and planned with a view to the problems of
supplying and maintaining the armies in the future. 71
There seems, therefore, to be good circumstantial evidence that the
withdrawal into Asia Minor was, if not planned greatly in advance,
nevertheless planned carefully: and that the provinces into which the
69 Hendy, ibid., with sources and older literature.
70 The cash issued to the troops in 641 was, according to Cedrenus, in gold: that put aside by
Heraclius Constantine and entrusted to the sacellarius Philagrius was similarly (appa-
rently) in the form of gold coins. See note 63 above: and Nicephorus, 28. llsq.: John of
Nikiu, 192. See Haldon, Byzantine Praetorians, pp. 19lf. with note 427.
71 See excursus to chapter 6, pp. 251-3 below.
Map VI Justinianic prefectures and provinces c. A.D. 565
Military administration 229
KEY
(a) Prefecture of Italy 2 7 Palaestina I 56 Phrygia Pacatiana
1 Alpes Cottiae 28 Arabia 57 Caria (in quaestura exercitus)
2 Aemilia 29 Palaestina ll 58 Lycia
3 Venetia (with Histria) 30 Phoenice 59 Lydia
4 Ligurla 31 Theodorias 60 Bithynia
5 Flaminia 32 Cyprus (in quaestura 61 Hellespontus
6 Tuscia et Umbria exercitus) 62 Asia
7 Picenum 33 Phoenice Libanensis 63 Insulae (Aegean Isles - in
8 Samnium 34 Syrian quaestura exercitus)
9 Campania 35 Syria I 64 Creta
10 Apulla et Calabria 36 Euphratensis 65 Europa
11 Lucania et Bruttium 37 Osrhoene 66 Bosporus
12 Sicllla (under quaestor sacri 38 Mesopotamia 67 Haemimontus
palatil) 39 Armenia Ill 68 Rhodope
40 Armenia IV 69 Scythia (in quaestura
(b) Prefecture of Africa 41 Armenia I exercitus)
13 Corsica 42 Armenian 70 Moesia ll (in quaestura
14 Sardinia 43 Helenopontus exercitus)
15 Numidia 44 Cappadocia I 71 Thracia
16 Zeugitania 4S Cillcia II 72 Macedonia I
17 Byzacena 46 Cillcia I 73 Thessalia
18 Tripolitania 47 Cappadocia ll 74 Achaea
48 Lycaonia 75 Epirus vetus
(c) Prefecture of Orlens 49 Isaurla 76 Epirus nova
19 Libya Pentapolis 50 Pamphylia 77 Macedonia U
20 Libya Inferior 51 Pisidia 78 Dacia Mediterranea
21 Arcadia 52 Galatia Salutaris 79 Dardania
22 Thebais Inferior 53 Galatia I 80 Praevalitana
2 3 Augustamnica ll 54 Paphlagonia 81 Dacia ripensis
24 Aegyptus I and ll 55 Phrygia Salutaris 82 Moesia I
2 5 Augustamnica I 83 Dalmatia
26 Palaestina m
~ Thrakesion Ill I Armeniakon
Map VII The Anatolian themata and the late Roman provinces c. A.D. 660
Military administration 231
extra supplies were needed, what was taken was set against the tax-assess-
ment for the following years so that. in theory at least, the tax-payers were
not unfairly exploited. The compulsory purchase of provisions - coemptio
or synone - in addition to, or instead of this procedure, was, except in very
special cases, strictly forbidden. 72 Only one area was exempted from this
rule, namely Thrace where, as the relevant law of Anastasius states,
because the revenue from the land-tax in gold was insufficient, due to
disruption, population decline, and the devastations of the barbarians, the
coemptio was the only reliable way of providing for the troops there. 73
By the early ninth century, if not indeed much earlier, however, the term
synone referred quite simply to the basic land-tax, raised by the state
together with the hearth-tax or kapnikon. The synone, by the eleventh
century at least, could be commuted into cash. 74 ·But in the early ninth
century, without doubt, it was a regular yearly assessment which could be
collected in kind. 75
The question inevitably arises, by what process did a sixth-century tech-
nical term for a compulsory purchase of military provisions, applied only
in exceptional circumstances, come to mean the standard land-tax, also
collected in kind? The answer can only lie in the context outlined above, in
which the state, faced by a drastic shortage of cash, was forced to return to
a system of provisioning all of its troops in kind. The basic land-tax hitherto
raised both in cash and in kind was now raised more regularly and on a
widespread basis in kind alone: and the term henceforth applied to it was
that already available describing precisely such a process, the synone. 76
72 }ones, LRE. vol. I. pp. 235, 460 and note 120.
73 C] x. 27.1 (a. 491) x, 27.2/5-10 (a. 491-505).
74 See Ostrogorsky, 'Steuergemeinde', 490'. and 60f.. 'Steuersystem', 232. and Geschichte,
p. 55 note 2. Contrast DOiger. Beitrtige. pp. 510'. and 78. who sees the synone still as a
simple extra levy in kind. That synone = land-tax is clear from a number of sources, for
example, De Cer. 695. 6-14. where certain households are to be exempt from all regular
fiscal impositions, especially the kapnikon and the synone. This unusual exemption,
granted for a specific purpose, was clearly intended to free such households from all the
state taxes, including those not usually listed in such grants.
75 See Haldon, Byzantine Praetorians, pp. 314f. and notes 950 and 9 51 (letters of the
metropolitan lgnatius of Nicaea). Theophanes (443. 18-22) and Nicephorus (76, 5-14)
refer to the raising of taxes in gold, which suggests that the state was by this time in a
more favourable situation and could choose according to its needs whether to collect in
gold or in kind. But whether this refers to the land-tax, the hearth-tax or both remains
unclear.
76 The system for supplying troops in transit in the fifth and sixth centuries detailed above, in
which military supplies are taken from the tax assessment of each province in kind. is
almost exactly the same in the ninth and tenth centuries. in which the thematic protonota-
rios supplies the troops from the synone in kind. The similarities are so obvious that it is
clear once more that synone must be the Byzantine equivalent of the late Roman basic
land-tax. By the later seventh century, this form of assessment seems to have been well
established, for the Fanners' Law refers to the regular land-tax as the 'extraordinary tax of
the public fisc' (Ta i~Tpaop&..va Tou M,~oaiou ).6'You). Extraordinaria had meant originally
232 Byzantium in the seventh century
The only context in which such a dramatic shift in the form of revenue
collection is likely to have taken place- based as it is implicitly upon the
assumption of a lack of, or shortage of, cash - is that of the seventh
century: and the chief reason was, as we have seen, to support the armies
and other state bureaux in the provinces. It is quite possible that the
original arrangement actually involved both the usual tax-assessment, as
well as a generalised supplementary coemptio for the newly-arrived armies.
The gold or copper thus expended by the state in the process of the
compulsory purchases would be recouped through the usual tax-payments
(the Anastasian regulations on coemptio had envisaged the tax-payer being
recompensed in gold coin). 77 But a proper coemptio as widespread as this
would have demanded reserves of gold and coin which, as we have seen,
the state does not seem to have possessed. As the state found itself unable
to recompense tax-payers for the produce lt needed, yet continued to
demand the necessary provisions, the term will have become generalised
and applied to the ordinary land-tax assessment also.
The final cessation of cash payments and allowances (for weapons and for
clothing, for example) will have involved changes in the method of arming
and equipping the troops, of course. In the sixth century, and probably up
to the reign of Heraclius, soldiers received their initial uniform and issue of
arms directly along with mounts for the cavalry troopers. Weapons and
uniforms were delivered through the prefecture to the units, whose actua-
ries were responsible for submitting claims for what was needed, direcly
from the state manufactories. Serving soldiers received a portion of their
cash pay to cover the costs of purchasing new equipment or remounts: and
it was the responsibility of the officers in each unit to check the soldiers'
equipment and to order new material. 78 Part of this arrangement, of
course, involved the issue of cash to the soldiers, which could be used to
purchase material from the state, but which might also be spent unwisely
on non-military items. Hence the unpopularity of Maurice's attempted
reforms in the 590s. With the cessation of cash allowances altogether this
exceptional levies in addition to the regular taxes. Here in lts Greek variant, extraordina, it
clearly means the regular tax itself. presumably undergoing a similar terminological
transformation to that of synoni. which was Itself originally classed among the e:r:traordi-
tlarla. Note that, In spite of the fact that a large number of soldiers In the forces of the
exarchate of Ravenna did possess land, the local military authorities still provided their
supplies and rations, as a compulsory purchase (coemptio) of grain In 686 demonstrates:
Liber Pontificalis I, 366: see Brown, Get1tlemer~ and Officers. pp. 87-8.
11 See note 73 above. and Haldon. "Synone', for the detailed development of this argument.
711 See Haldon, Byzantine Praetorlans, pp. 113-15 and Recruitment and Conscription, p. 69.
Military administration 233
clearly became impossible. And here another element in the pattern seems
to fit into place.
A number of historians have noted that it is during this period that dated
seals of genikoi kommerkiarioi suddenly become much more common, seals
on which an association between an imperial apotheke and a region or
regions of the empire is apparent. and from which it is clear that one official
often had jurisdiction over a number of widely dispersed areas. On the
whole, this phenomenon has been explained in terms of imperial control
over trading in luxury or other goods, since it is clear that the apothekai
were in origin state depots in which private merchants might also have an
interest. 79 More recently, it has been shown that these apothekai were very
probably storehouses and also emporia for surplus produce from state fac-
tories, chiefly luxury goods such as silks, gold- and silverware, dyed cloths
and so on. 80 It has further been argued that the division within the prefec-
ture of the East between its general and special banks reflects this activity;
for while the actual production of the items in question came under the
supervisory authority of ~ither the magister officiorum (dyeing and weaving)
or the comes sacrarum largitionum (coin and plate), the raw materials were
intially provided through'1:he prefecture and were returned for sale or redis-
tribution to a branch of the prefecture. The special bank seems to have ful-
filled this function, and the later confusion in its name, between eidikon and
idikon - 'things' and 'special' - may reflect this. The production of such
goods certainly seems to have been controlled by the later eidikon, and it
would seem that the newly independent special bank of the prefecture
gained control of these aspects of state manufacturing in the 630s or 640s.
The fact that officials in charge of the silk-producing establishments, for
example, could also be genikoi kommerkiarioi reinforces this impression. 81
But the sudden increased importance of genikoi kommerkiarioi holding
high rank - the first clear example is dated to the years 6 54-9 82 -can have
79 See, e.g .. Antoniadis-Bibicou, Douanes, pp. 1640'.: R. S. Lopez, 'The role of trade in the
economic re-adjustment of Byzantium in the seventh century', DOP 13 (1959), 67-85,
see 73fT.: Lilie, Die byzantinische Reaktion, p. 282: and Zacos and Veglery, vol. I. pp. 135f.
For the apothekai as imperial depots, see Zacos and Veglery, no. 130bis (Tyre, late sixth
century): Antoniadis-Bibicou, Douanes, p. 159: Hendy, Studies, p. 246 (Alexandria).
80 Hendy, Studies. p. 628. That thefabricae were involved is, however, unlikely, pace Hendy,
ibid. The production, transport and possession of weapons was strictly monopolised by the
state and its personnel. i.e. the soldiers. Surplus weapons were stored in the imperial and
municipal arsenals, and it is improbable that they were involved in open commercial
exchanges. See Justinian, Nov. 85 (a. 539).
81 For a detailed treatment, see Hendy. Studies, pp. 628-30: and see above, pp. 186fT.. on the
results of the fiscal reorganisation of Heraclius' reign. For seals of officials who were in
alternate years both genikos kommerkiarios and archontes tou vlattiou (silk-weaving
establishment), see Zacos and Veglery, tables 6/2, 8, 11 etc.
82 Zacos and Veglery, no. 136, seal of Theodore, hypatos and genikos kommerkiarios of the
apotheke of Galatia.
234 Byzantium in the seventh century
had little to do with the sale of luxury goods at a time when the empire was
in such political and fiscal straits. In fact, the kommerkiarioi and the
apothekai which they administered have been plausibly shown by Hendy to
be connected with some aspects of the supplying of the imperial forces. On
a number of occasions, dated seals of kommerkiarioi and apothekai for
specific regions can be related to specific military undertakings connected
with those regions. 83 In view of this connection, and the original role of the
apothekai as stores for the produce of imperial factories, it has been argued
that the main function of the apotheke was to provide the troops with the
necessary equipment for their expedition. 84 The apotheke is thus seen as a
derivative institution or system, rather than an actual storehouse -
although these were certainly involved. The apotheke of a province or
group of provinces thus involved a process, the transport from the point of
manufacture of certain goods, and their distribution to the soldiers of a
given region for a specific purpose or campaign, a process supervised and
directed by a general kommerkiarios. This connection is borne out by
numerous other examples- campaigns in 68 7/8 in eastern Asia Minor are
accompanied by the appearance of seals of the apotheke in Cilicia, Cappado-
cia and Armenia: the campaign in Thrace in 689/90 is accompanied by
the appearance of the apotheke in Constantinople and Helenopontus, and in
the Cyclades and Crete: the naval expedition to recover Carthage in 696/7
is similarly accompanied by the appearance of the apotheke in the Cyclades
and in Sicily. Examples can be multiplied, and while not every such seal
can be so closely tied in with a specific example of an expedition in the
literary sources, the connection is too strong to be a coincidence. 85
83 The clearest example is that for Justinian ll's campaign against the Arabs in 692/3 and
694/5. Four seals, dated to the 8th indiction, that is. to 694/5, exist for a certain George,
apo hypat.On, all connected with the Slav prisoners settled in Asia Minor by Justinian in
688/9 and, respectively, with the apotheke of the provinces of Caria, Asia and Lycia, of
Bithynia, of Phrygia Salutaris, and of the two Cappadocias. Theophanes reports Justi-
nian's forced transfer of the Slavs to Asia Minor, specifically to the Opsikion district (i.e.
Bithynia and Phrygia Salutaris) in 688/9, and two unsuccessful campaigns in the region
of Sebastopolis, i.e. in Armenia. in 692/3 and 694/5. See Theophanes, 364. 11-366, 23.
Whether or not Theophanes' dates are entirely correct, it is clear that the transfer of Slavs
to Asia Minor. the establishment of a corps of Slav soldiers by Justinian from among the
captive populations, the campaigns of 692-5, and the apotheke of the regions in which the
Slavs were settled, are closely connected. For the seals see Zacos and Veglery, nos. 2764,
186, 187 and 188, and table 33 (for Asia, Caria and Lycia, Rhodes and the Cherson-
nesos); and see table 18/2: the seal ofGeorge, apo hypat.On and genikos kommerkiarios of the
(apotheke of the) Armeniakoi, read by Mordbnann and followed by others (most recently
Hendy, Studies, p. 631 note 340) for 694/5, is in fact for one of the regions of Annenia,
not the district of the Armeniakoi. But it is connected with the first four seals mentioned
above. See W. Seibt, review of Zacos and Veglery, in BS 36 (1975), 209.
84 Hendy, Studies, pp. 631-3.
85 For a detailed account, with both sigillographic and literary evidence, see Hendy, Studies,
pp. 6 54-60 and 66 7-9.
Militllry administration 235
This explanation, which represents a major advance in our understand-
ing of the function of the kommerldarioi and the apotheke in the seventh
century, has been challenged, however. 86 Several objections have been
raised: first, no text refers explicitly to a connection between the supply of
weapons and the kommerkiarioi or apotheke: second, the chronology of the
events of 688 to 694/5, which constitutes a central element in the
demonstration of the validity of the argument outlined above, has been
forced - in fact, the seals of the kommerkiarioi and of the Slav prisoners of
the eighth indiction, i.e. 694/5, post-date the campaigns for which,
according to Hendy, they were mobilised; third, the kommerkiarioi and the
apothekai were connected specifically with silk, its production and sale -the
emperor's effigy on these seals was, like that on imperial coins, a validation
of the purity of the product thus marked. According to this argument, the
Slav prisoners and the seals pertaining to them can be more readily
explained in terms of a mass distribution and sale of the rebellious Slavs in
694/5 as slaves in various provinces of the empire, a contract fanned out
to the kommerkiarios George, who used the apotheke system already in
existence to fulfil it. The argument is underpinned with the assumption
that the demand for silk in the seventh century was considerable enough to
warrant a major investment and interest in its production: that this
investment took place in the seventh century - from about 629 in Cyprus,
in the period 641 and after in North Africa, and from about 654 in
Anatolia- and that it was during this time that the silk industry 'grew and
became one of the pillars of the empire's state economy'; and also that this
growth took place chiefly in Asia Minor until the 730s and after, when it
was transferred to Thrace and the south Balkan area.
Now there are a number of serious objections to this theory as it stands.
There is no reason to doubt that the late sixth- and early seventh-century
kommerkiarios may have been a contract-farmer who held a monopoly
over the purchase and resale of silk within the empire; but there is no
reason to doubt either that - as Oikonomides in fact admits 87 - these
official contractors also dealt in goods other than silk alone and had charge
of the apothekai in which they were deposited, a point already made by
Hendy. 88 There are no grounds for assuming that this did not continue to
be the case throughout the seventh century and the eighth century. The
fact that seals bearing the emperor's effigy, and used to validate quality
(and origin- in imperial workshops or imperial-controlled or supervised
centres of production), are employed, is no argument that the goods in
question involved silk alone: the products of the imperial arms factories
86 N. Oikonomides, 'Silk trade and production in Byzantium from the sixth to the ninth
century: the seals of kommerkiarioi', OOP 40 ( 19 8 6 ), 3 3-5 3.
87 Ibid., 34-5 and 38-9. 8 8 Hendy, Studies, pp. 627fT.
236 Byzantium in the seventh century
had also been a state monopoly (like silk in the later sixth century), and
such seals might equally serve to confirm the origin and legality of
consignments of weapons produced in the state workshops or elsewhere
under state licence. If Oikonomides is correct as far as the Slav prisoners
are concerned - that is, that the seals in question relate to a mass sale of
Slavs through the kommerkiarios - this single example is alone sufficient to
refute the notion that kommerkiarioi dealt only in silk, the more so since on
one of the seals the apotheke is specifically mentioned: if the kommerkiarios
in question were bidding for the contract to sell slaves in his private
capacity then it seems unlikely that he would put the apotheke on his seal.
In fact, it seems quite logical to assume that the emperor's effigy on the
seals is simply a validation of the formal and imperially sanctioned nature
of the transaction (whatever its exact nature), and that it need have
nothing at all to do with silk - a point also tacitly conceded, although
Oikonomides wishes to argue that the example of the sale of slaves was
probably an exception.
There are a number of other points to be considered, however. Even if
Hendy is wrong as regards the sale of the Slav prisoners, the general
hypothesis remains strong. The coincidence between the dated seals of
kommerkiarioi and apothekai, and known military expeditions, is really too
marked to be written off as mere chance. In the second place, the argument
relating kommerkiarioi to silk and to the importance of silk for the imperial
economy in the seventh and eighth centuries depends upon a number of
dubious assumptions about the nature of sericulture. Crucial to Oikono-
mides' argument is the assumption that mulberry trees - which require a
moderate climate- could flourish throughout Anatolia (except in Galatia I,
for which no seal survives), in provinces as diverse as Asia or Caria, on the
one hand, which have a relatively high rainfall and standard Mediter-
ranean climatic conditions, and Lycaonia, the Cappadocias and the
provinces of Armenia on the other, which have extreme seasonal variation
between winter and summer, and very much lower rainfall. The mulberry
tree (Morus alba) needs deep, well-drained and fairly rich loams to prosper,
with adequate supplies of moisture. Eastern and central Anatolia can offer
these conditions, when at all, on an extremely limited basis. On these
grounds alone, therefore, the long-term production of silk in eastern Asia
Minor, supposedly represented by the seals of kommerkiarioi and apothekai
for these provinces, is very doubtful. It is admitted, however, that the
'silk-producing areas' were forced to move westwards as a result of the
effects of Arab raids and attacks- but only from the 730s and later. 89
89 Oikonomides. ·silk trade', 44. In modern Turkey the very small silk industry is limited to
the region around Bursa. in the north-west of Anatolia. and Antakya (Antioch on the
Military administration 237
But Asia Minor, especially the central and eastern regions, was already
subject to regular and devastating enemy action from the 650s if not a
decade earlier. The evidence surveyed already (see chapter 3 above) is
overwhelming. The stable political conditions for such an investment
simply did not exist at this time. Even if one were to concede that isolated
groves of mulberry trees could survive in certain secluded valleys, and that
silk production could continue uninterrupted, this could hardly have
provided the major source of silk - and imperial revenue - at this time. And
indeed, one might also ask, where was the market for such large-scale
production as is envisaged? Given the restrictive and redistributive nature
of the state economy at this period, such sales can have brought in very
little in net terms to the imperial fisc. It could be pointed out, of course, that
silk - like gold - formed a major element in Byzantine diplomacy: used to
buy off foreign powers, as gifts or bribes, as a form of payment and so on.
Silk may well have been used in this way, and indeed in the ninth and
tenth centuries military officers and others received silk vestments as a
form of remuneration. But if silk were really on a par with gold, and
indeed, almost replacing gold, why is it never referred to in this sense for
this period in the sources? Gold and horses, and sometimes slaves, are
mentioned as the usual forms of such gifts or tribute: precious silks, when
they do occur, clearly occupy a relatively minor role. And the contention
that the connection between the department of the blattion (the imperial
silk-workshop) and some of the kommerkiarioi is a proof of this notion, is
hardly a convincing argument - the fact that kommerkiarioi were (also)
responsible for silk production is not to be doubted.
In the third place, Oikonomides has argued that the westward move-
ment of the 'silk-producing areas' in the eighth century illustrates a flight
away from the war-zone - thus implicitly countering the idea that the
kommerkiarioi and the apothekai were connected with supplying the mili-
tary. Two observations are relevant here. First, it is nowhere argued that
the kommerkiarioi had to do only with the supplying of the troops with
equipment - merely that this became one of their functions. Second, this
function did not last much longer than the crisis which called it into being:
and indeed, the movement westwards (that is to say, the appearance of
fewer seals for kommerkiarioi and apothekai for the Anatolian provinces,
and a corresponding increase in the number of such seals for the Balkan
districts) actually conforms to a real shift in the military strategy of the
empire, as the Balkans became a more significant - and more contested -
element in its political environment. Again, the close connection between
known military undertakings and the seals of kommerkiarioi and apothekai
Orontes) in the far south, both areas of Mediterranean climatic type. See J. C. Dewdney,
Turkey (London 1971), pp. 135-6 and 182.
238 Byzantium ln the uwnth century
is compelling, and it is a relationship not challenged by the arguments put
forward by Olkonomldes. 90
While there is no reason to doubt, therefore, that the kommerklarlol and
the kommerkla or apothekal were also connected with the sale and pro-
duction of silk, there Is every reason to reject the hypothesis that they were
exclusively to do with this activity. The historical context, quite apart from
the nature and demands of seventh- and eighth-century state ftscality,
make it inherently unlikely. The evidence in favour depends in certain
crucial ways upon arguments which can be shown to be false: while the
evidence against it is enough to flaw it in fundamental ways. In respect of
the sale of Slav prisoners in 694/5, Oikonomides may well be right. But
this neither supports nor detracts from his argumentation ln any crucial
way.
To return to the main argument once more. What seems to have hap-
pened, therefore, is that the state, having cut down to a bare minimum (the
donative) the cash paid out to the armies, had to find an alternative way of
supplying and equipping its soldiers. Supplies could be raised in kind, as we
have seen. Hitherto, the troops had received initial grants of equipment
free, and cash allowances thereafter for remounts, replacement weapons
and so on. With the cessation of cash annonae and grants for such
equipment, and the return to supplying the armies in kind, a system had to
be found whereby weapons and equipment could also be supplied and
distributed. The extension of the role of the apotheke, which represented the
central and provincial storehouses of the special bank of the prefecture -
now the eidikon/idikon logothesion- offered an obvious solution.
But Hendy has also argued that the equipment involved - including
weapons - was sold to the troops, partly on the grounds that the kommer-
klarlol have generally been assumed to be tax-collectors, and that the
pattern demonstrated by the seals - appointment by the year, dated by
lndlctlon, often alternating with similar appointments for different regions
or for different spheres of imperial manufacturing - suggests that the
kommerklariol were tax-farmers. Further, it has been taken for granted that
the material to be distributed to the soldiers was the product of imperial
workshops: the ergodosia in Constantinople and elsewhere, and the
imperial arms-factories. But here we meet a number ofproblems. 91
In the first place, while the stale weaving- and cloth-factories had
90 See Hendy, Studies. pp. 654fT. See also A. Dunn. 'The Kommerldar1os. the Apotheke. the
Dromos, the Vardarios. and The West', BMGS 17 (1993) 3-24. at 11: and D. Jacoby. 'SUk in
Western Byzantium before the Fourth Crusade', BZ 84/85 (1991/1992) 452-500. see 454
n. 7.
91 See esp. ). W. Nesbltt. 'Double names on early Byzantine lead seals', DOP 31 (1977),
111-21, see esp. 115-17, and note 20: Hendy, Studies. p. 626 and note 310, and pp. 633
and 636.
Military administration 239
99 For the classic example of tax-farming in the late Roman state. see Jones, LRE, vol. I.
p. 457.
100 See the evidence cited in Haldon, Byzantine Praetorians, pp. 320-2 and notes. The fact
that the kommerkiarioi were in origin purely civilian officials is not a serious objection to
this development. In the first place, there were neither juridical nor institutional hindran-
ces to it: in the second place, the appointment of civil officials to military commands, for
example, where the emperor placed particular trust in the individual concerned, was
quite usual - cf. the example of the deacon John, genikos logothetis, appointed to
command the expedition assembling on Rhodes in 714 (see Theophanes, 385. 5sq. and
the discussion of Hendy, Studies. pp. 657f.). In the crisis faced by the state at this period,
such measures are only too easily explained.
101 Zacos and Veglery, no. 144. seal of Stephen, apo hypaton, patrikios, stratiotikos logothetis
and genikos kommerkiarios of the apotheke of ... (dated 659-68).
102 See Maurice, Strategikon I. 2.11: and cf. Theophylact Simocatta VI. 6.4, VII, 7.1, VIII.
12.12: Haldon, Byzantine Praetorians, p. 104 and note 63. For the later adnoumion, see
242 Byzantium in the seventh century
By the same token, no loosening of state control over the production of
weapons and, more significantly, the ownership of weapons need be
implied (although this may have been an unavoidable result). The strict
regulations on the shipment and possession of weapons In Justinian's
novel 85 were retained in later legislation: and while the state therefore
gave up its monopoly on production, it still intended to limit the possession
of arms to its soldiers alone. 103
There seems little doubt that by the time of the Ecloga of Leo and
Constantine in 741 provincial soldiers were assumed to own the basic
elements of their equipment - weapons, armour and, where relevant,
horse. They were responsible for its maintenance in good condition and -
certainly by the later eighth century - for the replacement of items, such as
horses, which had been lost in the lnterim. 104 An eighth-century legal text
also makes it clear that private persons were able, but not obliged, to
contribute to the cost of equipping a soldier, thus emphasising the personal
ownership of such material. 105 Bqu~lly. while the legal texts state that the
soldiers did receive some cash emoluments, referred to as rhogai, they also
received annonae, that is to say. provisions in kind. This suggests that the
term rhoga had already come to be used of the donative (and, indeed, of any
cash payment) - even though, as we have seen, this was issued probably
on a four-yearly rotational basis by this time - and that the rations in kind
were the main support of the armies. 106 The fact that the same texts refer
to the annonae of civil officials makes the situation clear - the state had had
to revert almost entirely to a system of payment in kind, in the provinces at
least.
What appears to have been happening, therefore, was that the state
Leo, Tactlca, VI. 15: Anon. Vtiri, 48 (28.3sq. Dennls): Haldon, Recruitment and Cons-
crlptiotr, p. 63: and on the Issue of weapons, see Haldon, Praetorlans, pp. 114-15.
101 See Justinian, Nov. 85 and cf. Basilica LVII, 9.1: Prochelros nomos XXXIX. That private
production may have taken place - particularly In specialist production such as bows. or
mall and lamellar armour - Is suggested by the existence of a memorial stone of a
bowmaker from the Attaleia region. See Gregolre. Recuells. no. 308 ( = CIG 9239), of the
seventh or eighth century.
104 See Haldon. Recruitment and Conscription, pp. 67-72 for a detailed treatment and analy-
sis of the relevant sources. The key text Is Bcloga XVI, 2.
1os See especially the (probably) mid-eighth-century text of a legal decision attributed by Its
editor to Leo Ill and Constantlne V, In which a soldier's father-in-law Is referred to as
contributing to the expense of equipping the former: ed. D. Slmon. •oyzantlnlsche
Hausgemelnschaftsvertriige', In Beltrtlge zur europdlschen Rechtsgeschlchte und zum gelten-
den Zlvllrecht. Festgabe fiir J. Sontls (Munich 1977), pp. 91-128, see 94: see also Burg-
mann, Bcloga. 13 S-6. I have discussed this, and related texts. elsewhere: see J. F. Haldon.
'Military service, military lands. and the status of soldiers', 20fT.
lo& See Ecloga XVI. 4, where rogal are carefully defined as coming respectively from the
emperor's hand (I.e. donatlves or similar payments from the emperor's own treasury):
whereas annonal and synethtial came from the ditnoslon, that is to say, the public fisc.
Military administration 243'
issued soldiers with their basic equipment, as in the fourth centwy, which
the soldiers were expected to look after and present in good order at
musters and parades (adnoumia). This was produced partly in imperial
workshops, but mostly under contract or by levy on the provincial popu-
lations. Whatever the initial legal status of such equipment may have been,
it is clear that by the time of the Ecloga text, and certainly by the time of the
writing of the Life of St Philaretus, the weapons and other material,
including the soldier's horse, were regarded as his possessions, for which
he was responsible. And while the state seems to have issued the basic
requirements in the first instance, more expensive weaponry and armour
was clearly available from private producers, or possibly from certain state
workshops. This much is clear from the second legal text of the reign of Leo
Ill and Constantine, referred to already. It is also evident from hagiographi-
cal sources, and from Theophanes' account of the second evil deed of the
Emperor Nicephorus I that soldiers were expected to pay for and maintain
their own equipment by the early ninth century .107 The cumulative
pay-scales, recorded by ninth-century Arab geographers, which may
reflect the seventh-century situation or an evolqtion from it no doubt
contributed to soldiers' ability to cover such additional expenditure, and
may indeed represent this initial state issue when service was first begun
and the increasing obligation of the soldiers as time passed to cater for their
own equipment and mounts. But even in the ninth and tenth centuries, it
seems that the state still equipped some soldiers and levied large amounts
of military matiriel, in addition to expecting thematic soldiers to provide for
themselves. 108
What this means in practical terms is that two complementary systems
operated side by side. Troops raised for specific campaigns were armed and
equipped by the state - this is presumably the chief function of the eidikon
and its apothekai in our period, and of the eidikon and the thematic
protonotarioi in the ninth and tenth centuries. On such occasions, troops
already available were mobilised, too, and were expected to turn out with
their weapons, mounts and so on. Failure to do so had severe con-
sequences, as the evident fear of the soldier Mousoulios in the Life of St
Philaretus, as well as other, later examples, amply demonstrates. 109 But
10 7See Vita S. Philareti. 125. 34sq. and see Haldon, Recruitment and Conscription. pp. 50-1
and note 58 and pp. 58ft'. For the reforms of the Emperor Nicephorus I. by which
impoverished soldiers were to be equipped by their fellow villagers. Theophanes, 486.
2 3-=-6. For the Arabic source. see lbn Khurradadhbih, Kitab al-Mastilik w'al-Mamtilik. in
M.-J. de Goeje, Bibliotheca Geographorum Araborum VI (Leiden 1889). pp. 76-85, see
p. 84.
tos See De Cer. 657. 12sq.• 658. 4sq.
109 For Mousoulios, see note 107 above: and cf. the similar case of a horseless soldier
reported in the Life of Eustratius (Vita Eustratii, 3 77. 3-6; see Haldon, Recruitment and
Conscription, p. 51 note 88). Oikonomides has argued plausibly that the four-yearly cycle
244 Byzantium in the seventh century
the state can hardly have expected soldiers whom it did not pay in cash to
buy their equipment. On the other hand, those who could afford it would
undoubtedly provide themselves with the best weapons and armour. And
as the state, keen to minimise its own outgoings, and indeed the burden on
local populations, insisted on the soldiers' responsibility for their weapons
and mounts, so it would have encouraged private investment in such
equipment, with the inevitable result that possession on the one hand, and
legal ownership on the other, were assimilated.
We can now turn to another aspect of the possible sources of support for
the soldier, that is, the question of the military lands and the degree to
which the state actually promoted a policy of providing soldiers with land
from which they could support themselves and their duties.
It has been argued that, on the assumption that the state sold weapons
and military equipment to the soldiers through the apotheke system, and
had also withdrawn regular cash payments to them except for the quad-
rennial/quinquennial donatives, it must have had to provide them with an
alternative form of income: for how else could the soldiers have paid for the
equipment available for purchase through the kommerkiarioi? Given the
types of resources available, the only viable solution in such a situation, it
is argued, would be to give soldiers land, which they and their families
could cultivate, hence providing an income for their support. 110
But there are a number of flaws in this argument also. In the first place,
even if some soldiers and their families were given grants of land and the
time required to bring it under cultivation, or at the least to achieve the
minimum requirements in terms of autarky - let alone the production of
the considerable surpluses necessary to support a soldier, purchase his
equipment and maintain a sustained level of productivity - even if this
were the case, it is inherently improbable that all soldiers could be sup-
ported in this way. Some would simply lack the requisite technical skill and
knowledge: others might have no family adequate to farming the land.
Quite apart from this, of course, is the fact that most campaigns took place
at precisely the times of the year when agricultural production demanded
the most attention and labour, in particular during harvesting. 111 Equally.
if- as has been argued 112 - soldiers were originally given lands on imperial
estates, complete with tenants to carry out the agricultural labour for them,
it is very difficult to explain how such large holdings came to be reduced to
the state of poverty implicit in the case of the soldier Mousoullos from the
Life of Phllaretus - for surely such an argument must presuppose a degree
of state protection of such holdings against alienation and impoverishment
(as was the case. for example. from the first half of the tenth century). The
provision of soldiers with land, therefore, can at best have been a very slow
and partial procedure.
In the second place, it is clear from the available evidence for the eighth.
ninth and tenth centuries that there existed prior to the legislation of the
mid-tenth century no legislation to bind soldiers, land and military service
together: and if the state had given land to troops directly in return for
military service, there would surely have remained some echo of this in the
legislation or in some narrative source, somewhere. But the sources remain
either quite silent on this point, or they positively assume otherwise.
Indeed, neither of the two early eighth-century legal texts thus far referred
to suggest any obligation upon soldiers' families to support them: and they
actually make it quite clear that soldiers could leave their households and
lands at liberty. This can only have been the case if the state, in principle at
least. was still assumed to maintain its troops, if not also with a first issue of
equipment and weapons, then certainly with regular annonae or provisions
(and later cash rhogai). What the sources do make clear is that military
service ln the provincial, that is to say thematic, armies was. for many of
the soldiers if not for all of them (for some continued always to be recruited
on a mercenary basis and for the duration of a specific campaign) 113 a
''' Soldiers were officially prohibited from engaging In farming for others. For the legislation
and its relevance, see Haldon, Recrultme11t and Conscription, pp. 48-9 and note 83: 72-3
and note 128: Ahrweiler, •Recherches', 8f. For an Illustrative example, prohibiting
soldiers from engaging In agriculture and trade, see Leges rnllltares (ed. Koriensky), 80, 2.
As Lllle, ·me zwelhundertjahrlge Reform', 194, has noted, the continued official emphasis
on this ruling would tend to exclude an official promotion of the personal Involvement of
soldiers In such activities. On the other hand. the efficacy and purpose. as well as the date.
of the •Military Laws' remain unclear: while such prohibitions may have been intended to
apply only to full-time salaried troops. See the remarks of Oikonomldes, •Middle Byzan-
tine Provincial Recruits', 13 3 note 36.
I l l W.T. Treadgold. •The military lands and the imperial estates in the middle Byzantine
empire', In Oktanos. Essays presented to I. Sevcerdco (Harvard Ukralrrla11 Studies, VII, Cam-
bridge, Mass. 198 3), pp. 619-31.
11 J See Haldon, Recrult,Jerrt atJd CorJscriptlon, p. 79 note 14 5, and Byzantine Praetorlans,
pp. 216-20. This is undoubtedly also the Implication of the comments of Theodore the
Studite in a letter of the year 801 (ed. G. Fatouros, Theodori Studitae Epistulae (CFHB XXXI
1/2. Berlin 199 2 ). ep. 7. 61-6 3) to the effect that widows of soldiers need no longer 'lament
bitterly at the piteous and inhuman demands made on their dead husbands' account'. The
text suggests that the state continued to demand the equivalent of the husband's military
246 Byzantium in the seventh century
personal and hereditary obligation. Only in the tenth century was this
obligation transferred to the land. 114
It seems, therefore, unlikely that a great many soldiers were able to take
up such an option on land, even if it were available. Yet all soldiers had
been deprived of the greater part of their regular cash income and their
cash allowances for weapons, clothing and other equipment. The notion
that the apotheke was in the business of selling weapons to such soldiers
thus becomes even more unlikely. Soldiers In this position will have been
simply unable to purchase weapons on this basis. And the only conclusion
must be that the state, as I have surmised, did not sell weapons and
equipment: it issued them directly, exploiting both urban and provincial
craftsmen and skills, and thereby saving its own resources. The apotheki
system was a convenient and pre-existing means of widening and systema-
tising the basis of production and distribution of military requirements.
The fact that it is just such a system which operated in the ninth and tenth
centuries (although no longer through the kommerkiarioi) lends strength to
the argument.
An otherwise apparently powerful argument for the state's attribution of
land to soldiers for their maintenance is thus crucially weakened. The state
could clearly support and maintain its armies on a traditional basis of
levies of provisions in kind, as it had always done for military expedition-
ary forces anyway, and as it had done during the fourth and much of the
fifth centuries. It may well have attempted to lighten the burden by
granting leave to soldiers who had families that could support them during
the winter, for example, thus having to provision those soldiers who
remained in camp or on active service only. There is some evidence, again
from the Ecloga text (XVI, 1) that this was indeed the case.11s As the
thetnata became firmly established, so the probability that soldiers have
families or relatives in the garrison area increases, and thus the possibilities
for the state to transfer the leave-time support of the troops to the soldiers
themselves will also have increased. Given the difficult situation, there is
no reason to doubt that the state exploited such possibilities to the full.
None of this means that soldiers could not or did not hold or own land:
service in some other form, possibly cash or support for a replacement - the threat of the
withdrawal of the special exempt status of soldiers' families ln respect of certain tlscal and
other dues will probably also have played a role.
114 The question and the sources are analysed ln detail ln Haldon, Recruitment and Cons-
cription. pp. 41-65. The clear evidence for a personal and hereditary military service In
the ninth and tenth centuries, but one which was In no way formally and legally
associated with land (until the legislation or Roman us I and Constantlne VII) Invalidates
any line of reasoning which argues for a Heracllan origin for this relationship. or course.
The argumentation of both Hendy and Treadgold Is In this respect Hawed. Por a similar
critique of Treadgold. see R.-J. Lilie, 'Die byzantlnlschen Staatsftnanzen lm 8./9. Jahr-
hundert und die <rrpaT~.CMLxa xn;p.a,.a', BS 47 (1987), 49-55, see 50-1.
11s See the apposite comments of Lllle, •Die zwelhundertjihrlge Reform'. 194 and note 77.
MilitJlry administration 247
nor that military service did not come to be supported by and associated
with such holdings. Soldiers were clearly expected to be at least partially
self-supporting by the later eighth. and certainly by the ninth century: 116
and some of the divergent views of historians who have examined this
question can be partially reconciled in this respect.
For there is also no doubt that the state did give land to individuals, from
whom it then expected to recruit soldiers. In the 590s. the Emperor
Maurice is reported to have decreed the raising of 30,000 cavalry soldiers
in Thrace. to which end he ordered the settling by forced transfer of the
same number of Armenian families to Thrace. While the figures may no
doubt be considerably inftated. the principle is clear. 117 Similarly. it is clear
that the Slavs, whom Justinian 11 transferred to Asia Minor in 688/9
together with their families, were used as a source of recruits. Again. while
the figure of 30,000 ls no doubt inftated, along with that of the 20,000
who supposedly deserted (Syriac sources give for the latter a figure of a
mere 7 ,000}, 118 the principle seems to be clear: to draft in new populations
(and not simply individuals, but whole communities and families) who, in
the first case mentioned above certainly, and in the second case almost as
certainly, were given land, and from among whom recruits could be
conscripted. But it is Important to note that these groups were ethnic bands
and, if the Slavs are anything to go by, they were organised as such, under
their own leaders, on a similar basis to that of late Roman foederati, or
possibly the laeti (who had less independence as distinct groups). within
the Western empire in the fourth and fifth centuries. They were intended
by Justinian, just like the earlier federates, to operate as an independent
corps which might fight in conjunction with Byzantine forces. The system
they represent, therefore, Is not a novelty, 119 but neither is it a generalised
means of recruitment including the granting of land to soldiers, for which
116 Haldon, Recruitment and Cot~scriptioll, pp. 72fT. and the sources cited there. It is clear from
the Italian evidence from the exarchate of Ravenna that after about 640 the majority of
the garrison troops were. to a greater or lesser degree, able to support themselves:
although vestigial cash payments such as donatlva were still made. See Brown, Gentlenaen
and O.fllcers, pp. 87f. For Africa, see Durllat, Les grands propriitlllres et l'itllt byzanti11, 527f.
with sources and literature.
117 See Sebeos. 54f.: and for the sixth-century examples, Charanis, 'Ethnic changes', 29f.
and 32f.: and 'Transfer of population', 142.
118 See In the last instance Hendy, Studies. pp. 6311T.: and Stratos, Byzantiurn in the Seventh
Century, vol. V. pp. 34ft'. Groups of Slavs had also been settled in Asia Minor by Constans
11. as their reported desertion to the Arabs in 66 5 suggests. For these episodes, see
Charanis, 'Ethnic changes'. 42f., 'Transfer of population', 143. and 'The Slavlc element
In Byzantine Asia Minor In the 13th century', B 18 (1946-8), 69-83, see 70f.
• 19 A point recognised by Hendy, Studies. p. 637: the settlement of Slavs to repopulate the
land was not confined to the Byzantine empire only: in the eighth century the Duke of
Istria also settled Slavs on deserted lands. See Brown. Ge11tlemen and OJ]icers, p. 88 note
14: Guillou. Riglonalisme, pp. 304 and 306 (Plea of Rlzana).
248 Byzantium in the seventh century
there is no evidence at all. Indeed, the fact that these Slav 'prisoners' were
probably given land on a 'federate' basis makes more likely the probability
that, as has been suggested, they were settled on imperial estates. 12 For, °
of course, part of the purpose of introducing such populations as is
sometimes made quite explicit in the sources, was the revitalisation of the
local population and the bringing back into cultivation of abandoned or
deserted lands.
There is no reason to doubt, therefore, that groups of barbarians such as
the Slavs were settled in Asia Minor, under both Constans II and Justi-
nian II. in order to provide auxiliary military support for the hard-pressed
Byzantine corps and in order to reoccupy deserted agricultural lands. The
terms on which the land was received are unknown, but if it was on the
basis of a fixed relationship between land and soldiers, one would again
expect to find echoes of the practice in the later sources. Much more likely -
since it has been shown that the late Roman imperial estates in Cappadocia
seem to disappear some time before the twelfth century and represent an
area associated on the seals of kommerkiarioi with the captured Slavs 121 -
is the probability that large tracts of imperial lands were granted to the
new 'federates', perhaps on an emphyteutic basis: that is to say, the basis
for their settlement was the provision of a corps of soldiers, but this was not
tied directly to individuals and specific properties or holdings. This hypo-
thesis is indirectly supported by the fact that under Justinian I authority
over the Cappadocian estates, as well as those of the diocese of Pontica,
was granted to the proconsul of Cappadocia, who was at the same time
(and like several other Anatolian provincial governors) given military
authority. The local administration was therefore already in a position to
facilitate the establishment of new settlers on imperial lands. 122 Initially,
the land may have been freed from all fiscal dues for three years - as was
the practice with captive 'Saracens' in the tenth century and probably
before - in order to permit them to reap an adequate return on their initial
labour. 123 And emphyteutic leases will have meant ultimately that the
12o Hendy. Studies. p. 637f.: a point made also, although for all soldiers. by W.T. Treadgold.
The Byzantine State Finances in the Eighth and Ninth Centuries (New York 1982) and 'The
military lands and the imperial estates' (cited in note 112 above).
121 Hendy, Studies, pp. 637f., with pp. 104--6 and 133-5 and map 29: Kaplan, 'Maisons
divines', 85.
122 See Kaplan, 'Maisons divines', 85: Justinian, Nov. 30, 1.6 (a. 536): and jones. LRE, vol. I.
pp. 280fT.
12 3 See De Cer. 694. 22-69 5. 14. For a brief summary of the principles upon which land was
allotted to federates and to the barbarians in the West in the fifth century, see }ones. LRE.
vol. I, pp. 249-53. Note that the land thus granted remained subject to the basic
land-tax, whether it was granted in perpetuity or not. Perpetual emphyteutic leases of
imperial lands, of the sort already common in the East in the later sixth and seventh
centuries, would have provided the East Roman state with a means of both bringing land
back into cultivation, recovering lost tax revenue, and a permanent source of recruits.
Military administration 249
124 Haldon, Recruitment and Conscription, pp. 74fT. For the privileged position of soldiers' land
(the possession of which, of course, did not necessarily imply their actual physical
involvement in its exploitation) see ibid., p. 54 and note 94. p. 73 and note 129, p. 60
and note 104: Brown Gentlemen and Officers. pp. 87f. for a similar situation in the
exarchate of Ravenna. For emphyteutic leases to imperial troops, see ibid., p. 177 and
esp. pp. 105f.
250 Byzantium in the seventh century
under Heraclius, possibly later, but certainly during the seventh cen-
tury.Ils
The state thus had at least one major, traditional and above all well-tried
option open to it, through which it could continue to support and supply its
armies. The granting of land, while it certainly occurred, was on the other
hand neither the only available means of supporting soldiers, nor indeed a
particularly effective one, given the difficult conditions of the time: nor
again is there evidence for it, except indirectly - but undeniably - for the
transplanted Slavs during the reigns of Constans 11 and Justinian 11. Here,
however, special circumstances prevailed, and the institutional conditions
on which the latter were established approximates to those of the fifth-
century foederati and Iaeti, rather than to those of the recruitment and
maintenance of the regular soldiers in the imperial forces. For the latter,
the state returned to a system similar to that which had operated in the
fourth and fifth centuries.
One final observation needs to be made. All the developments outlined
above seem to apply throughout the lands of the empire in the seventh and
early eighth centuries (with the possible exception of the two exarchates),
except for the methods of paying expeditionary forces in the Balkans. In
Asia Minor, as we have seen, the evidence suggests that the state found it
necessary to support and equip its troops almost entirely in kind, with the
exception of donatives and other occasional cash payments. No doubt cash
- gold - was still found with which to attract new recruits for specific
campaigns, for example: but in general, cash was not the rule. On the other
hand, and as Hendy has pointed out, excavations from Athens, where
relatively high concentrations of copper coins of Philippicus and Leo Ill
were found, all minted in Constantinople and associated both in time and
in location with the presence of the military on specific campaigns or
actions, suggest that cash still played a role in some aspects of the military
administration of these regions, in contrast to Asia Minor. 126 It may well
be a reflection of local conditions and the dearth of available resources in
the Balkan lands still held by the empire at this time, which meant that the
state found it easier to pay a part of the soldiers' salary in cash - rather
than provide the supplies in kind - and to use coin as the medium of
12s Haldon, Recruitment and Conscription, pp. 360'. Against this, see Lilie, 'Die zweihundert-
jahrige Reform'. 19 3 note 69. That hereditary service was introduced as late as the reign
of Leo IV, however, seems improbable- ibid., 199f. The fact that the hereditary nature of
military service is not referred to in either Ecloga XVI. 2, or the decision attributed to Leo
and Constantine (see Lilie. 'Die byzantinischen Staatsfinanzen' (cited in note 114 above),
51) is no evidence that hereditary service was not applied at that time - such an argu-
ment e silentio is hardly persuasive. the less so in view of the fact that neither text is in the
least way concerned with this aspect.
126 See Hendy. Studies, pp. 6590'., with sources and· literature.
Military administration 251
exchange with local traders and producers. It may also reflect imperial
administrative tradition in these districts. 12 7 But while this evidence does
show that the state could and did employ coin on occasion, it does not
appreciably alter the general picture drawn in this chapter, one in which
the reversion to both the appropriation and redistribution of revenues in
kind plays a major role.
The seventh century thus witnessed a major transformation in the fiscal
and military administrative machinery of the state, in which the late
Roman institutions inherited from the preceding period were recast to cope
with a radically changed set of circumstances. It is important not to
underestimate the degree of planning and foresight which this process
demonstrates. For while the state was certainly responding to pressures
which could hardly have been foreseen, it did not react blindly to circum-
stances. Both in the shape of fiscal as well as of military reorganization and
readjustment, the late Roman and early Byzantine state demonstrates a
remarkable functional coherence, an aspect which has perhaps been
rather underplayed in recent debates.
EXCURSUS
The unequal allocation of territory to the different army corps, or themata, is more
apparent when compared with the size of the field armies in question. These are
difficult to estimate exactly, but the figures which can be obtained from the Notitia
Dignitatuum for the East, which dates to about 420, where they can be corroborated
by figures from the reign of Justinian or afterwards, suggest that the main field
armies of the empire in the mid-sixth century were maintained at approximately
the same strength as in the early fifth century. According to Notitia Dig., Or. V-IX,
the armies will have numbered very approximately as follows:
127 See Hendy, Studies, pp. 418fT., 651fT and 662 for a detailed discussion and analysis.
Hendy has also convincingly argued that the later (ninth- and tenth-century) differences
in methods of paying Eastern as opposed to Western thematic strategoi and troops reflects
the original late Roman pattern: the themata which occupied the territories of the
praetorian prefecture of the East were paid from Constantinople on a four-yearly rotation
which, as we have seen, was based on the old quinquennial issue of donatives. Their
stratigoi were paid annually also from Constantinopolitan funds. In contrast, the Balkan
themata, which developed on the territory of the old praetorian prefecture of Illyricum,
were maintained on a different basis, their soldiers and stratigoi being paid from local
funds, reflecting the late Roman source of cash, through the prefectural headquarters at
Thessaloniki. Such continuities can also be shown to exist in the case of the naval themata
which developed via the command of the Karavisianoi from the 'pseudo-prefecture' of the
quaestura exercitus, with its bank (arcaltrapeza) in Constantinople. The later strategoi of
these themata were paid also from Constantinople in the ninth and tenth centuries.
Likewise, the later thematic commander of the district of Mesopotamia was paid from the
proceeds of the local kommerkion, just as the late Roman dux of the same command had
received his salary via the local commerciarius. See Hendy, Studies, pp. 650--4.
252 Byzantium in the seventh century
tnaglster rnllltum praesentalls I -20,500
praesentalls 11 -22,500
per Oritnttm -20,000
per Thracias -23,500
per lllyrlcum -17,500
total -104,000.
Calculations depend, of course, on the strength of the various units, which Is also
difficult to assess - see the figures offered by }ones, LRB, vol. 11, pp. 682f. and
vol. Ill, p. 3 79, table xv. Figures for the sixth century suggest comparable
numbers: in 499 an army of 15,000 was available to oppose a Bulgar attack in
Illyrlcum (see Marcellinus comes, s.a. 499; Procopius, De Bello Gothlco Ill. 29.3): ln
530, after the new magister militum per Armeniam had been established, Belisarius
commanded a reinforced Eastern army of 25,000: and of 20.000 in 531: while in
543 a total of some 30,000 men is recorded on the Persian front (Procopius, De
Bello Persico I. 13.23, 18.5: 11. 24.16). Procopius notes that a force of some 12,000
men operated in Lazica in 554 (De Bello Gothico IV, 13.8), and this must represent
the greater part of the corps under the magister militum per Armeniam. The figure of
30,000 for 54 3 probably represents most of the combined field troops of both
Eastern and Armenian commands. In Italy, the field armies numbered variously
from 12,000 to 18,000 between 542 and 554 (Procoplus, De Bello Gothlco I,
5.2-4, Ill, 3.4: and Agathlas 11, 4): In Africa the field forces seem to have numbered
about 15.000 (Procoplus, De Bello Vandalico I, 11.2, 11-12, 19). Agathias also
suggests, perhaps over-pessimistically. a grand total for Justinian's armies of about
150,000 in about 560 (Agathlas V. 13). The size of the field armies suggested by
this evidence (approximately 12,000 to 20.000, depending upon the theatre)
seems to represent the norm at this period. See R. MacMullen, 'How big was the
Roman Imperial army?', Klio 62 (1980), 451-60: and H. Castrltlus, 'Die Wehr-
verfassung im 5. Jahrhundert n. Chr. und der Untergang des romlschen Retches',
]ahrbuch des Deutschen Evangelischen lnstltuts fur Altertumswlssenschaft des Heiligen
Landes 2 (1990). Also on numbers, and the relationship between size of army,
civilian population and resource base, see J.-M. Carrle, 'L'Bsercito: trasformazioni
Funzlonall ed economle locali', in SocletQ Romana ed lmpero Tardoantico. lnstltuzioni,
Ceti, Bconomie, ed. A. Giardina (Rome 1986), pp. 449-88, 760-71, with further
literature. The figures can also be revised downwards, to produce considerably small-
er units and overall sizes: see the useful discussion in M. Whittow, The Making of
Orthodox Byzantium, 600-1025 (Basingstoke-London 1996), pp. 181-93 and, on
the figures offered by ]ones, loc.cit., seeR. Duncan-Jones, Structure and Scale in the
Roman Economy (Cambridge 1990).
These figures suggest that In the period c. 500 to c. 550 at least, the field forces of
Illyricum and Orlens numbered approximately the same as in the 420s: that the
forces of the magister tnllltum per Armeniam, which covered a much less extended
area than those of the Bastem forces from which they had been separated,
numbered about 12.000-15,000: that those of Italy and Africa numbered about
15,000 each: and that those of the praesental and Thraclan forces numbered also
about the same as in 420. The forces of the mid-sixth century must therefore have
numbered as follows:
MilitJzry administration 253
nJagister militutn per lllyricum -17,500 including troops of the
Thracias -23,500 } quaestura
Orientttn -25.000
Armeniam -15,000
praesentalls I -20,500
praesentalls 11 -22.500
Afrlcam -15,000
ltaliam -15,000
total- 154.000
This figure - granted its very approximate nature. the fact that troops were also
based In Spain. and the estimate of Agathias - seems to be reasonably representa-
tive. There must have been some changes in the period from Justinian to Heraclius.
of course, and the total was probably reduced. The command of the n1agister
mllltum per Illyrlcum, some of whose units (and perhaps some from the army of
Thrace as well) will have been separated to fonn the anny of the Justinianic quaestura,
had been effectively lost by the 630s and 640s -its vestiges may well have been
incorporated Into the praesental forces. The two praesental corps themselves seem
to have been amalgamated (the maximum praesental force envisaged In the
so-called Strateglkon of Maurlce ls of 24.000 men: see Haldon, Byzantine Praeto-
rians, pp. 96fT. and 546 note 782: and C. M. Mazzucchi, •Le KATAfPA<I>AI dello
Strateglcon dl Maurizio e lo schieramento dl battaglla dell' esercito romano nel
VI/VII secolo', Aevum SS (1981). 111-38, see 125fT.), and it Is very likely that units
were transferred from both to the Eastern, African and Italian armies. But given
these changes, there is no reason to doubt that the Thracian, oriental and
Armenian corps continued to be maintained at roughly their Justlnlanic strengths,
that Is. of some 20,00Q-25,000 for the first two. and some 12,000-15,000 for the
last. The figures are, as we have said. hypothetical: but they do illustrate what must
have been the proportional numerical relationship between the three armies. Thus
regardless of whether or not the higher hypothetical totals for the armies arrived at by
Jones and the smaller numbers supposed by Whittow actually pertained, the propor-
tional difference between them remains more or less constant. The losses incurred in
the war with the Persians. and with the Arabs. the probable desertion or disbandment
of many units, particularly those which had been based in a given locality for many
years and on a more or less permanent basis. will have meant ultimately the with-
drawal of forces probably smaller than those previously enlisted. But the figures are
indicative of the fact that the smallest division seems to have been allocated the most
extensive region as its resource area in Anatolia.
CHAPTER 7
254
Society. stau and law 255
these aspects of the traditional and sophisticated system of jurisprudence
and judicial practice fared during the period in question. 7
The sixth century, and in particular the reign of Justinian, had been a
Golden Age of late Roman legislative productivity and codification. This is,
with hindsight, largely a reflection of the fact that the fifth and sixth
centuries were the only period in Byzantine history when a professional-
lsed legal apparatus existed, and In which a formal legal training and
career-structure determined the nature of jurisprudence and the admin-
istration and activities of the court system. 8 The Codex Iustlnlanus, the
Institutes and the Digest, along with the collection of novellae consti-
tutiones of Justinian's reign (together with several novels of Justin 11 and
Ttberius Cons tan tine and three prefectural edicts) established some time
after 575, constitute a milestone in late Roman and early Byzantine legal
history. 9 Thereafter, and in spite of the possible loss of some legislation
from the following century and a half, the amount of legislation promul-
gated in the traditional form of the novel dies to a bare trickle. Four novels
and the Bkthesls of Heraclius, the Typos of Constans 11. the Hdlct of 681 of
Constantine IV, 10 the Bcloga and a judicial ruling probably from the reign
of Leo Ill and Constantine V, and the three treatises referred to above,
., For the history of jurisprudence and legal literature in this period and later. see the older
survey ofZacharUl, Geschlchte. pp. SIT.. esp. 11-15: L. Wenger. Die Quellen des rornlschen
Rechts (VIenna 1953): B. Slnogowltz, Studlen zum Strafrecht der Bkloge (Opu-y. Tit~ 'Axa8.
'At,.vcit" XXI. Athens 1956): also P.l. Zepos. 'Dle byzantlnlsche )urlsprudenz zwlschen
Justinian und den Baslllken '. in &rlchte zum XI. lnternatlonalen Byzantlnlsten-Kongress V.1
(Munich 1958}, esp. pp. 7-13: Pleler. 'Rechtsllteratur', pp. 4291T. For some general
remarks on the relationship between law and state, albeit In an extremely formalised way,
see P.E. Pleler. 'Verfassuna und Rechtsgrundlagen des byzantlnlschen Staates', Alcten des
XVI. lnternaUonalen Byzantlnlsten-Kongresses, 1.1 (VIenna 1981). pp. 213-31 ( = JOB
31,1 (1981 )). It must be stressed that the difficulties facing the historian in respect of
law, justice and legal administration In this period are particularly great. The lack of
sources makes deftnlte conclusions about many aspects impossible. and hypotheses
hazardous. I have tried to Interpret this limited material through the context - cultural,
social and Ideological- already elaborated: and lt Is this context. therefore. which Informs
the suggested evolution oudlned here.
8 See the remarks of D. Slmon, 'NoJLOTpe.Pou..,e"o"'. In Satura Roberto Feenstra Sexaglsslmum
Qulntum Annum Aetatls Complentl ab Alumnls Collegls Amlcls Oblata, eds. ).A. Ankum, J.B.
Sprult and P.B.J. Wubbe (Frlbourg 1985), 273-83.
' See esp. P. Noallles. Les Collections des nowlles de l'emptreur Justlnlen. La collection grecque
des 168 novella (Paris 1914). The justlnlanlc codex Is most easily consulted In the edition
of 'lb. Mommsen, P. Krilger. R. Schtill and W. Kroll, Corpus lurls Civilis (3 vols.. Berlin
1892-95 and 1945-63),1: lnstltuUones, eel. P. Krilger and Digests, ed. Th. Mommsen; 0:
Codex lusUnlanus, ed. P. Krilger: Ill: NowllatConstltutlones, eds. R. Schall and W. Kroll. For
the most recent general survey, see Pleler, 'Rechtallteratur', pp. 407-19.
10 Bkthesls: Mansl X. 9918-997A: Lateran, 156.20-162.13 (OOiger. Reguten, no. 211 ):
11 See the comments of Pieler, 'Rechtsliteratur', p. 4 34. Legislation which has survived only
in accounts of other contemporary or later sources does not change this picture dramati-
cally. The greater part is concerned with matters of ecclesiastical jurisdiction and/or fiscal
policy. See DOlger, Regesten. nos. 174. 176, 182, 197, 205, 206, 227. 234. 237. 246
and 258. for example.
12 Of the legislative activity of Justinian- the Novellae Constitutiones and related texts- some
50% deal with matters of administrative, fiscal and military organisation, problems of
provincial government and so on. Some 30% deal with civil and criminal law. and the
remaining 200A> are concerned with Church property and related issues. See M.-Th. Fogen,
'Gesetz und Gesetzgebung in Byzanz. Versuch einer Strukturanalyse', Ius Commune.
Zeitschriftfur europdische Rechtsgeschichte 14 (1987). 137-58, see esp. 140fT.. and N. van
der Wal, Manuale Novellarum. Aper~u systimatique du contenu des Novelles de ]ustinien
(Groningen and Amsterdam 1964). For the novels after Maurice, see the remarks of P.J.
Zepos, ·Die byzantinische Jurisprudenz zwischen Justinian und den Basiliken', 7. There are
no novels after Heraclius until the reign ofEirene, and then of Leo V. Those of the latter, as
well as those of Heraclius, are concerned exclusively with Church matters (Heraclius).
divorce. or the question of the validity (and moral acceptability) of oaths. See L. Burg-
mann, 'Die Novellen der Kaiserin Eirene', FM IV (1981), 1-36: and Kresten.
'Datierungsprobleme'. It may justifiably be objected that the failure oflegislation to appear
in later sources or to survive in an extremely limited manuscript tradition is no guarantee
that it did not exist - one of the known novels of Irene being a case in point (see
Burgmann, ·Die Novellen der Kaiserin lrene'). On the other hand, while this may be true of
one or two such items. a regular series of promulgations is most unlikely to disappear so
completely, either from the later jurisprudential tradition or from the known manuscript
tradition.
Society, statt and law 257
in Ausgewdhlte Schriften I (Frankfurt a. M., 1983), pp. 222-40). For the later seventh and
early eighth centuries this was clearly a major consideration. In the prooemium to the
Ecloga (line 4 3) it is remarked that the members of the commission responsible for
producing this new selection needed to collect the necessary texts together and that the
laws are, for the most part, intellectually inaccessible. Whether even an imperial archive
existed which possessed all the relevant material is a debatable point. See Pieler, 'Rechts-
literatur', p. 430: L. Burgmann, review of Pieler. in Rechtshistorisches ]ournal1 (1982 ), 14
and n. 3.
16 See Fogen, 'Gesetz und Gesetzgebung', 147.
17 SeeP. Noll, 'Symbolische Gesetzgebung', Zeitschriftfur schweizerisches Recht 100 (1981),
347-64, and G. Lanata, ugislazione e natura nelle Novelle giustinianee (Naples 1984).
1s G. Prinzing, 'Das Bild Iustinians I. in der Uberlieferung der Byzantiner vom 7. bis 15.
Jahrhundert', FM VII ( 1986 ), 1-99.
19 See A. Schminck, Studien zu mittelbyzantir:zischen Rechtsbuchern (Forschungen zur byzanti-
nischen Rechtsgeschichte XIII, Frankfurt a. M. 1986), esp. p. 80 and note 136: pp. 103
and 107 (for Leo VI): and Ecloga, tit. lsq.: Fanners' Law, tit. 1 (ed. Ashbumer, 85: ]GR ll,
63 ). See Pieler, 'Rechtsliteratur', pp. 440-1 and 449f. Note that the Justinianic motif
occurs in other contexts - in the reign of Constantine IV, for example, whose son was so
named (hardly an accident). Constantine was acclaimed in the final session of the sixth
ecumenical council as the 'new Justinian': see Mansi XI, 6568.
2o Fogen, 'Gesetz und Gesetzgebung', 148f.: Pieler, 'Rechtsllteratur', pp. 449f.
Society, state and law 259
Roman state and everything that accompanied that notion. It symbolised
the power of the emperor and his relationship to his subjects, and it acted
as a symbol of his role and the tasks which he had to fulfil. It existed as the
theoretical backdrop, as it were, to the practical ideology of the state and to
the political-cultural beliefs and assumptions upon which people based
their understanding and explanation of the world as they perceived it. Like
the soteriological theology of orthodox Christianity, which provided one
aspect of the theoretical understanding of the world, the law as an abstract
but systematised structure represented another facet of that understand-
ing, at least as far as it was available to the literate elements of society. And
in this respect, of course, new legislation was not perceived as a need.
What was required in the era after Justinian, and especially from Heraclius
on, was conformity (assumed or real) to the norms set out by the system, or
the reassertion and re-establishment of such norms, in so far as they were
understood, of course (a major consideration in itself).
Seen from this perspective, the legal 'system' became less a practical
instrument for intervening in the world of men in order to modify relation-
ships or individual behaviour, but more a set of theories which represented
a desired (if recognisably not always attainable) state of affairs. Emperors
needed to issue no new legislation, therefore, but rather to establish (or to
re-establish) the conditions within which the traditional system would
once again conform to actual practice. Imperial action was thus not
directed at emending laws to conform to reality, but rather at emending
reality to conform to the inherited legal-moral apparatus. 21 The struggle to
maintain imperial authority and imperial intervention (and insistence
upon the right to intervene) in matters of dogma can be readily understood
in this light.
What appears to have happened between the later years of the sixth and
the middle of the seventh century, therefore, was in effect the exaltation of
an interventionist, regulatory legal system, which concerned both
administrative-functional aspects of the state's existence, as well as legal-
ethical practices of its subjects, into an abstract and idealised 'world', in
which the latter aspect attained a pre-eminence at the expense of the
former. So much is clear from the concerns and preoccupations of Byzan-
tines in the period from the end of the reign of Heraclius. 22 For the
underlying reasons for this development are clearly connected with the
21 This can be seen already in the second novel of Heraclius, A.D. 617, in which the explicit
intention is to lend an older piece of Justinianic legislation new authority and practical
relevance. See Konidaris, Die Novellen des Kaisers Heralcleios, 74.22sq. and commentary,
100-2. It is even more clearly expressed in the Typos ofConstans II issued in 648, which
is specifically intended to re-establish the situation which prevailed before the conflict over
the wills and energies of Christ developed: see lAteran, 208.19sq.
22 See Haldon, Ideology and social change; and see chapters 9 to 11 below.
260 Byzantium in the seventh century
But the lack of legislative activity in the form of novels on the part of the
emperors, and the fact that such matters seem henceforth to be dealt with
by the issue of iussiones to the relevant parties. is suggestive of the nature of
the change. The legal administrative framework of the Justinianic era now
became the 'norm', whether it actually reflected the real situation or not.
Legislative enactments intended permanently to emend this framework
were therefore, and in principle. extraordinary. The novels of Heraclius
provide an example, albeit on a very limited scale. 32 The emperors could
modify the arrangements of their illustrious forebears by introducing
'temporary' measures, especially where these concerned fiscal policies and
the appropriation of resources. Thus. even a major work of codification
such as the Ecloga was compiled with the specific intention of making the
Justinianic legislation more readily available and comprehensible. The
modifications it introduced, especially in respect of divorce and marriage
law, were clearly perceived as an attempt to strengthen the force of the older
legislation and to reaffirm the already existing values of a Christian
society. 33
The various iussiones or keleuseis which do receive a mention in the
sources are thus concerned with a range of matters, from fiscal policy to
questions of imperial policy in respect of the Church, for example. But I
suggest that the drastic and far-reaching changes which the administra-
tive and military apparatuses of the state underwent at this time were
perceived as (temporary) deviations from a structure that was still imma-
nent in the legislative framework of the Justinianic era: and because these
changes would ultimately be made good, there was no need for permanent
legislation. Temporary modifications, carried out through specific com-
mands, were all that was required. Most of these commands - and there
must have been many hundreds of them - receive no mention in the
sources because the sources are, by their very nature, not interested in
such matters. Occasionally, as with the 'ten evil measures' of the Emperor
Nicephorus I in the early ninth century, or the fiscal measures that affected
the papal lands in southern Italy, they do attract the attention of a
chronicler or commentator for specific ideological reasons. 34 But such
examples are few.
A context thus developed in which legislative activity of the sort pursued
12 See Konidaris, 'Die Novellen des Kaisers Herakleios', 64.39sq., where Heraclius notes that
Justinian's arrangements are no longer in force due to the passage of time. See Konidaris'
commentary, 94fT.
11 Pieler, 'Rechtsliteratur', pp. 43{}-1 and 438fT.
14 See Theophanes, 486-7, and Ostrogorsky, Geschichte, pp. 152fT.; DOlger, Regesttn.
nos. 234 and 250. DOiger (Regesten, nos. 372ff.) followed by Pieler, 'Rechtsliteratur',
p. 434, assumes that many ofNicephorus' measures were in the form of novels. But there
is no evidence for this at all.
Society. stlltt and law 263
35
See Mansi XI. 73 7-8: Riedinger. 886-88 7.
264 Byzantium in the seventh century
This major change in emphasis seems also to reflect, and may also be
partially responsible for, what is generally recognised to have been a
considerable decline in legal scholarship during the seventh century,
although there was a clear distinction between imperial legislation on the
one hand, and the activity of lawyers, jurists and legal scholars in general
on the other. In the mid-sixth century a specialist legal education was
3& Bearing in mind also the particular function of. and intentions behind. the novels of Leo
VI: see Fogen, 'Gesetz und Gesetzgebung'. 148fT.
Society, state and law 265
available in several cities of the empire and represented one of the most
reliable routes to rapid promotion in the imperial civil administration.
Professors of law were respected socially, and a career in the profession
was greatly sought after. 37 The most famous law school was in Beirut,
which flourished until the devastation of the city by an earthquake in 5 51.
The curriculum established by the professors of law, or antecessores, lasted
from five to six years, and it is chiefly on the basis of the paraphrases of and
detailed notes on the Justinianic legislation established in their teaching
that later curricula were based. 38 For whatever reason, the antecessores
seem to have ceased their activity in the mid-560s, perhaps a result of the
breaking off of imperial financial support after Justinian's death; thereafter
legal education seems to have been conducted by the scholastikoi, practis-
ing lawyers or barristers. The principal difference lay in the method of
teaching. The antecessores based themselves on the original texts - usually
Latin - adding a loose translation and a series of exegetical notes for
clarification and interpretation. In contrast, the scholastikoi based them-
selves on summaries of the original, or paraphrases, together with the
Greek commentaries and text of the original legislation. In spite of the ban
on certain types of exegetical commentary laid down by Justinian in the
Digest, commentaries, interpretations and paraphrases of the Justinianic
material continued to be produced, intended both as teaching materials
and as exegetical texts for magistrates and judges, their form determined
principally by the fact that Greek, rather than Latin, had by now become
the dominant language of legal and administrative practice. Many of these
commentaries, such as the paraphrases of the antecessores Stephanus and
Theophilus, were in any case exempt from the ban, counting as 'indices'
rather than as interpretations in the true sense. 39 A number of handbooks
of a practical nature for actual use by lawyers were also produced, dealing
with a variety of specific themes, although not all of these have survived or
are known. 40
From the reign of Phocas, however, the legislative activity of the emper-
ors declined almost to nothing, and this seems to have been paralleled by a
similar reduction in the activity of lawyers, commentators and inter-
preters. From the evidence of the Appendix Eclogae, a late eighth- or early
ninth-century compilation based on the Ecloga of Leo Ill and Constantine
37 SeeP. Petit, Les Etudiants de Libanius (Paris 1957). esp. pp. 166fT.
38 See H.J. Scheltema, 'Byzantine law', in CMH. vol. 11. part 2, pp. 55-77. see 55-60.
39 H.J. Scheltema, L'Enseignement de droit des anttcesseurs (Leiden 1970), esp. pp. 61-4.
40 See the summary with literature of Pieler, Rechtsliteratur, pp. 434-8: and esp. Wenger,
Quellen, pp. 682-92: Zepos, Die byzantinische ]urisprudenz zwischen Justinian und den
Basiliken, 8f. Note also H.J. Scheltema, 'Korreferat zu P. Zepos, 'Die byzantinische Juris-
prudenz zwischen Justinian und den Basiliken", in Berichte zum XI. Internationalen
Byzantinisten-Kongress, pp. 35-41. see 37-8.
266 Byzantium in the seventh century
V, 41 some evidence of the legalistic activity of the seventh century can be
culled. Thus, references to excerpts from the Justinianic material, as well as
to specific treatises, such as the Poinalion (based probably on the work of
the Justinianic antecessores), occur, suggesting that a degree of juristic
activity continued, in Constantinople at least, in this period, albeit limited
chiefly to tracts on canon law or on punishment. 42 On the whole,
however, the situation in the seventh century does not seem to have been
favourable, either to the teaching of law or to an interest in its literary
tradition. The situation up to the end of the reign of Heraclius may, in itself,
have presented no major obstacles: although the failing fortunes of the
provincial civitates and the lack of resources with which the state could
finance the Constantinopolitan law school must have adversely affected
the study of law. 43 Thereafter, with the loss of the Eastern provinces, and
the devastation of much of the Balkans and Asia Minor, the study of law in
the provinces must have been drastically affected. 44
The prooemium of the Ecloga paints a gloomy picture. According to the
emperors, the available legal literature (of which there must have been a
reasonable amount in private possession at least in the capital)45 was
barely understood, if it was accessible at all, outside the capital. The
purpose of the Ecloga and the commission which was constituted to
compile it was, in the first instance, to collect the older texts and codifi-
cations, organise the material and select from it what was deemed relevant
to the situation hinted at, and to compile this material in readily under-
stood language into a concise reference-book. While the Ecloga did intro-
duce a number of novelties, especially in respect of its dependence on
canon law, it was based largely on pre-existing, that is, Justinianic, for the
most part, precepts. The extent to which elements of local or regional
customary law were also intended to be represented is difficult to say. But it
is highly probable that the maintenance of the Justinianic system in the
provinces was partial and heavily influenced by local custom. The fact that
the older legal handbooks were neither easily available nor understood
implies as much: and together with the nature and the explicit purpose of
the Ecloga, this seems more than likely. Even in the sixth century, the
population (and the officials) in frontier districts occasionally adopted the
41 New edn by Burgmann, Troianos. See also Burgmann, Ecloga, pp. 134-5.
42 See Pieler, ·Rechtsliteratur', p. 43 7; Burgmann, Ecloga, p. 2: Zepos, ·Die byzantinische
Jurisprudenz zwischen Justinian und den Basiliken', 24fT.
43 See Stein, Studien, pp. 3f. While the academy in Constantinople may have survived into
the second half of the seventh century, there is no evidence that legal studies continued to
be pursued there. See Scheltema, L'Enseignement de droit des anticesseurs, p. 63: and Pieler,
·Rechtsliteratur', 429.
'" Note also C.E. Zacharia von Ungenthal. ·o llpaxelpOt; NoJ.Wt; (Heidelberg 183 7), Xlll.
45 See the remarks ofBurgmann, Ecloga, pp. 2-3.
Society. state and law 267
49 See Pieler, 'Rechtsliteratur', pp. 442-4 with literature: but see D. Simon, 'Provinzialrecht
und Volksrecht', FM I (1976), 102-16, see 106.
so Pieler, 'Rechtsllteratur', p. 441.
51 For a useful definition of 'popular' law- that is, as regional interpretations of imperial
legislation, as opposed to something of quite different origins - see the remarks of Simon,
'Provinzialrecht und Volksrecht', 115-16.
52 Mansl XI, 9 76A: but note that one manuscript tradition of the Ecloga mentions scholasti-
koi in the compilation of the text. Its reliability remains unclear. See Ecloga, prooemium,
42, and pp. 106f.
Society. state and law 269
exigencies of warfare and defence, and the sharp contrast between provin-
cial and Constantinopolitan life. it is highly likely that officials with judicial
responsibilities had little or no legal training and were thrown back on
their own resources for the resolution of judicial matters. The misinter-
pretation of late Roman law and the introduction of local and traditional
modes of resolving certain types of case or conflict must have been an
unavoidable consequence, and this is. in effect, the situation hinted at in
the prooemium to the Ecloga.
As far as concerns the administration of justice at this period, there is
virtually no evidence apart from one or two mentions in hagiographical
literature pertaining to Constantinople.
In the sixth century, and probably well into the reign of Heraclius, the
lowest courts had been those of the defensores civitatis in each city, who
could try minor civil suits and could also hear and then refer minor
criminal cases. The next level were the courts of the provincial governors,
the ordinarii iudices; and above them, acting as courts of appeal, the courts
of the diocesan vicarii, or spectabiles iudicii. The courts of the bishops were
also empowered to act in civil cases parallel to the courts of the first
instance, providing (after the reigns of Arcadius and Honorius) both
parties involved had agreed to transfer the case from the secular to the
ecclesiastical authority. Final appeal rested with the praetorian prefects,
although a supplication could be made to the emperor if it was felt that an
unjust decision had been reached (unjust, of course, very much determined
by the context of the case in question and by the resources of the opposing
parties!). Justinian himself introduced a number of reforms in an attempt to
eliminate unnecessary appeals coming from the provinces to Constantin-
ople: in Asia Minor especially, he increased the number of governors of
spectabilis rank to bolster the intermediate courts of appeal, permitting
some governors (those of Armenia I. Cappadocia, Palestine and Armenia
lll) to hear appeals from their own, as well as the neighbouring, province.
In addition, the prefect of Constantinople heard appeals from certain
provinces, as well as being responsible for the administration of justice in
Constantinople and environs: and the provincial appeals of the quaestor
exercitus were split on account of its peculiar geography: appeals from
Scythia and Moesia were heard by the quaestor himself: those from Caria,
Rhodes and Cyprus by his representative in Constantinople, who sat with
the quaestor sacri palatii. 5 3
This straightforward system of regular courts was complicated by the
existence of a wide range of special courts which had jurisdiction over the
53 The best general survey of judicial administration and the law in practice is still that of
}ones, LRE. vol. I. pp. 479fT.: see also Stein, Bas-Empire, vol. Il, pp. 467fT.: Brehier, lnsUtu-
tions. pp. 219-24.
270 Byzantium in the seventh century
affairs of members of the various fiscal, administrative and military depart-
ments of the state, including the army. The relationship between the
jurisdiction of such courts and the regular courts was very complex, and it
was regulated by equally detailed and complex legislation. In general. the
jurisdiction of special courts over their staff and dependents tended to
prosper at the expense of the ordinary courts, partly because the state
usually found it advantageous to privilege the activities of its own officials,
partly because of the inherent institutional momentum, fuelled by the
self-interest of the officials in question, which promoted such a privileged
status. The system was further complicated by the existence of the privilege
of praescriptio fori, according to which certain types of case were to be
heard in specific courts only, and by which certain classes of persons could
claim the jurisdiction of their own special courts, rather than that under
which they would normally have come according either to domicile or (in
criminal cases) the place of the crime. 54
Many administrative bureaux possessed their own courts, chiefly the
fiscal departments of the largitiones and the res privata, and those of military
commanders and civil governors. The complexities and confusion which
this proliferation of jurisdictions caused promoted in consequence an
extension of the use of praescriptio fori wherever this right was granted, as a
sure way of circumventing the maze of conflicting bureaucratic interests.
The system inevitably favoured the privileged and the wealthy; and while
the emperors made some effort to simplify the procedures involved and to
disentangle the complex web of jurisdictional competences - including a
limitation on the application of prescription of forum (later rescinded as
impracticable!) - the system in its essentials seems to have survived into
the seventh century.ss
Since the majority of judges in the usual understanding of the term were
attributed with their function by virtue of their position as governor,
administrator or military officer, or as one of the heads of the great
administrative departments at Constantinople, it is not surprising that
most of them had little or no legal training. To ensure a degree of legal
expertise, therefore, all magistrates with judicial duties had one or more
assessors or advisers, selected usually by the officials in question them-
selves, but salaried by the state. These advisers were usually selected from
barristers, and a career as assessor was one way of approaching a provin-
cial governorship or magistracy. In Justinian's reign a panel of twelve
trained lawyers and judges (the iudices pedanei) was re-established (it was
originally instituted under Zeno) upon whom the emperor or leading
officials could call to act as delegate judges. But in general, provincial
judges remained relatively unlearned in the law - the majority purchased
their office or obtained it through similar means - and were easily over-
awed by powerful local magnates or state officials of higher rank than
themselves.
The imperial court and legal bureaux in Constantinople (as opposed to
the courts of the urban prefect and other special jurisdictional courts) were
administered by the quaestor sacri palatii, instituted by Constantine I, and
the magistri of the scrinia memoriae, epistularum and libellorum (responsible
respectively for imperial prescripts, references from judges to the emperor
and the preparation of trials). The quaestor and the praetorian prefect of
the East were delegated by the emperor to represent him in a great number
of suits, but he also exercised his personal jurisdiction. In such cases, he sat
together with the members of the consistory: and under Justinian, it
became the rule that the full senate should be involved, in other words,
that for important trials every meeting of the consistory should be regarded
as a meeting of the senate. 56
Barristers were attached strictly to the bar of the judge in whose court
they were enrolled. They were trained in the law schools in Constantinople
and Beirut, and could transfer out of their courts only by becoming an
assessor to a magistrate. Higher office could be achieved by enrolment in
one of the higher courts, as opposed to those of the provincial or municipal
level. The law seems to have been a popular profession, bringing social
status and possibly wealth and an official dignity as well. Many of the
higher state officers of the fifth and sixth centuries rose through the bar
and into the state administrative apparatus through service in Constantin-
ople or in the court of a high-ranking official. By the sixth century,
candidates for the bar had to produce certificates and evidence of their
training and competence: but at the same time, as a strict limit on the
numbers of barristers attached to each bar was enforced, retired lawyers
began to claim priority for entry to the profession on behalf of their sons. 57
This was sanctioned by the state, but the effect was to turn the profession
into a closed and almost hereditary caste. While a rigorous education in
the law and in rhetoric (an indispensable element of an advocate's train-
56 Jones, LRE, vol. I, pp. 499-507. For the ruling on silentium and conventus of the consistory
and the senate respectively, see Justinian, Nov. 62, 1 (a. 537). See also Stein, Bas-Empire,
vol. ll, pp. 469f.: and esp. pp. 71-4 with notes. For the panel of judges, see Justinian, Nov.
82, proem and 1; and cf. C] 11, 7.25 (a. 519).
57 For certificates and qualifications, see C] 11, 7. 11/2 (a. 460): Il, 7. 22/4 and 24/4 (a. 517).
For quotas and priority, CJ 11, 7. 11 (460); Il, 7. 22/5 (505): 11. 7. 24/5 (517): n, 7. 26 and
proem (524).
272 Byzantium in the seventh century
ing) remained a sine qua non, this development was not in itself damaging
to the profession. 58 But in the conditions of the seventh century, its effect
may well have been to promote a rapid decline in the number of barristers
and in their standards of learning and competence.
As well as the lawyers, notaries were also an important, if lower-
ranking, element in the legal profession. Notaries were very common, a
fact which probably reflects the reasonable living that was to be made from
the profession, since there was always a demand for the drawing up of
wills, contracts, conveyances and so on. Notaries themselves and their
assistants had to be registered, presumably to ensure that they possessed
the requisite skills and knowledge. In Constantinople, according to novel
44 of Justinian, they were organised in offices or stations, where their
assistants and apprentices worked. 59
The extent to which this legal profession, and the jurisdictional system
which supported it, survived beyond the middle of the seventh century is
difficult to say. There is no evidence at all for the continued education of
barristers after the early seventh century, although it is probable that a
small number continued to train in Constantinople and to fill posts there. 60
Evidence for the continued activities of notaries is equally lacking. The
prooemium to the Ecloga implies that provincial judges were either entirely
ignorant of the Justinianic law, or unable to interpret it; but in doing so, it
suggests that, as before, the system of provincial courts continued to
function in the hands of local governors. This was certainly still the case in
the reign of Heraclius, as a trial of a priest in Cyprus in 629, presided over
by the local archon, or governor, demonstrates. 61 The Ecloga statement
might also suggest that assessors were no longer available to assist the
provincial governors, implying that the teaching of law had been very
much reduced (and confined perhaps only to Constantinople). 62 On the
other hand, there is good evidence, albeit for the ninth century and after,
that the numerous special courts with jurisdiction over their staff (and
their dependents) continued to exist, in other words, that the principles
58 }ones. LRE. vol. I. pp. 514f.
59 }ones. LRE. vol. I, p. 515. For the fees of notaries, see the table in the Edict of Diocletian,
VII, 41 (they were paid by the line). SeeS. Lauffer, ed., Diokletians Preisedikt. Texte und
Kommentare 5 (Berlin 1971). p. 120.
&O See Burgmann. in Ecloga, pp. 106f., however. for a possible reference to scholastikoi in
741.
&I Ecloga, prooemium, 52-95. For the trial in 629, see F. Nau, 'Le Texte grec des recits utiles
a l'ame d'Anastase (le Sinaite)', OC 3 (1903), 56-90, see 69f.
&2 The later symponos attached to the urban prefect appears to be descended from the late
Roman assessor: see Bury's remarks, Administrative System, pp. 70-1: Oikonomides,
Prisiance, p. 320. But this is no guarantee that assessors were still attached to provincial
governors. The consiliarius (assessor) who was purportedly involved in negotiations
between Maximus Confessor and imperial officials in 656 may have been such an official;
but the context offers no certainty for such an identification: PG XC. 1698.
Society. state and law 273
upon which the late Roman jurisdictional system had been based sur-
vived. 63 Whether or not prescription of forum continued to exist is difficult
to say. 64
Until at least the reigns of Heraclius and Constans II there is good reason
for supposing that the system familiar from the sixth century continued to
function, however. The collection of miracles of St Artemius, put together
in the later seventh century and recording events dating from the reign of
Heraclius to the 660s, refers to a number of officials familiar from the
Justinianic period. The commentariensis of the prefect of the city, the
secretarius, a subadiuva and the standard judicial procedures of the earlier
period all occur. 65 In the same collection, reference is made to a patrikios
and senator who was also one of the twelve judicial commissioners
established in Constantinople. He is referred to in this text as a -Detoc;
8t,Ka<rr1;c;, the correct title. The narrator situates the story in the reign of
Heraclius, and again it is clear that the system of the Justinianic period was
still in operation. 66 In the reign of Constans II, the trial of Maximus the
Confessor took place before the full senate and consistory, as was tradi-
tional.67 The so-called Hypomnestikon, or commemoratio, written by Theo-
dore Spoudaios shortly after the death of Maximus in exile in Lazica in
662, refers also to the judicial officer of the prefect of the city, in this
instance called protosecretarius. 68 It can reasonably be assumed that nota-
ries continued to be employed for much the same purposes throughout this
period, since they appear again in the ninth-century Book of the Eparch,
and a degree of continuity seems likely: although their organisation and
the extent of their legal knowledge remain unknown. In the Kletorologion of
63 See Peira Ll, 29: and note Basilika VI, 1 for sixth-century legislation retained in later
codifications. Cf. also Procheiros Nomos IV, 11. 18 and 24: DAI. 51.54-65. For the special
jurisdiction as applied to soldiers, see Haldon, Byzantine Praetorians, pp. 304fT. The Ecloga
also makes it clear that courts with differing jurisdictional competences continued to exist:
see XIV, 7 (line 656sq.).
64 See Haldon, Byzantine Praetorians, pp. 306f.
65 Miracula S. Artemii, 22.26-23.27, probably of the later years of Heraclius. The commen-
tarlensis was an important official on the judicial side of all ofjicia of leading state officers,
civil and military, such as the praetorian prefect, the urban prefect, the magister officiorum
and the magistri militum. There was usually only one such official attached to each
officium: his superior was the primiscrinius, or subadiuva, of the judicial section, and above
the latter came the cornicularius and the head of the section, the princeps. See CJ I, 2 7.
1/24 (a. 534): John Lydus, De Magistratibus 11, 16: Ill, B. For the duties of the commentarie-
nsis, who was responsible for the custody of prisoners, criminal proceedings and related
matters: John Lydus. De Magistratibus Ill, 16 and 17: CTh .• IX, 40. 5 (a. 364). Vlli, 15. 5
(a. 368) and IX. 3. 5 (a. 371). See also Jones, LRE, vol. 11, p. 587. The princeps in this text
seems to be represented by the secretarius, who would normally hear the case himself. In
this example, the prefect happens to be present and intervenes personally (23.1sq.). Note
the fee paid to the secretarius (B hexagrams) and the commentariensis (3 hexagrams): ibid.,
23.23-4.
66 Miracula S. Artemii, 17.1~12. 67 PG CX, BBC and 109C.
&9 Eparchikon Biblion I (1r£p~ Ta~ouAAapiwv ), 13, 15, 16. See also Klet. Phil. 113.18; A. Dain,
in REB 16 (1958), 166fT.; Noailles and Dain, Les Novelles de Lion VIle sage. p. 377; Bury,
Administrative System, p. 72.
10 See note 65 above. Bury believed that the protokagkellarios represented the older princeps:
but this leaves then no room for the origin of the logothetis tou praitOriou. The protokagkel-
larios is more probably to be associated with the late Roman primiscrinius or subadiuva. See
Jones, LRE. vol. 11, p. 58 7.
71 See Oikonomides, Prisiance, pp. 32lf.; Bury, Administrative System, pp. 73-7. Note the
important position of the quaestor as one of the imperial officials accompanying Constan-
tine IV at the sessions of the sixth ecumenical council (see, e.g., Mansi XI, 209B) and in the
prooemium to the Ecloga, where he and his antigrapheis (the older magistri sacrorum
scriniorum) are entrusted with the new codified selection and with the honest dispensation
of justice. See Ecloga, pr., 40sq. and 102sq.
12 Ecloga, prooemium, 40sq.
71 Mansi X. 857B and E; PG CX. 104B and 172A. Cf. Devreesse, Hypomnesticum, 68.26-9;
72.26-73.2; 76.23-77.1. For Theodore and Euprepios, see ibid., 71.17-18.
Society, state and law 275
In the provinces, things seem from the 640s to have been very much less
structured, that is, from the time when the Eastern armies are withdrawn
into Asia Minor and Arab attacks begin in earnest. Civil governors (archon-
tes) and judges (dikastai) are referred to in the Ecloga, although it is unclear
as to whether the latter are based in the provinces also: and the civil
governors were .still clearly credited with the judicial authority they had
formerly held. 74 Courts are mentioned in a matter-of-fact way, too, which
suggests that the compilers of the Ecloga assumed the continued existence
of the provincial courts, both ordinary and appeal courts, within the
empire. 75 The fate of the civil courts of first instance, those of the defensores
civitatis, is unknown: but it is highly likely that, in view of the fate of the
municipalities and of civic culture generally during the seventh and eighth
centuries, they fell into abeyance as they became less and less relevant,
their functions being subsumed during the later sixth and seventh cen-
turies by the courts of the bishops. 76 Similarly, the nature of the relation-
ship between the episcopal courts, the courts of provincial governors and
the generals of the territorial themata (as these became fixed during the
later seventh and eighth centuries) remains obscure. There were clearly no
thematic kritai, who appear much later, at this time. That pertaining
between the first two presumably followed on from the earlier system with
little change (except in respect of the knowledge and understanding of the
law, and the degree to which local traditions and customs were used as a
prism through which to interpret the Justinianic corpus); and it may be
that the officials whom we have already encountered, the anthypatoi and
eparchs, responsible for the civil government of these provinces, retained
the judicial functions of the praetorian prefecture, representing up to the
end of the seventh century a higher, prefectural, court of appeal. 77
Initially, the strategoi, who represented the older magistri militum under a
different name, must likewise have exercised the jurisdiction over their
troops and officiales familiar from the sixth century. But as the thematil
became territorially permanent, so the strategos seems to have gained a
general authority over the civil government of the provinces within his
thema. Thus the civil governors of the provinces, while they survived, will
have continued to exercise their functions under the authority of the
strategos, but within the jurisdiction also of the old prefecture which, as we
have seen in chapter 5, continued to function.
74 Ecloga VID, 1. 6 (490): VIII, 3 (503): XVll, 5 (787): XVII, 21 (827) (archontes); VIII, 3
(504): XIV, 1 (638): XIV, 4 (645): XIV, 7 (656, 660 etc.) (dikaswi).
75 Ecloga IV. 4 (345) and XIV, 7 (658).
76 See Hohlweg, ·sischof und Stadtherr', 51fT.: and esp. K.L. Noethlichs, 'Materialien zum
Bischofsbild a us den spatantiken Rechtsquellen'. ]ahrbuch fur Antike und Christentum 16
(1973), 28-59.
77 See chapter 5, above.
276 Byzantium in the seventh century
The role played by the judicial system, and more particularly by the law at
a symbolic level, in seventh-century society and ideology was central in
the maintenance of a sense of Roman tradition and cultural identity. It was
1s T. Usp., 53.3.
79 For the function and competence of the later krites, see Ahrweiler, 'Recherches', 67fT.:
Oikonomides. Preseance, pp. 323f.: and for kritis-prait.Or, see Leo VI. Tactica. 705.
Society. state and law 277
also a crucial element in the maintenance of the Roman state itself, for it
was through the law that provincial governors and officials could invoke
and legitimate their authority, which flowed from the emperor and Con-
stantinople. That emperors realised this is apparent from the prooemium to
the Ecloga, where Leo and Constantine are concerned not simply with the
clarification of the traditional jurisprudence, but its relevance and applica-
tion to the provinces as well as to the capital city. The law embodied
implicitly the assumption that the highest judge on earth was the emperor,
who was himself chosen and protected by God: and the application of the
law meant at the same time accepting and furthering the political ideology
of the Roman state and all that this meant for contemporaries. Invoking
the juristic and legal tradition, therefore, whether in Constantinople or in
the furthest province, meant invoking also the political ideology of the
orthodox Roman state. 80 The fact that, during the period with which we
are concerned, the degree of ignorance or incompetence of local provincial
governors in legal matters was such that the emperors felt eventually
obliged to admit this state of affairs publicly and undertake action to
correct it, does not in itself mean that the ideological strength of provincial
government and the law was any weaker. As we have seen, 'the law' had a
symbolic, an evocational value in itself. Whether it was applied according
to the precepts and on the basis of the precedents of the Justinianic
legislation, or on the basis of provincial interpretations which may have
owed more to customary and traditional social practice, therefore, its force
when described as the law of the Roman state was just as powerful. 81
Quite apart from this consideration, however, another important aspect
of judicial practice must be borne in mind. Modern legal systems, however
they developed historically, are founded upon the assumption of normative
prescription, precedents and interpretations, established by a judiciary
whose members share the same technical education. More importantly,
the judiciary strives to assert a normative framework within which civil
and criminal cases can be handled and within which the evidence of
witnesses, for example, can be processed on a consistent basis. Byzantine
judges did not work in this way. On the contrary, attempts to make sense
of the contradictions within Byzantine legal compilations (between appar-.
ently conflicting norms, for example) and especially between the formal
legislation and the actual practice and decisions of judges, where these are
known, have generally failed because of such assumptions. The enormous
complexity of the legislative literature available to Byzantine judges, the
corruption, the poor judicial training of judges, social and political vested
so Ecloga, prooemium, 9-31.
81 See esp. F. DOlger, 'Rom in der Gedankenwelt der Byzantiner', in Byzanz und die europdi-
sche Staatenwelt (Darmstadt 1964), pp. 700'., esp. 75-6.
278 Byzantium in the seventh century
interests - all these have been invoked as grounds for the apparent
mismatch between legal theory and practice. 82 But as has now been
shown, these conclusions were flawed because based upon entirely false
assumptions. Byzantine judges worked within a widely respected norma-
tive judicial framework only at the most general level. They did not order
and interpret their case material within a pre-existing normative system
according to which the correct interpretation and the solution to a given
problem could be read off. Their activity was seen instead as determined by
moral-ethical considerations within a Christian framework, drawing upon
the accepted principles of an orthodox culture and the accepted 'common-
sense' understanding of the society as a whole. 83 Judges were selected
according to their general literacy, moral standing, and according to their
experience within the Church or state apparatus and appropriate adminis-
trative establishment. Judges were not, therefore, expected to fulfil their
obligations through applying the law, in the modern sense. On the con-
trary, the law they applied was the morality of the society- this replaced
the normative legal framework - interpreted through the prism of the
inherited legislation on an ad hoc basis according to the needs of the
particular case, the knowledge of the tradition of the judge in question, and
the prevailing moral climate, as well as the personal feelings of the
judge(s). 84 Ultimately, therefore, formal justice in the Byzantine world
depended upon the moral preconceptions and ethical disposition of each
individual judge, whose decision would be grounded in a selection of topoi
drawn from the available legal literature. The decision would be legally
grounded in so far as all legislation was, ultimately, ascribed to the
emperors, who thus bore also the responsibility for its misapplication or
misinterpretation. Challenges to a legal decision were thus based on an
alternative and contradictory set of topoi, assembled to demonstrate the
fallibility of the first decision. The success of an appeal, however, rested
once more upon the personal morality and knowledge of the judges before
whom the appeal was heard.
That some generally applicable normative legislation did serve the
function of structuring social relations, of course, is apparent - marriage
law, for example, to name one of many such areas. But this still left
enormous scope for the moral personality of the judiciary. Even in the
imperial court, it was clearly ultimately the moral universe of the emperor
and his advisers which gave a particular slant or nuance to a decision,
The Christian Church constituted one of the most powerful economic and
ideological institutions of the late Roman world, a role it continued to play
in the barbarian successor kingdoms and in the Byzantine empire
throughout its history. While there is no doubt that Christianity was not
universally accepted throughout the lands of the later Roman state -
enclaves of traditional, local non-Christian beliefs may have survived well
into the seventh and eighth centuries, for example - it was certainly by the
early seventh century the majority faith, in which traditional beliefs were
subsumed and through which older ways of seeing the world came to be
expressed. In theory, it represented a universalist soteriological belief
system, with a highly developed and sophisticated theological-philosophi-
cal arsenal at its disposal. In practice, while its formal debates, its day-to-
day teachings, and the political theory implicit in it, were represented by its
clergy and by the literate minority within society, as the single and correct
form of belief, it included also a plurality of ways of intepreting the world
inherited from the cultural traditions amongst which it grew up and
matured and upon which it was eventually superimposed. This syncretism
existed throughout the empire and throughout its history, although the
form of its expression and where it was expressed varied greatly. And while
the formal, sanctioned directions of belief expressed by members of the
orthodox establishment at any given moment (and depending upon which
form of 'orthodoxy' prevailed) tend to monopolise the theological and
political debates o( the time, the underlying tensions out of which they
were refined must never be forgotten. This is particularly true in the
seventh century, for it was the period in which the contradictions which
eventually led to the iconoclastic policies of emperors like Leo m became
apparent, in which the possibility of 'pagan' survivals and heterodox belief
had to be confronted and in which theologians came into direct conflict
281
282 Byzantium in the seventh century
with the state and the emperor. And it was the latter conflict which
perhaps more than anything else in these years points to the real nature of
the political crisis within the Byzantine world.
Already in the fourth century, the crux of the matter had been summed
up by two Churchmen: in his debate with the North African Donatists,
Optatus ofMilevis stated 'non enim respublica est in ecclesia, sed ecclesia in
re publica, id est in imperio Romano': while Ambrosius of Milan pointed
out to the young Valentinian Ill: 'Imperator enim intra ecclesiam, non
supra ecclesiam est.' 1 These two statements represent two potentially quite
contradictory points of view, and they represent a tension between Church
and state, emperor and patriarch, which subsisted throughout Byzantine
history and was effectively resolved in the East only with the replacement
of the Byzantine emperor by an Ottoman sultan. In the seventh century,
they were to be invoked in a conflict which was, itself, to appear as
symbolic of these two poles of opinion for later generations.
Let us stress two key points at the beginning. First, it should never be
forgotten that the Byzantine Church, an organisational and doctrinal part
of a much wider Christian whole, is part and parcel of the history of the
Byzantine state and of Byzantine society and culture. Second, that its
development, and its relations with the state, are dynamic: there is no
static parallelism between emperor and patriarch, repeated in essence,
albeit concealed by the nuances of the conjunctural politics of a given
moment, throughout the course of Byzantine history. On the contrary, the
Church and its clergy need to be seen in the perspective of their own
society, responding and changing - or not - to the exigencies of temporary
crises or permanent changes in their circumstances. The Church repre-
sents, therefore, a fundamental element in the history of Byzantine culture
as a whole.
Perhaps the single most important determining feature of the Byzantine
Church was its close political-ideological relationship with the position of
emperor. These two institutions- priesthood and secular ruler- had been
tied theoretically by the development of an imperial, Christian ideological
system with its roots in the Roman and Hellenistic past, from the early
fourth century. In its most idealised form, it was expressed as a relationship
of mutual interdependence, and yet with a duty on the part of the secular
authority - the emperor - to defend 'correct belief' and to protect the
interests of the spiritual authority. The Emperor Justinian I gives a vivid
statement of this position in a novel of the year 53 5:
I Opatatus Milevitanus, Contra Parmenianum Donatistam, in CSEL, vol. XXVI (1893), iii. 3:
Ambrosius, Sermo de Basilicis Tradendis, or Contra Auxentium, in PL. vol. XVI. 875-1286,
see 1007-18.
The imperial Church and the politics of authority 28 3
Mankind has been endowed by God from the mercy of heaven with two great
blessings, those of priest and emperor. The former ministers to matters divine: the
latter is set above, and shows diligence in, matters human. Both proceed from one
and the same source, and both adorn the life of Man. For this reason nothing lies
closer to the emperor's heart than honour and respect for the priestly office, while
the latter is bound to pray constantly for the emperor. For when this duty is carried
out without blemish and in true Godliness, and when in return the imperial power
accepts the application of its secular authority justly and morally, then there exists
harmony, and all mankind is blessed, and benefits. 2
The passage continues with an expression of the conviction that the
health of the state can be assured only if the traditions of orthodox belief
are faithfully and correctly handed down and followed, a tradition
bestowed by the Apostles of Christ, and protected and preserved obviously
by the Fathers of the Church.
Clearly, this expression of the harmony of the secular and the spiritual
spheres was a utopian statement. But it mirrors, although in a highly
idealised form, the aims of imperial policy with regard to both orthodoxy in
general and the fate of the empire, and to the ecclesiastical institutions and
personnel of the Byzantine world in particular. And it is demonstrated in
reality by the role of the emperor in the convening of synods and, more
particularly, in the way in which the decisions of such ecclesiastical
meetings were taken up in imperial legislation, where they received the
added force of being backed by the secular authority and its judicial
apparatus. From the time of Constantine I, the emperors had been involved
in both the politics and the theology of the Christian Church. and imperial
laws dealing with such matters ensured that, by the sixth century, emperor
and Church, state and Christianity, were inextricably bound together.
Justinian I presents in many respects the completion of this evolution, for it
was he who first set about formulating clearly the extent of, and limits to,
imperial authority in both secular and religious affairs. As God represented
the only source of law. he argued, so the emperor, who was chosen and
appointed by God to represent Him on earth, was the ultimate source of
law in the earthly sphere. 3 The exact extent of this imperial authority,
sonality of emperor and patriarch, together with the political and religious
situation of the moment, for no formal and clearly demarcated division of
competence was ever achieved. Emperors and clergy determined the limits
of their power, therefore, in accordance with the exigencies of the moment,
and with the abilities, strengths and weaknesses of those persons in power
with whom they had to deal, and in the context of the factional interests of
different power-groupings within the ruling and governing class.
Such tensions were most clearly evident when the state, in the person of
the emperor, intervened directly in matters of ecclesiastical jwisdiction or
of theology and dogma. This is not to say that they were not intellectually
qualified to do so - on the contrary, many emperors were competent
theologians in their own right. But they inevitably represented for the
Church more than a merely neutral interest. The degree to which the
church could tolerate such intervention depended, as we have seen, on the
context in which it took place, and on its perceived repercussions. Emper-
ors often found it easy to bully Churchmen into conformity, especially in
Constantinople, where patriarchs could be threatened, or removed and
replaced, when they failed to conform to the imperial line; although
actually resolving the questions at issue was not always so easily achieved.
The most coherent statement of the different competences of Church and
state, and one which was to be invoked frequently by churchmen in later
centuries, was that set out by Maximus Confessor during his trial and in his
correspondence. Maximus' argument was directed at one particular aspect
of the Church-state relationship, however. It was directed at the theoreti-
cal grounds upon which the emperors had attempted to justify their rights
of intervention, and of directing debate, in matters of dogma and the
nature of orthodoxy, grounds which - in the reign of Constans ll at least -
were presented by the imperial party as elements within Christian theology
in the narrower sense. The central notion, the identity of the secular ruler
as both emperor and priest, represented a position strongly refuted by
Maximus, who queried likewise the emperor's claim to be the sole source
conferring authority on synods and councils - a claim which was founded
upon the model of Constantine I, but which was actually bound up with
the refusal of the state to recognise the Lateran synod in 649. 7 While these
arguments were henceforth to be reproduced in similar confrontations in
later years, it was in the West, and particularly in the context of the
political authority of the papacy during the later eighth century and
afterwards that its importance for the development of the Church became
most apparent. For the Byzantine world in the seventh century, it was a
combination of perceived threats to imperial authority in the changed
7 Haldon, •Ideology and social change', 173fT. with literature: Winkelmann, Die ostlichen
Kirchen, pp. 133fT.: Aland, ·Kaiser und Kirche' (cited note 3, chapter 8 above), 65-7.
286 Byzantium in the seventh century
political, military and social climate of the times, together with the lack of
any clear demarcation of spheres of influence and authority between
Church and state which lay at the root of the further development of both
the Byzantine Church and of the state itself.
9 Van Dieten, Geschichu der Patriarchen, pp. 30fT. For the history and development of the
Syrian monophysite - Jacobite - Church, see especially R. Devreesse, Le Patriarcat d' Antio-
che depuis la paix de l'tglise jusqu'a la conquiu arabe (Paris 1945): D. Bundy, 'Jacob
Baradaeus', Le Musion 91 (1978), 45-86: E. Honigmann, Eviques et tvichis monophysites
d'Asie antirieure au V.tt sikle (CSCO CXXVll, subsid. 17, Louvain 1951): W.A. Wigram, The
Separation of the Monophysius (London 192 3 ). For a general account of political-theological
developments, see Beck, Kirche, pp. 288-91: Winkelmann, Die ostlichen Kirchen,
pp. 121-5, with sources and literature. On the regional and local feelings of independence
in the monophysite areas, see Guillou, Rigionalisme, pp. 236fT., and see above, chapter 2.
288 Byzantium in the seventh century
took refuge in the monasteries and sketes of the hinterland - by the
imperial authorities, the Melkite Church remained for the most part dis-
tanced from the mass of the Coptic population. Only under archbishops of
great ability and diplomacy did the 'establishment' Church meet with any
success - the popularity of the Chalcedonian John ITI (610-19) in later
monophysite sources is indicative. With the arrival of the Arabs, the efforts
of the imperial Church to reassert its position finally ended. 10
There is some evidence that the Chalcedonian clergy - including the
patriarchs - did continue to reside in their sees in the areas taken by Islam
from the 640s, attending the sixth ecumenical council and the Quinisext
council, although the first unequivocal evidence suggests that it was finally
only in 742 that the Chalcedonian patriarch of Antioch was allowed to
take up his position, although the skeleton of a Melkite Church subsisted
throughout the intervening years: and it was only in 706 and 744 that
Chalcedonian patriarchs were elected once again in Jerusalem and Alexan-
dria respectively. Again, the Chalcedonian Church subsisted, electing
bishops and clergy and, when possible, sending representatives to the
general councils, although its history is difficult to discern. 11
In what follows, I shall frequently refer to the 'Chalcedonian' or dyophy-
site theology which had become the imperial orthodoxy by the later sixth
century, in opposition to the monophysite theology of the Eastern
provinces. This must not be taken to imply that there were not monophy-
sites throughout the empire - merely that the majority tradition in the East
was, by the later fifth century, a monophysite tradition. In addition, we
should also speak more accurately of neo-Chalcedonian orthodoxy: from
1o Most recent general survey: Winkelmann, Die ostlichen Kirchen, pp. 114-21: also E.R.
Hardy, Christian Egypt (New York 1952): D.C. Muller, 'Die koptische Kirche zwischen
Chalkedon und dem Arabereinmarsch', Zeitschrift filr Kirchengeschichte 75 (1964).
271-308: R. Remondon, 'L'Eglise dans la societe egyptienne a l'epoque byzantine',
Chronique d'Egypte 47, 93 (1972). 254ft'.; M. Roncaglia, Histoire de l'iglise copte (Beirut
1966): P. Verghese, Koptisches Christentum (Stuttgart 1973): and for the relations
between Greeks and Copts, the role of the Alexandrian patriarchate and the intervention
of the state, F. Winkelmann. 'Die Stellung Agyptens im ostromisch-byzantinischen Reich',
Graeco-Coptica. Griechen und Kopten im byzantinischen Agypten 48 (1984), 11-35, and
'Agypten und Byzanz vor den arabischen Eroberungen', BS 40 (1979), 161-82. For
Damianus and his followers, referred to as Damianites, as Angelitai and Tetraditai, see
I. Rochow, 'Zu einigen oppositionellen religiosen Stromungen', in Byzanz im 7. ]ahrhun-
dert, pp. 22 5-88, see 264.
11 See the account of L. Brehier and R. Aigrain, in Fliche and Martin, Histoire de l'iglise, vol.
V, pp. 479-84; Beck, Kirche, pp. 93-8: but for good circumstantial evidence that the
patriarchs of Antioch and Jerusalem were in their sees, at least in the period of truce
between empire and caliphate from 678 to 692, see F.R. Trombley, ·A note on the see of
Jerusalem and the synodallist of the sixth oecumenical council (68Q-681)', B 53 (1983),
632-8. Note also Brehier. Institutions, pp. 456-60: and especially H. Kennedy. 'The
Melkite Church from the Islamic conquest to the Crusades: continuity and adaptation in
the Byzantine legacy', Seventeenth International Byzantine Congress, Major Papers (New
York 1986), pp. 325-43.
The imperial Church and the politics of authority 289
the late fifth century a division within the Chalcedonian camp developed.
This was concerned chiefly with the position within dyophysite theology of
the Antiochene tradition. The strict Chalcedonians wished to emphasise
the twin aspects of Christ's two natures, and to retain the rich and
sophisticated dyophysite tradition of the school of Antioch: the neo-Chalce-
donians, in contrast, were concerned to incorporate the tradition of Cyril of
Alexandria into Chalcedonian theology, and consequently to exclude its
antithesis, the Antiochene theology. The debate was eventually resolved,
as a result of direct imperial intervention through the affair of the Three
Chapters, in favour of the second direction. By the end of Justinian's reign,
neo-Chalcedonian theology dominated the dyophysite position. 12
Justinian, the ordinary clergy and the citizens of the diocese also partici-
pated in the nomination of candidates for the election. Justinian curtailed
these rights, and they were later restricted to the provincial bishops alone,
although popular intervention - acclamations, for example, in support of
one or other of the candidates - still took place. The bishop was the chief
ecclesiastical authority in his diocese, and both clergy and monasteries
were under his control. He was responsible for the maintenance of ortho-
doxy, the seeking out and destruction of heresy, and the imposition and
application of the canon law of the Church. He was also the chief manager
of Church properties, although in practice this was delegated to local
managers and stewards - oikonomoi - and he supervised the distribution of
Church revenues to his clergy and to Church foundations such as
almshouses and orphanages. In respect of the clergy in his diocese he also
presided over the ecclesiastical court and arbitrated at cases between
laypersons and clergymen. From the reign of Heraclius (from 629) the
privileges of the clergy in such legal proceedings were explicitly safe-
guarded, to prevent their being unjustly treated by the civil or military
authorities. But one area in which conflict continued to arise - until the
eleventh century, at least- was that of matrimonial law, where the civil
law of the state encoded in the Codex lustinianus and later collections, based
as it was on traditional Roman law, was sometimes in conflict with canon
law. Matrimonial cases were dealt with by the civil authorities, therefore,
since civil marriages could be dissolved by the agreement of both parties,
the legal question of the redistribution of property presenting the most
difficult problems. According to the Church, in contrast, marriage was
indissoluble (except in the case of adultery), and the conflicts which ensued
- for example, the question of the fourth marriage of the Emperor Leo VI -
were ultimately resolved only when the state ceded complete jurisdiction in
such matters to the Church, with a ruling of the Emperor Alexius I in
1084. 22
The bishop, of course, played a role not merely in the ecclesiastical
organisation of his diocese, but in its economic and social life, too. From
the sixth century, bishops were among the most important figures in
municipal government, being entitled to sit also in civil courts and carry
out civil-administrative functions. Bishops were, certainly at this time,
drawn from among the social and economic elite of their cities or dioceses,
22 See DOlger. Regesten. no. 1116. For the organisation of the Church and the relative
positions of the patriarch. bishops, upper and lower clergy. rural and urban parishes. see
esp. the survey in Beck. Kirche, pp. 670'. and 79-86; CMH vol. IV. part 2. pp. 106-18;
)ones. LRE. vol. 11. pp. 874fT.; Brehier. Institutions. pp. 477tT.: and G. Dagron. 'Le Christia-
nisme dans la ville byzantine', DOP 31 (1977). 3-25 (repr. in La Romaniti chretienne en
Orient (London 1984)). see pp. 19fT. On the question of matrimony and divorce, see Beck.
Kirche. pp. 86-90.
The imperial Church and the politics of authority 293
and it is unlikely that this picture changed dramatically during the seventh
century. 23 As such, they formed also an important element of the ruling
class of late Roman society. in "yhich they occupied a central position,
acting as mediators of both the ideological interests of Church and state
and the economic interests of the Church as a great landowner. 24
The monasteries
Just as significant an element in the late Roman and early Byzantine world
was the monastic community. During the period from the early fourth to
the later sixth centuries, monasticism - confined originally to Egypt, Syria
and parts of Palestine - experienced a dramatic expansion. 25 In spite of
strenuous efforts on the part of the secular Church and the state to
establish some form of control and authority over both the monastic
communities themselves and their tendency to expand which was an
important element in the decline of the urban economy and culture of the
late Roman period, monasteries represented a source of independence and
anti-authoritarianism to the regular establishment, and more particularly
to unacceptable or novel departures in imperial policy with regard to the
Church and dogma. In 451 the council of Chalcedon reached a number of
decisions in respect of monastic property, the position of monks and
monastic communities within the Church as an institutional body, deci-
sions which were taken up and expanded by the Emperor Justinian I. The
continued independence of such communities, however, and their tacit
rejection of many such limitations on their size, their activities and their
sources of recruitment is evidenced in the canons of the Quinisext, where
the Church once again attempted to enforce some degree of generally
recognised conformity. 26 Individual hermits and anchorites, 'holy men' of
23 See the survey of A. Guillou, 'L'Eveque dans la societe mediterraneenne des Vle-vne
siecles: un modele', Bibliotheque de 1'ecole des Chartes 131 ( 19 7 3 ), 5-19 (repr. in Culture et
societe en Italie byzantine (Vf-Xr siecles) ll (London 1978).
24 See chapter 3: and Jones, LRE, vol. 11, pp. 923fT.: Brown, Gentlemen and Officers, p. 176.
Note also the comments and literature cited by F. Winkelmann, 'Kirche und Gesellschaft
in Byzanz vom ende des 6. his zum Beginn des 8. Jahrhunderts', Klio 59 (1977), 477-89,
see 481fT. For a comprehensive general survey, see Beck, Kirche, pp. 120-40.
25 See CMH, vol. IV, part 2, pp. 161fT. and 167fT.: and especially the discussion ln Mango,
Byzantium: the Empire of New Rome, pp. 105-24. On the types of monastic community, see
also Beck, Kirche, pp. 120fT. with literature. On the expansion of monasticism, see Jones,
LRE, vol. 11, pp. 930fT.: Brehier, Institutions, pp. 529fT.
26 For Chalcedon and Justinian, see Beck, Kirche, p. 126: and esp. B. Granic, 'Die rechtliche
Stellung und Organisation der griechischen Kloster nach dem justinianischen Recht', BZ
29 (1929), 6-34 and 'Die privatrechtliche Stellung der griechischen Monche im V. und
VI. Jahrhundert', BZ 30 (1930), 669-76; G. Dagron, 'Les Moines et la vllle: le monachisme
a Constantinople jusqu'au concile de Chalcedoine (451)', TM 4 (1970), 229-76, for a
detailed analysis of the role of monks in ecclesiastical and imperial politics in the fourth
and fifth centuries. For the Quinisext, see canons 40 to 49: Mansi XI, 939fT.
294 Byzantium in the seventh century
the type familiar from the late Roman period, remained even more difficult
to control and continued to exercise considerable influence and authority
among the ordinary rural population. 27
Like the secular Church, monasteries could also own property, granted
to them in the same ways. The efforts of the Church to retain some control
over monastic foundations gave to bishops a pre-eminent role. Not only did
bishops have to give their assent to the building of any new monastic
establishment: monasteries were also obliged to pay them a regular episco-
pal tax, or canonicum, and to commemorate the local bishop in the liturgy.
The bishop also supervised the election of the abbot of a monastery and
consecrated him. Needless to say, these regulations were not always
strictly observed, and conflicts between monasteries and the episcopate
were not infrequent. 28 Monasteries were endowed by private persons,
from the richest to the poorest, for the salvation of their souls - for which
the monks waged a continuous battle in prayer- and by grants of property
and wealth from the imperial government. The extent of monastic property
is difficult to assess, although it must from early on have been considerable,
to judge from the number of monasteries which existed in some regions of
the empire: there were, over several centuries, some 300 establishments in
Constantinople alone, endowed either with land or other property from
which the monks could be supported, or given cash grants and provisions
on a yearly basis from their patrons and/or founders. Monastic centres
flourished in the Aegean area, in western Asia Minor, in Cappadocia, in the
Pontus, in parts of the Balkans, to name only those areas still within the
empire after the seventh century. 29
Monasticism, beginning as an Egyptian phenomenon, reflects the degree
of popular piety among the ordinary populations of the late Roman and
Byzantine world, and its often turbulent history provides an accurate
21 See the comments of H.-G. Beck, Das byzantinische ]ahrtausend (Munich 1978), esp.
pp. 214fT. The council of Chalcedon (canons 4 and 24) had ordered that all those fol-
lowing the monastic life should have a fixed abode. and that they should confine their
activities to fasting and prayer. They should not intervene in politics or in the wider affairs
of the Church. In his fifth novel. Justinian ordered that even anchorites and recluses
should live in their own cells, but within the bounds of the monastery. But such rulings
clearly had little effect at this early time and afterwards, until the later ninth century at
least. For Justinian's legislation, see C] I. 3.43 and 46: V. 3.7 and 133. For monks and
'holy men' in the seventh century. see below.
2s See Mango, Byzantium: The Empire of New Rome. pp. 108fT. and 120fT.
29 See especially P. Charanis. 'The monastic properties and the state in the Byzantine
empire', DOP 4 (1948), 51-118, and 'The monk as an element of Byzantine society', DOP
25 (1971). 61-84: Savramis. Zur Soziologie des byzantinischen Monchtums, esp. pp. 390'.
and 45-52: Brehier, Institutions. pp. 553ft'.: Beck. Das byzantinische ]ahrtausend.
pp. 214-15. See also the brief survey of F. Trombley. 'Monastic foundations in sixth-
century Anatolia and their role in the social and economic life of the countryside'. Greek
Orthodox Theol. Review 30 (1985). 45-59.
The imperial Church and the politics of authority 29 5
36 The text is in F. Miklosich and J. Muller, Acta et Diplomata Graeci Medii Aevi Sacra et Profana
I and U (Acta Patriarchatus Constantinopolitani) (Vienna 1860-l), vol. ll, pp. 188-92: Engl.
trans. E. Barker, Social and Political Thought in Byzantium (Oxford 1957), pp.l94-6.
298 Byzantium in the seventh century
site theologian of the first half of the sixth century. 3 7 Her influence over
Justin became clear when he recalled and restored all the bishops exiled by
Justinian I. and when in 566/7 he issued a document of unification, or
Henotikon, in which the ecclesiastical policies of Justinian - with the
important exception of the policies invoked and imposed during the Three
Chapters controversy -were more or less entirely abandoned and in which
a return to the position at the end of the reign of Anastasius (491-518)
was evident. Unfortunately for Justin's initial efforts, this attempt was a
failure, for the monophysite bishops who met at Kallinikon in 567 to
debate and ratify the policy under the auspices of the imperial representa-
tive John in fact rejected it, since it did not manage actually to condemn
dyophysitism, that is, the creed of Chalcedon. 38 In 5 71 a second Henotikon
was promulgated in which Justin modified his position very slightly,
stressing the fact that, however the question of the single or double natures
of Christ (as man and God) might be resolved, He still occupied a single
person and being, both God and man in one. In the same document, Justin
also repeats and extends the basic position expressed in Justinian I's edict
on correct belief, issued in 551. In practice, therefore, whatever his
intentions or his hopes, the official position would be seen by the monophy-
sites as one based fundamentally on Chalcedonian principles, in which two
natures could still be admitted. 39 The result was, perhaps, predictable, and
certainly typical: monophysite rejection of the principle of the Henotikon,
followed by intensified state persecution. The majority of the monophysite
bishops were forced to put their names to the document: those who refused
were exiled. 40 The issue, therefore, remained unresolved, and the indepen-
dent Jacobite Church organised by Jacob Baradaeus continued to devel-
op.41 Justin's short reign, which began with an attempt at compromise
and unification, ended in persecution and repression.
Tiberius II and Maurice appear to have acted much more pragmatically,
indeed the monophysite Church during Tiberius' reign seems to have been
able to consolidate its organisational foundation, and monophysite sources
37 See esp. W. de Vries, ·rne Eschatologie des Severus von Antiochien', OCP 23 (1957).
3 54-80: J. Lebon, Le Monophysisme Sivirien (Louvain 1909 ).
38 See Michael Syr., vol. Il, 289fT.: and Averil Cameron, 'The early religious policies of Justin
II', Studies in Church History Xlli (1976), 65fT. For Zeno's Henotikon, see Every, The
Byzantine Patriarchate, pp. 50f.: Winkelmann, Die ostlichen Kirchen, pp. 97f.
39 See the long account in Evagrius, 199-200: and see, for the Justinianic position,
E. Schwartz, 'Drei dogmatische Schriften Justinians', Abhandlungen d. bayer. Akad. d.
Wiss., phil.-hist. Klasse, new series XVIII (Munich 1939). For a brief survey of Justinian's
religious policies, see Every, The Byzantine Patriarchate, pp. 57-68.
40 See Michael Syr., vol. 11, 295fT.: John ofNikiu. 94: and especially John ofEphesus, I. 19sq.:
n. 1sq.: 11. 9sq.
41 For the most useful general account. see W.H.C. Frend. The Rise of the Monophysite
Movement (Cambridge 1972): and Winkelmann, Die ostlichen Kirchen, pp. 122fT.
The imperial Church and the politics of authority 299
speak well of the emperor, who put an end, temporarily, to the persecu-
tions.42 But under Maurice, the policies of repression were once more
applied, although their effect was again merely to drive the monophysite
Church underground, but not to reduce its influence nor to damage its
organisation. 43 And under Phocas the situation seems to have remained
very much the same.
In contrast to the last years of the reign of Maurice, Phocas once more
established friendly relations with the papacy and Rome. In the 590s the
disagreement between the patriarch at Constantinople and the Pope in
Rome over the former's use of the title 'ecumenical' resurfaced. Since
Maurice took no action in the matter, his inactivity was assumed by Rome
to signal his approval of the patriarch's position, and relations were
considerably soured as a result. In contrast, Phocas recognised Roman
authority over the whole Church, and in 607 he issued a decree in which
he expressly forbade the Constantinopolitan use of the title ecumenical,
recognising instead the supremacy ofRome. 44 Again, this question was to
become one of the distinguishing features of later Byzantine ecclesiastical
history in its relations with Rome and with the West in general.
The central question for the state, however, remained that of the schism
between dyophysite Chalcedonians and the monophysites of the Eastern
provinces. During Heraclius' wars with the Persians, the question natur-
ally enough was relegated to a secondary position. Imperial Church and
state worked together to restore the empire and to re-establish orthodoxy
in the civilised world. The enormous loans made by the Church to finance
Heraclius' armies, the central role of the patriarch Sergius during Hera-
clius' absence in the East, and especially during the great siege of 626, 45 all
point to the close collaboration between the spiritual and political estab-
lishments of the Byzantine world. But in the provinces temporarily occu-
42 Michael Syr., vol. 11, 310.
43 Although the repression was not as severe as it had formerly been - see Stratos, Byzantium
in the Seventh Century, vol. I, p. 13. See R. Paret, in REB 15 (19 57), 42fT.; and note the
remarks ofMichael Syr., vol. Il, 372. In general on Church-state relations in this period,
see I. Rochow, 'Die Heidenprozesse unter Tiberios II. und Maurikios', in Studien zum 7.
]ahrhundert, pp.120-30: Winkelmann, 'Kirche und Gesellschaft' 477ff.
44 For Phocas' policies in respect of the monophysites, see John of Nikiu, chapter 104, for
example: and Brehier and Aigrain, pp. 71-2. On the Rome-{'X)nstantinople debate and the
question of ecclesiastical supremacy, see Ostrogorsky, Geschichte, p. 71: V. Laurent, 'Le
1itre de patriarche recumenique et la signature patriarcale', REB 6 (1948), 5-26: Beck,
Kirche, pp. 63f. with literature: Brehier and Aigrain. pp. 64fT. and 70--1. For a brief
summary of Byzantine-papal relations during the seventh century, see F. Dvomik, Byzanz
und der romische Primat (Stuttgart 1966 = repr. of Byzance et la primauti romaine (Paris,
1964)), pp. 95-108; and Herrin, Formation of Christendom, pp. 206fT., 213-15, 250-67
and 274fT. For Phocas, ibid., pp.180f.
45 See the account in Stratos, Byzantium in the Seventh Century, vol. I, pp. 126f.: Brehier and
Aigrain, p. 86. For the siege, see F. Barisic, 'Le Siege de Constantinople par les Avares et les
Slaves en 626', B 24 (1954), 371-95; Van Dieten, Geschichte der Patriarchen, pp.12-21.
300 Byzantium in the seventh century
pied by the Persians, things were very different. For here, the removal of
Byzantine authority had permitted the open establishment and strengthen-
ing of the hitherto illegal monophysite Church. Whether or not Persian
rule was regarded favourably, it certainly encouraged the self-confidence
of the monophysite clergy and people: and upon the completion of the
reconquest, it became evident that throughout the Eastern provinces -
Egypt, Syria, Palestine and Armenia in particular - a potential or actual
hostility to, and a resentment of, Constantinopolitan rule now constituted
a real danger, both to the unity of the empire politically and ideologically,
and to the authority of the emperor and of the Chalcedonian Church. 46
In an effort to promote a reconciliation, the patriarch Sergius, the
emperor and Cyrus, Chalcedonian patriarch of Alexandria from 6 31,
adopted the 'doctrine of the single energy', known as monenergism. The
real originator of this theological solution had been a certain Theodore,
bishop of Pharan, towards the end of the sixth century, and the principal
aim of his theology was to overcome the contradiction between the
monophysite and dyophysite perspectives by pointing to the unity of effect
of the natures of Christ, that is, the single energy which emanates from the
logos. At the same time, he emphasised also the single will which was an
inevitable corollary of the single energy. 47 The debate over one or two
energies was thus in origin a purely theological issue reaching back into
the sixth century arising out of the Christological debate around the
question of the natures of Christ and expressed in the sophisticated vocabu-
lary of Christian thinkers. And it was the position outlined in the writings
of Theodore of Pharan that Sergius, Cyrus and Heraclius now tried to build
upon, but with only limited success. Even though Heraclius himself led the
discussion and negotiations, the monophysites could not be persuaded that
this was not still essentially a dyophysite position: and in part they were
correct, for Theodore of Pharan had grounded his theology in a dyophysite
46 For the opening stages of the development of an imperial compromise solution. see the
summary and literature in Stratos. Byzantium in the Seventh Century, vol. I. pp. 283-304:
Van Dieten, Geschichte der Patriarchen. pp. 240'. For Persian policy in the monophysite
provinces. see Brehier and Aigrain, pp. 88-90 and 111 f. Heraclius was clearly already
well aware of the nature of the problem: his Edict on Faith of 610, promulgated shortly
after· his accession, was firmly dyophysite. but was couched in terms intended to be
acceptable to a monophysite reader. including a formulation of Cyril of Alexandria. See
Michael Syr., vol. II. 402-3: Brehier and Aigrain, pp. 86-7. The 'monophysite danger'
should not, of course, be exaggerated: see chapter 2. and J. Moorhead, 'The Monophysite
response to the Arab invasions', B 51 (1981), 579-91.
47 See the summary of the complex argument in W. Elert, Der Ausgang der altkirchlichen
Christologie (Berlin 1957). pp. 203fT. For the role of Sergius. see Brehier and Aigrain.
pp. 112fT.; and the agreement of 633. ibid .. pp.117-18; Van Dieten. Geschichte der
Patriarchen, pp. 24-31; Herrin. Formation of Christendom, pp. 206-11; and for the sources
for and beginnings of the debate. see Winkelmann. Die Quellen. esp. nos. 1-11. and
pp. 55f.
The imperial Church and the politics of authority 301
framework, and his argument inevitably allowed room for the possibility
that there might be two natures. In spite of an agreement reached between
Cyrus and the so-called Theodosiani. a monophyslte sect in Bgypt, formally
announced In a document of union in June 633, no real resolution of the
problem was reached. Pope Honortus, in a carefully expressed letter, made
his agreement with the discussions for unity known: but the patriarch
Sophronius of Jerusalem rejected the attempt out of hand, and his oppo-
sition - from a firmly dyophysite position - meant in effect the failure of the
whole exercise, for it was announced in a local synod, held in 634 shortly
after his accession to the patriarchal throne. The failure of this first attempt
was made all the more apparent by lts rejection from the Chalcedonian
side. The rejection from Sophronius produced an edict in late 634 or early
635 from the emperor, supported by Cyrus and Serglus, to the effect that
the question of the number of energies should no longer be debated at all,
since union had now been achieved and since such debates would serve
only to weaken the empire further. But the monophysites seem simply to
have ignored the efforts of the emperor and his advisers. They were, far
from being reunited with the Chalcedonian, now in the position of
observers of a new schism within the ranks of the latter. And as first Syria
(636), then Palestine (638) and finally Bgypt (642) fell to the Arabs, the
attempt lost much of its relevance for them, both from the theological and
the political points of view. 4 8
For the second time in his reign Heraclius now saw the Eastern
provinces of the empire lost to an invader. In 638, perceiving that the
monenergite doctrine had failed, he made a second attempt to attract the
loyalty and support of the monophysites, but without stirring up Chalcedo-
ntan opposition, he hoped, and issued the Ekthesis, in which a monothelete
doctrine was proclaimed, a doctrine which emphasised the single will of
God. but which left the question of nature and energy to one side. Once
again the debate on the question of the number of energies was strictly
prohibited. 49 The Bkthesis was posted in the narthex of Haghla Sophia in
48 Pope Honorius: Brehier and Aigraln, pp. 121-3: and Mansi XI. 53 7-44: Riedinger. 548-58:
Sophronius' opposition: Brehier and Aigrain. pp. 118. 120-1 and 123-4: and his synodalletter.
Mansi XI. 8 31-5 3. See also Van Dleten. Gtsch1chte der Patriarchtn, pp. 32ff. For the edict of
634-5 and Its background, stimulated by a letter of the Pope to Sophronlus. suggesting
that the latter permit Honorlus to handle the discussion personally with Serglus, see
DOiger, Rtgesten, no. 205: Van Dleten, Geschlchte der Patrlarchen, pp. 39tT.: Brehler and
Algraln, pp. 12 3-4.
49 DOiger, Regesun, no. 211: V. Grumel, Les Regesus des Acus du patrlarcat de Constantinople 1:
Les Actes des patrlarches, vol. I (Paris 1972); vol. 11 (Chalcedon 1936); vol. 11 (Chalcedon
and Bucarest 1947). vol. I, no. 292: Brehler and Algraln, pp.131-2: Van Dleten,
Geschlchte der Patrlarchen, pp. 470'. Por the text, see Lateran, 156.20-162.13 (Mansl X.
991-8): and for general historical context, Stratos, Byza11tlum In tht Seventh CAntury, vol.
11. pp.l41-9: and Van Dleten. Geschichte der Patrlarchen, pp.l79-218 and 219-232.
302 Byzantium in the seventh century
so See Brehier and Aigrain, pp. 132f.: Van Dieten. Geschichte der Patriarchen, pp. 4 7f. and
58-63: Stratos, Byzantium in the Seventh Century, vol. II. pp. 143f.: Grumel. Regestes, vol.
I, nos. 29 3, 29 5 and 298.
51 Brehier and Aigrain. pp. 133f.: Van Dieten. Geschichte der Patriarchen, pp. 62-3: DOlger.
Regesten. no. 214: Stratos. Byzantium in the Seventh Century, vol. U, pp.l46-7; Ostro-
gorsky, Geschichte. pp. 90--1. The split in the Chalcedonian community was ultimately
founded upon much deeper cultural differences between East and West, of course, than
these ecclesiastical-political disagreements suggest. See the discussion of P. Lemerle.
'L'Orthodoxie byzantine et l'ecumenisme medievale: les origines du "Schisma" des
eglises', Bulletin de /'Association Guillaume Bude, 4,2 ( 1965). 228-46 (repr. in Essais sur le
monde byzantin VIII (London 1980). See also Herrin, Formation of Christendom,
pp. 213-15.
52 See DOlger. Regesten. no. 215.
The imperial Church and the politics of authority 303
live within three miles of Jerusalem after the return of the True Cross. 55
There had on occasion been forced baptisms of Jews also, but in 634 he
issued a general decree ordering the baptism of all Jews in the empire.
Needless to say, such measures had little hope of even a limited success,
and the loss of Syria and then Palestine to the Arabs by 638 made the
decree irrelevant for these areas. But forced baptisms did occur in other
parts of the empire. as the story of Jacob, 'the recently baptised', testifies. 56
If anything, of course, the decree made the Jewish communities in Pal-
estine even more hostile to Roman rule and will have ensured, if not
co-operation, then at least neutrality in the struggle against the Muslim
invaders.
One further event of significance deserves mention, if only because of the
consequences for the state after Heraclius' death and the attitude of later
Byzantine writers to him: his marriage to his niece Martina. Heraclius' first
wife, Eudocia, died on 13 August in the year 612 and was laid to rest in the
Church of the Holy Apostles. 57 Shortly afterwards, the emperor decided to
marry his niece, Martina. The Church clearly saw this marriage as con-
trary to canon law, and the patriarch Sergius tried to convince the
emperor that his actions would also make him very unpopular. Heraclius
replied politely, we are told, that Sergius was correct and had done his
duty; but that he could leave the matter in the emperor's hands
thenceforth. The marriage went ahead, indeed with the patriarch's bless-
ing: 58 but although the temporary disagreement between Heraclius and
Sergius was quickly forgotten in the troubles that followed - the emperor
suffered a major military defeat in 613 at Persian hands: and in 614
Jerusalem fell and the Holy Cross was carried off to Persia - it remained a
point of contention among both clergy and population, especially in
Constantinople, where Martina was apparently very unpopular. 5 9
61 See the text of Pope John VI's letter to Constantine, Mansi X, 682-6, and Van Dieten.
Geschichte der Patriarchen, pp. 63-4 and note 22; and the strongly anti-monophysite order
of the emperor to the bishops and exarch of Carthage in response to their request to deal
with the refugee nuns spreading monophysite ideas in the exarchate. See DOlger. Regesten,
no. 222: Brehier and Aigrain, pp. 1600'.; Van Dieten, Geschichte der Patriarchen, pp. 67fT.:
Stratos, Byzantium in the Seventh Century. vol. U, pp. 176-85: Ostrogorsky, Geschichte,
p. 94.
62 See Van Dieten, Geschichte der Patriarchen. pp. 63-8: Brehier and Aigrain. pp. 143-4.
63 Van Dieten, Geschichte der Patriarchen, pp. 68-9 and note 37: Stratos, Byzantium in the
Seventh Century, vol. Ill. pp. 59fT.
64 See Van Dieten, Geschichte der Patriarchen, pp. 70-5 for a summary; and chapter 2 above,
pp. 49fT.
306 Byzantium in the seventh century
&s DOlger, Regesten, no. 221: Brehier and Aigrain, pp. 162£.: Van Dieten, Geschichu der
Patriarchen, pp. 76f.
&& Van Dieten, Geschichte der Patriarchen, pp. 80--2.
67 Ibid., pp. 82-7: Cameron, 'Byzantine Africa', 56fT.
The imperial Church and the politics of authority 30 7
in the debate of 645; and it was ~faximus who was the guiding hand
behind the convoking of the Lateran synod of 649. 68
As a result of the defeat of Pyrrhus, the African Church held a number of
local synods in the following year, all of which condemned monotheletism.
The bishops ofByzacena, Numidia and Mauretania directed two letters, via
Rome, to Constantinople, one to the patriarch and one to the emperor,
appealing to the latter to invoke his imperial authority and to compel Paul
to return to orthodoxy. 69 The degree of suspicion of the African Church in
Constantinople- clearly expressed in letters of Victor, bishop of Carthage,
and of other African bishops to Rome - was, of course, greatly exacerbated
by the exarch Gregory's rebellion, which began soon after Maximus'
victory over Pyrrhus. 70 The logic of Gregory's action is not entirely clear,
but it is clearly connected with the results for the African Church and
population of the defeat of Pyrrhus, the reaffirmation of orthodoxy, and the
conflicting options open to him: either to follow his Constantinopolitan
orders and enforce imperial policy - that would have entailed a massive
persecution and political repression, which might well have seemed an
impossible task- or to maintain his position and authority (and his popu-
larity), throw in his lot with the orthodox sentiments of the greater part of
the population and all the episcopate and, by refusing to follow orders, call
down upon himself the wrath of the imperial government. Gregory decided
evidently on the latter course, pre-empting the court's response by formally
stating his rejection of the rule of the Emperor Constans. 71
Gregory's death in battle with the Arabs in 647 brought a dramatic
change in the situation. Pyrrhus - who had been anathematised by Paul
following his rejection of monotheletism and who had perhaps hoped for a
patriarchal throne in Carthage beside the pretender Gregory 72 - now
changed his position once more, returned to monotheletism and claimed
that his 'conversion' had been obtained under duress. Pope Theodore
68 See Cameron, 'Byzantine Africa', 56f.: Haldon, 'Ideology and social change'. 173 and note
85; Stratos, Byzantium in the Seventh Century, vol. Ill. pp. 60f. For the Lateran council, see
the extensive works ofR. Riedinger, listed in Winkelmann, Die Quellen, 538. On Maximus
himself. see esp. J.M. Garrigues. Ma:rime le confesseur. La chariti, avenir divin de l'homme
(Paris 19 7 6 ), esp. pp. 3 5-7 5 for a detailed biography: and the papers in F. Heinzer and
Chr. Schonborn, Ma:rimus Confessor. Actes du Symposium sur Maxime le Confesseur.
Fribourg 2-5 Sept. 1980 (Fribourg 1982).
69 See Vita Maximi Confessoris, 848: Theophanes, 3 3 7. 8-10: Cameron, 'Byzantine Africa·,
57: Stratos, Byzantium in the Seventh Century, vol. Ill, pp. 61-2.
70 See the literature and discussion in Van Dieten. Geschichte der Patriarchen, pp. 85-7. It is
uncertain whether the letters were sent, however. although the pope, Theodore, certainly
used them in his own letter to the patriarch Paul in 647. See below.
71 Cf. Cameron, 'Byzantine Africa', 57f.: Stratos. Byzantium in the Seventh Century, vol. Ill.
pp. 62-7; Ostrogorsky. Geschicht.e, pp. 98f.
72 Van Dieten, Geschichte der Patriarchen, pp. 87: 84-5.
308 Byzantium in the seventh century
their titles, senators and others would lose their lands, yet others would be
chastised with corporal punishment and with imprisonment. And since the
Typos forbade all debate, ordering simply that the orthodox should observe
the canons of the first five ecumenical councils - thus leaving the question
of the number of wills and energies open - the Ekthesis was also removed,
thus complying with one of the earlier demands of the Roman primate. 76
The Roman response, suggested and encouraged by Maximus, was not
long in coming. 77 Pope Theodore commissioned the fiercely orthodox
Stephen of Dor, spiritual comrade of Sophronius of Jerusalem, to extract a
confession of faith from the clergy of Palestine. Those who refused to
co-operate or remained monothelete were to be deposed. Such action was,
of course, a direct interference in the affairs of the eastern patriarchates
and a direct challenge to imperial policy, and resulted partly from the
appeal of the monothelete Sergius of Joppa, who had succeeded Sophro-
nius as patriarch of Jerusalem, together with the bishops whom he had
appointed, to the patriarch Paul for confirmation of their appointments. 78
The imperial authorities responded by depriving the papal emissaries of
their priestly titles and position, punishing them physically and exiling
them from Constantinople. 79 The new Pope Martin - elected on 5 July
649, but without imperial confirmation - held a synod in the Lateran
palace, a synod which was in fact organised by and dominated by
Maximus and Stephen of Dor and their associates. The originators of
monotheletism - Theodore of Pharan, Cyrus of Alexandria, the patriarchs
Sergius, Pyrrhus and Paul, together with the Ekthesis of Heraclius and the
Typos of Constans, were all anathematised. The acts of the council, again
written up by Maximus and his associates, were then sent to Constans,
together with a letter urging him once more to compel his patriarch to
return to orthodoxy. The emperor himself, along with his grandfather
Heraclius, was carefully excluded from the anathematisations and the
condemnations, almost certainly a political gesture rather than a reflection
of real sentiment. 80
The events that followed are well known. The new exarch of Ravenna,
76 See the summary of Van Dieten, Geschichte der Patriarchen, pp. 93-4: Stratos, Byzantium in
the Seventh Century, vol. Ill. pp. 9 SIT.
77 It is not clear from the sources whether Pope Theodore or his successor Martin received
the Typos. Theodore died on 13 May 649. and since Martin's accession was never
confirmed by the emperor. it is probable that the document arrived in time for Theodore to
see it. See Van Dieten. Geschichte der Patriarchen, pp. 92-3 and note 73.
78 Lateran, 46.1sq. For Sergius of Joppa, see Van Dieten, Geschichte der Patriarchen, p. 50.
79 Cf. Lateran, 18.8-31: Liber Pontificalis. 336: Hypomnesticum, 70 (Greek version) and 196A
(Latin version).
8 ° For the text. see Riedinger, Lateran. See Van Dieten, Geschichte der Patriarchen, pp. 971T.:
Haldon, 'Ideology and social change', 174 and note 88: Stratos. Byzantium in the Seventh
Century, vol. Ill, pp. 98-104: Ostrogorsky. Geschichte, p. 99.
310 Byzantium in the seventh century
Olympius, had already been ordered to arrest the pope, who had ascended
the papal throne without imperial ratification, and to have the Typos read
out in all the churches of Italy. Instead. Olympius came to an arrangement
with Martin and ruled independently. ignoring his orders, just as Gregory
had done in Africa. Only with the death of Olympius in 652 was the
emperor able, through the new exarch, Theodore Calliopas, to rectify the
situation. 81 Martin was arrested by Calliopas with contingents of the
Ravenna army and taken to Constantinople where he was tried, initially
condemned to death for high treason, then to exile. He died in Cherson on
16 September 655. Maximus was also arrested and taken to Constantin-
ople. His trial, banishment, second trial or interrogation, followed by his
mutilation and exile - he died eventually in Lazica in 662 82 - accurately
reflects the anger at his obstinate and intellectually sharp defence of his
position and also the main issue at stake: imperial authority. Indeed, it is
interesting to observe how, throughout the debate, and from the earliest
days of the conflict in 645/6 through to the final execution of Maximus'
punishment, the government and Constans were eager to come to a
peaceful compromise, an arrangement that would involve nothing more
than the end of the debate, rather than any admission of fault on the part of
either Pope Theodore or his successor Martin, or of Maximus. In the last
resort, and with the secular demands of state politics firmly in view, the
defeat of the anti-monotheletes was, perhaps, a foregone conclusion. The
emperor had brutally reasserted imperial rights to be directly and centrally
involved in both matters of faith, in the calling of synods and in the
ratification of higher ecclesiastical appointments. This success, however,
was bought at the cost of the alienation, even if only temporary, of Africa,
which remained stubbornly anti-monothelete and, as its later history
illustrates, unable or unwilling to offer any dynamic opposition - political
or cultural - to the arrival of Islam. 8 3
si Ostrogorsky. Geschichte. pp. 99-100: Haldon. 'Ideology and social change', 182 and note
123: Stratos. Byzantium in the Seventh Century. vol. lli, pp. 105-11. There is some
numismatic evidence to suggest that Martin did approve and bless Olympius' rebellion: a
silver coin struck in the mint of Rome and dated to the years 651-2 by those who have
examined it bears an effigy which is not that of Constans n and is probably to be identified
with Olympius. See M.D. O'Hara, 'A find of Byzantine silver from the mint of Rome for the
period A.D. 641-752', Swiss Numismatic Review 65 (1985), see no. 7, type 3. and
'Numismatic evidence for the treason of Pope Martin (A.D. 649-654)'. in Fourteenth
Annual Byzantine Studies Conference, Abstracts of Papers (Houston, Texas 1988), 53.
82 See Van Dieten, Geschichteder Patriarchen. p. 101; Ostrogorsky, Geschichte, p. 100; Brehier
and Aigrain. pp. 170tT.; Stratos, Byzantium in the Seventh Century. vol. m. pp. 112-25.
83 See Brehier and Aigrain, ibid.; Van Dieten. Geschichte der Patriarchen, pp. 101f. and 107ff.:
Haldon, 'Ideology and social change', 173-7: Cameron, 'Byzantine Africa', 57f.; on the
question of synods and their legitimacy, see also, in addition to the literature cited by these
authorities. V. Peri. 'I concili ecumenici come struttura portante della gerarchia ecclesia-
stica'. in 17th International Byzantine QJngress, Major Papers. pp. 59-81. For a summary of
The imperial Church and the politics of authority 311
Before Maximus was exiled, however, the emperor had effectively won
the battle. On 27 December 653, the patriarch Paul died and, after a lively
debate as to his suitability, in which the emperor even called the captive
Pope Martin as a character witness. Pyrrhus was elected for the second
time to the patriarchal throne, although he died shortly after - in June of
654 -having achieved very little. 84 His successor, Peter, presided over the
provisional reconciliation of Rome and Constantinople. Martin was in exile
and, under pressure from the exarch, a new pope was elected in Rome,
Eugenius I, whose position was confirmed in 655. The patriarch Peter
presented the papal emissaries with a compromise formula, a formula
which in essence resolved nothing, using an ambiguous terminology
which left both the traditionalist and monothelete positions open. The
apocrisiaries accepted it without demur. 85 The Typos remained in force,
although its ban on discussion now became less significant: but in spite of
these developments, Maximus still refused to admit that the emperor had
any jurisdiction in the debate. Indeed, his disciples were able to inform the
Roman Church of events in Constantinople, with the result that the
patriarch Peter's synodika- his formal announcement of appointment and
request for recognition - were rejected. Pope Eugenius was clearly under
local pressure to conform with this turn of events. 86 On Eugenius' death,
however, his successor Vitalian (657-72) recognised Peter and sent his
own declaration of faith, in which he adopted as open and neutral a
position as possible. Relations seemed to be restored, in spite of the ongoing
difficulties with Maximus and his supporters. 87 And in 658, Constans
formally renewed the privileges of the Roman Church in recognition of
Vitalian's co-operative and reconciliatory stance. 88
Maximus continued to maintain his position, however, in spite of these
developments in the situation and, although from the emperor's point of
view the situation was now under control, Maximus still constituted a
vocal and dangerous source of opposition to imperial authority. In 662,
finally, he and his disciples were brought back from exile in Thrace to the
capital, where they were mutilated and exiled to distant Lazica. The great
the conflict between Rome and Constantinople, see Herrin, Formation of Christendom.
pp. 255-9.
84 See Theophanes, 351.23-4: Nicephorus. Chron., 118.17: Grumel. Regestes. vol. I.
no. 194: Van Dieten, Geschichte der Patriarchen, pp. 104-5.
85 Van Dieten. Geschichte der Patriarchen. pp. 106fT.
86 Van Dieten, Geschichte der Patriarchen~ pp. 107, note 6 and pp. 108-9: Stratos. Byzantium
in the Seventh Century, vol. Ill. pp. 126-8. Cf. Grumel. Regestes, vol. I. no. 305: Liber
Pontijicalis I, 341.
87 Stratos, Byzantium in the Seventh Century, vol. Ill. pp. 126-8; Van Dieten. Geschichte der
Patriarchen, pp. 112-14: cf. Mansi XI. 2000, for Vitalian's name being added to the
Diptychs at Constantinople.
88 DOlger, Regesten. no. 229.
312 Byzantium in the seventh century
opponent of the emperor died in the same year. 89 His second 'trial' and
exile, followed by his death, marked the end of the 'public' controversy
over imperial and official Church rnonotheletism in the Eastern empire.
The debate and its political ramifications illustrate the struggle conducted
at an ideological level over the locus of authority - both in secular and
theological respects. But, although this conflict took centre stage, it was by
no means the only instance during the reign of Constans where the
question of the nature and extent of imperial authority was raised.
Armenia, which had been predominantly monophysite since about 500,
had been officially united with the imperial Church since an agreement of
union made in 571: and in 591, as Maurice received further districts from
~e grateful Chosroes II, a Chalcedonian Catholicate was established in the
Byzantine region of the country, paralleled on Persian territory by a
monophysite Catholicate. In 633 at the synod of Theodosioupolis
(Erzerum), Heraclius was able to win the Armenian Church over to his
monenergite formula. But there was powerful opposition to this develop-
ment. In 648/9, the patriarch Paul II and the emperor tried to reaffirm the
union with the Armenian Church, partly inspired by the complaints of the
non-Armenian soldiers in the Armenian districts of the empire that the
local monophysite population and its leaders excluded them from commu-
nion and treated them as heretics. Constans and Paul ordered the formal
union of the Churches, and the acceptance by the Armenians of both the
Tome of Leo and the doctrine of Chalcedon. 90 In reply, the Armenian
Church returned a clear statement of its monophysite faith at the synod of
Dvin. Constans was only able to assert his authority by marching with a
large army into Armenian territory and forcing acceptance of his policy, in
653. Needless to say, such an agreement remained superficial in the
extreme, and monophysitism continued to be the creed of the Armenian
Church. 91
Constans' treatment of Maximus and his followers, however, had poli-
tical repercussions for the emperor and his policies. It seems clear from the
sources that he was not a popular ruler in Constantinople, especially after
his brother Theodosius was compelled to enter the clergy: and it is not
unlikely that his decision to transfer the seat of government to the West -
Rome or Sicily - was at least in part stimulated by this atmosphere. 92
While in the West, the most important feature of his relations with the
89 See Brehier and Aigrain, pp. 173-5; Van Dieten. Geschichte der Patriarchen, p. 114.
9o DOiger. Regesten. no. 227. For the background. see Frend. The Rise of the Monophysite
Movement. pp. 308-15: R. Grousset. Histoire de l'Armenie des origines a 1071 (Paris 194 7).
pp. 234ff. and 298-302; Brehier and Aigrain, pp. 116f.
91 See Sebeos, 112fT. and 134fT.: Van Dieten, Geschichte der Patriarchen, pp. 100f.; Brehier
and Aigrain. pp. 15 7-60.
92 Brehier and Aigrain. pp. 175 and 178f.; Van Dieten. Geschichte der Patriarchen. p. 115.
The imperial Church and the politics of authority 313
93 See DOiger, Regesten, no. 233: and esp. T.S. Brown. 'The Church of Ravenna and the
imperial administration in the seventh century'. EHR 94 (1979). 1-28, see 12fT. and
16fT.: Guillou. Regionalisme, pp. 167fT. and 206-7.
94 Brown. 'The Church of Ravenna', 17-20.
95 DOlger, Regesten, nos. 237 and 238: Brown. 'The Church of Ravenna', 20ff.: Guillou.
Regionalisme, pp. 177f.
314 Byzantium in the stvtnth century
arranged (in 678), 96 Constantine turned to the question of the relationship
between Rome and Constantinople. Although the names of neither of the
Popes Adeodatus (672-6) or Donus (676-8), the successors of Vitalian,
had been entered in the Diptychs at Constantinople, relations seem never-
theless to have been less hostile than during the first half of Constans' reign.
Hostility between Ravenna and Rome persisted until the deaths of the two
main protagonists, Pope Vitalian himself (in 672) and archbishop Maurus
(in 673), when the tension relaxed somewhat. The monothelete patriarch
Theodore, however, who was elected in August 677, together with the
patriarch of Antioch, Makarios (also a firm monothelete), requested that
the emperor permit the erasure of the name of Pope Vitalian also from the
Dlptychs. 97 Constantlne was not prepared to condone this step, however,
the more so since, as he states in his letter to the pope, Vitalian had
supported him against the usurper Mzez in 668. In this letter, addressed to
Donus in 678, but delivered to the latter's successor Agathon, the emperor
asked the pope to convene local councils to debate the key question of the
relationship of the one or two wills and energies to the pronouncements of
the Fathers of the Church and the five ecumenical councils. He represented
the debate as one over terminological differences between two equally
orthodox schools of thought. And while he intimated that an ecumenical
council would be desirable, it was Important first to debate the matter
thoroughly, and he requested that the pope send representatives from
Rome and the Western Churches to Constantinople to discuss the whole
matter thoroughly. 98 Interestingly, Constantine admitted that an imperial
edict would not itself resolve either the problem or end the debate, a
marked change from the point of view of his predecessors, from Zeno on up
to Constans 11. 99
The pope took some time to consider this approach: and in doing so he
wrote to all the metropolitans of the Western Church, asking them to
convoke local councils and transmit their conclusions to him. Some sent
their responses directly to the emperor. 100 But by Baster of the year 680,
the Western Church had sent its replies to Rome and, following a local
meeting in Rome itself, the pope sent two letters to Constantinople, one to
the emperor and another, shorter letter, containing a formal profession of
uu Mansi. XI. 234-86: Riedinger. 52-120 (to the emperor): and 286-315: Riedinger,
122-160. See Brehier and Aigrain. p. 18 5: Van Dieten. Geschi.chu ckr Patriarchen. pp. 13 2-4.
102 See Theophanes, 354.24: 355.1-4; and Brehier and Algraln, p. 185: Van Dieten.
Stratos. Byzantium In the Seventh Cer1tury, vol. IV pp. 12311.: Ostrogorsky, Geschichte.
pp. 106(.
105 Mansi. XI. 213A-8. 216C. 383C and 5530 (Riedinger,
20.20-22.6; 24.7ff.: 270.4Cf.;
578.12lT.). Fortheconjess1oof Makarios, see ibid., 349-59: Riedinger. 216.11-230.26.
316 Byzantium In the seventh century
arrived that Leo 11 had succeeded him, the letter was readdressed. Follow~
ing tradition, an imperial edict was then drawn up and exhibited in the
Hagla Sophia, in which the emperor confirmed the decisions reached
during the council and threatened punishment on those who refused to
conform. 106 Similarly, a iussio was issued to all the dioceses of the empire
informing them in turn of the decisions of the council.
The sixth council thus sounded the death-knell for imperial monothele-
tism in the eastern empire, although it was to be briefly and unsuccessfully
revived again under Philippicus Bardanes (711-13). It also marked the
reconciliation of Eastern and Western Churches, although at the expense
of Constantlnopolitan claims to equality with Rome - the condemnation of
the erring patriarchs by name meant as much. It signified in addition,
however, the end of the unified Christian world, for the monophyslte
communities of the lost provinces were not even considered in the council's
deliberations. This reflects primarily, of course, the fact that these mono-
physite communities were outside the empire. The questions which the
sixth council was assembled to resolve were all questions which concerned
the Christian communities still under Christian political authority. But the
sixth council marks a break with the past, and at the same time the
beginnings of a more emphatically introverted political-theological culture
and Ideological consensus. The East was no longer as important as it had
been. 107 And the monophysites themselves regarded Constantine IV as
having been bought by the papacy and as having abandoned his own
convictions. Whether this later comment has any value is difficult to say,
but there must be little doubt that the monophysite communities in the lost
Eastern provinces can have had little sympathy with their Western
brethren after this time.I os
Constantine continued his policy of reconciliation with Rome at the
expense of Ravenna, too. In 681 he ordered a reduction in the rate of
assessment of the basic taxes on the papal patrimonlallands in both Sicily
and Calabria: 109 and in 682/3 he placed the see of Ravenna once more
106 Brehler and Aigrain, pp. 189-90: Van Dleten, Geschlchte der Patrlarchen, pp. 141-3. For
Dieten. Geschlchte •r
the letter to the pope, see Mansi XI. 683-8: Riedinger, 830.4-5 and the comments of Van
Patriarchm. p. 143 and note 53: see also DOlger. Rtgtsten. no. 247:
Grumel, Regestes. vol. I. no. 312. For the imperial edict, DOlger. Regesttn. no. 24 5: and for the
coundl and its slgniftcance, see Herrin. 'Dit Pomuzt1on of Christmdom, pp. 277-80, who sare.es
in particular the innovative procedures adopted to verify the texts read to the meetings. a
major development in the intellectual and political history oC the ChW'Ch.
101 See Wlnkelmann's comment, Dle ostlichen Klrchen, pp. 111-12.
1os See Michael Syr.. vol. 11. 447-8 and 457. For the later history of these communities. see
Brehler and Aigraln, pp. 479fT.
1o9 OOiger, Regestetl, no. 250.
The imperial Church and the politics of authority 317
under papal jurlsdlction. 110 On his death In 685 there was once again
religious unity across the Christian world, although the continued exist-
ence of strong monophysite communities, as well as monothelete commu-
nities in the lands under Muslim political control, remained an important
factor in the political and ecclesiastical make-up of the cultures of the east
Mediterranean world.
11o DOiger. Regesten, no. 251: Brown, 'The Church of Ravenna' above, 22f.: Guillou, Riglo-
nallsrne, pp. 207-8: Herrln, Fornratlon of Chrlsundmn. pp. 280-2.
Ill Text: Mansi XI. 73 7-8: Rledlnger. 886t: See DOlger.Rlgatm, no;254: Brebier and Algrain.
pp. 19 2-3: Van Dleten. GtschJchte tkr PatriiJrchen, pp. 146([.
112 Cf. Lfber Pontljfcalls, I 37211'.: Stratos, Byzantlurn In the Seventh Century, vol. V, pp. 450'.
318 Byzantium in the seventh century
on to regard the disciplinary canons of the ecumenical councils and the
local synods of the Eastern Church only (with the exception of those of the
council of Carthage) as valid. The remaining one hundred canons of the
Quinisext deal exclusively with questions of clerical discipline and the
regulation of the Christian communities, and they make clear the fact that,
in spite of the numerous divergences between Eastern and Western
Churches, this council assumed that it was acting for the whole Christian
community - that it was ecumenical - and that it could, therefore, impose
'Byzantine' practice on the West, on the monophysite communities of the
Bast and upon Armenia. Roman practice, indeed, was openly criticised ln
the acts and canons themselves. 113 Quite apart from this, canon 36
asserted the equivalence of Rome and Constantinople in the ecclesiastical
hierarchy, 114 a ruling which demonstrates quite clearly the difference
between the policies of Justinian 11 and those of his father. The latter
worked for reconciliation and, as we have seen. was regarded in some
circles as having betrayed the interests of the Bastern Church to Rome.
Justinian. partly to reassert his authority on the Byzantine Church, partly,
no doubt, out of a genuine conviction, defended the interests of Constantin-
ople and thus, inevitably, came into conflict with Rome. 11 5
The Roman response can hardly have come as a surprise. Pope Sergius,
who succeeded in 68 7 after the death of Conon, repudiated the signatures
of the papal legates, when he received his own copy of the canons, and
refused to sign his own name. He protested that a number of the canons
directly contradicted established Roman practice and traditions, in some
cases even in the Bast. He refused likewise to recognise the claims of the
Quinlsext for the apostoliclty of a number of canons from earlier synods:
and he objected especially to canons 3 and 13 relative to the marriage of
the clergy (which fixed less severe penalities for clerics involved in relation-
ships within the prohibited degrees of affinity and which ordered clerics
who were married to remain with their wives if they were of the rank of
deacon or priest- conflicting with Roman practice, by which priests had to
renounce their wives before entering the diaconate).
111 For the canons of the Qulnlsext, see Mansl, XI, 921-1006. The acts of the council have
not survived, only the concluding address to the emperor, the signatures of those present,
and the canons themselves. Por discussion, see Wlnkelmann. Die ostllchtn Klrchtn,
p. 113: Van Dleten, Geschlchu dtr Patrlarchen, pp. 153-4: Brehler and Algraln,
pp. 195-6, 474f. and 485-8: and esp. V. Laurent, 'L'reuvre canonlque du conclle In
TruUo (691-692), ~ prlmalredu droit de l'egllse orlentale', RBB 23 (1965), 7-41. For
the most modern analysis, see Ohme, Das CmlclUu1n Qul1dsextunr u11d sel11e Blsdro/sllstL
nt Mansi, XI. 959. -
11 s For a detailed treatment of subsequent events and Justinian's relationship with the
papacy, seeP. Gorres, 'Justinian 11. und das romlsche Papsttum', BZ 17 (1908), 440-50:
also J.D. Breckenrldge, 'Bvldence for the nature of the relations between Pope John VII
and the Byzantine emperor Justinian U', BZ 65 (1972), 364-74: Stratos. ByzanUum In
The imperial Church and the politics of authority 319
the Seventh Century, vol. V, pp. 48-53: Ostrogorsky. Geschichte, p. 116; Henin, Formation
of Christendom, pp. 284-7: and see Grumel, Regestes, vol. I. no. 317.
116 DOiger, Regesten, no. 259: Stratos, Byzantium in the Seventh Century, vol. V, pp. 53-6:
Ostrogorsky, Geschichte, pp.116-17.
117 Brehier and Aigrain, p. 197: Brown, ·rhe Church of Ravenna' 25; Van Dieten, Geschichte
der Patriarchen, pp. 153-5: Ostrogorsky, Geschichte, pp. 116-17; Guillou, Regionalisme,
pp. 209-11.
118 DOiger. Regesten, nos. 255 and 256. 119 DOlger, Regesten, no. 264.
320 Byzantium in the seventh century
route at Naples, Palermo, Reggio and Otranto (where the winter was
spent), before proceeding to Chios and on to Constantinople. He met the
emperor at Nicomedia in 711, and it seems that a compromise formula
was worked out. Later evidence suggests that some fifty of the 102 canons
of the Quinisext were formally accepted by the Western delegation. After
state receptions and a mass, at which the pope celebrated the communion,
he left in October 711 for Rome once more. 120 Shortly after, Justinian was
deposed and killed by the rebels under Philippicus Bardanes.
While his second reign was marked by an eccentricity which has earned
him a certain notoriety among historians, 121 the policies he pursued,
especially in the period of his first reign from 685 to 695 demonstrate an
emphasis on the assertion of his authority as emperor not over the details
of dogma, but over the general welfare and direction of the Church,
reinforced by the emphasis in the imperial ideology on his position as pious
defender of the faith. 122 His relations with the Church, as far as the limited
evidence suggests, were those of a protector and patron- the edict of 688
in favour of the church of St Demetrius in Thessaloniki is a good illustra-
tion.123 His relations with the patriarch Callinicus, in contrast, were
stormy, primarily on the grounds of Callinicus' efforts to hold the emperor
back from his cruel persecutions of the last years of his first reign. But
Justinian was to let nothing stand in his way, and when the patriarch
attempted to change his mind with regard to the demolition of a church,
which was to make way for a new, imperial construction, Justinian was
unmoved. 124
Justinian's deposition, and the short rule of the Armenian Philippicus
Bardanes, brought with it a major shift, albeit of short duration, in imperial
ecclesiastical policy. The new emperor announced his rejection of the acts
of the sixth council even before entering the city and ordered both the
removal of the image of that council from the palace precincts (before he
would enter) and the restoration to the Diptychs of the patriarch Sergius
and the other Churchmen condemned for their espousal and promotion of
120 Brehier and Aigrain, pp. 198-200: Van Dieten. Geschichtl der Patriarchen, pp. 161fT. See
DOlger, Regesten, nos. 266-9 (note 269, for October 711, by which the emperor renews
all the privileges of the Roman Church). For the fifty acceptable canons, see the
ninth-century account of Anastasius Bibliothecarius, in Mansi Xn. 982: and for the
background and sequence of events, Stratos, Byzantium in the Seventh Century, vol. V,
pp. 131-5: Herrin, Formation of Christendom, pp. 287-9.
121 Although attempts have been made to redeem his reputation: see C. Head, 'Towards a
reinterpretation of the second reign of Justinian n: 70 5-711 ', B 40 ( 19 70). 14-3 2.
122 J.D. Breckenridge, The Numismatic Iconography of Justinian II (A.D. 685-695, 705-711)
(New York 1959), esp. pp. 92f. For the general context, see Haldon, 'Ideology and social
change', 189: also Van Dieten, Geschichtl der Patriarchen, p. 146 and note 2.
123 DOlger, Regesten. no. 258.
124 Van Dieten, Geschichte der Patriarchen, pp. 157f.: see Theophanes, 367.22sq.
The imperial Church and the politics of authority 321
Armenia remained under Arab suzerainty, and although contacts with the
empire were never severed, the synod of Mantzikert of 719 - which
ordered the expulsion of all Chalcedonians from Armenia - meant the end
of any Byzantine pretensions in the region. Philippicus' monotheletism,
given his Armenian, and possibly monophysite, background, seems to
have been a forlorn attempt to bring the Armenians back into the political
orbit of the empire.12s
In the second place, Philippicus may have hoped that a return to the
policies of Constans II would both enhance his own authority within the
empire and regain divine support - the defeats of the previous years, the
final loss of North Africa after 698, the increasing power of the Bulgars, all
had a profound effect on contemporaries: and this policy may well have
been seen as one potential way of reversing the process. 129 In the event, of
course, it was a failure. The papacy predictably refused to condone the shift,
rejecting both the imperial edict and Philippicus' portrait, and declaring
him a heretic. At the news of the destruction of the icon of the sixth council,
the clergy and population of Rome paraded all six conciliar images in
affirmation of their orthodoxy . 130 The Bulgars, on the pretext of avenging
their erstwhile ally Justinian, invaded Thrace and met with little or no
opposition. Even within the army Philippicus seems to have had little real
support, although whether as a result of his innovation in religious policy
or his failures as emperor generally is unclear, and in 713 he was deposed
by officers and soldiers of the Opsikion army based in Thrace. 131 His
successor, the imperial secretary Artemius, took the imperial name Anas-
tasius II and immediately reversed Philippicus' policies. The image of the
sixth council was restored to its position: the pope was apprised of the new
emperor's orthodoxy and his adherence to the sixth council's decisions:
while the patriarch John VI now sent an explanatory letter to the pope,
detailing his reasons for going along with the previous emperor's religious
policies. John died in the summer of 715 and was succeeded by Germanus
of Cyzicus who, having repudiated monotheletism, was supported by the
papal legate in the election to the patriarchal throne. 1 3 2
Anastasius himself did not survive John by more than a few weeks.
Within a few months a mutiny of naval and land units compromised his
12s Justinian's edict: DOlger, Regesten, no. 272 (wrongly ascribed to Philippicus); J. Laurent,
L'Armenie entre Byzance et l'lslam depuis la conquite arabe jusqu' en 886 (Paris 1919),
pp. 202-6: Brehier and Aigrain, pp. 203-4; Grousset, Histoire de l'.Armenie, pp. 307-15.
129 See Haldon, 'Ideology and social change', 186-9.
130 Brehier and Aigr:ain, p. 207: Ostrogorsky, Geschichte. pp. 127-8: Van Dieten, Geschichte
der Patriarchen, pp. 170-1.
111 See chapter 2, above.
132 Brehier and Aigrain, p. 208; Van Dieten, Geschichte der Patriarchen, pp. 172f.; DOlger,
Regesten, no. 2 73.
The imperial Church and the politics of authority 323
Religion and belief are not, of course, synonymous. In this chapter, I want
to look at the 'public' and the 'official' aspects of seventh-century religious
and ideological history, rather than at the individual psychology of belief
in the early medieval world of the Eastern Roman empire. But since the
latter subject is, in several ways, the prerequisite for an understanding of
the world as it was perceived and understood by people of this period, a few
words on the assumptions which inform my approach are in order.
Although several scholars have approached this problem, of the Byzan-
tine mentaliti, at a general level, their work has on the whole been
descriptive rather than analytic. That is to say, Byzantinists have generally
tended towards a presentation of the data from the sources on the forms of
belief and its appearance - the specific ideas which together form the
imperial ideology, or orthodoxy, or attitudes to the everyday. In the
process, the question of the actual generation and reproduction of ideas in
their social-psychological context tends to be forgotten. More particularly,
the question of the relationship between what people think (as this is
presented at different levels in our sources, through histories, hagiogra-
phies, letters and so on), about both themselves and about their per-
ceptions of the world and how they act upon that world, how those
perceptions inform the possibilities open to them in respect of their social
existence has been neglected. There is a dialectical relationship here, of
course, between these two forms of human social praxis, and it is through
the examination of that dialectical relationship - by relating contexts to
effects - that the historian can best approach the whole problem of causal
relationships.
The key question is, quite simply: what enabled Byzantines in the period
with which we are concerned to think and act as they did? I have
324
Religion and belief 325
I For useful descriptive surveys of the forms of orthodox Byzantine beliefs. see Beck, Das
byzantinische ]ahrtausend, pp. 257-89. 'Die Byzantiner und ihr Jenseits', SBB (Munich
1979). Heft 6, and 'Orthodoxie und Alltag', in Bv(avr,ov. "Aq;,i{XIJIJ.a crrov "Av8pia N.
~TpaTo (2 vols., Athens 1986), vol. 11, pp. 329-46. See also A. Kaidan and G. Constable,
People and Power in Byzantium (Washington D.C. 1982), esp. pp. 76fT.: and the useful
general survey by P. Kawerau, Das Christentum im ostromisch-byzantinischen Reich bis zur
osmanisch-tiirkischen Eroberung Konstilntinopels. CSCO, vol. 441. Subsidia 64 (Ostkirchenge-
schichte, II) (Louvain 1982). See also C. Mango, Byzantium: The Empire of New Rome, esp.
pp. 151-217.
I have outlined my own approach in greater detail in 'Ideology and social change', esp.
14 5-6 and 150-3, with literature. On the relationship between cognition and practice, see
in particular R. Bhaskar. 'Emergence, explanation and emancipation', in Explaining Human
Behavior: Consciousness, Human Action and Social Structure, ed. P.F. Secord (Beverly Hills,
Calif. 1982), 275-310, esp. 278-88; D.-H. Ruben, Marxism and Materialism: A Study in
Marxist Theory of Knowledge (Brighton 1979), pp. 95fT.: T.W. GofT, Marx and Mead: Contri-
bution to a Sociology of Knowledge (London 1980). On the construction of roles and social
realities, see A. Schiitz, Der sinnhafte Aujbau der sozialen Welt (Vienna 1960); P. Berger and
Th. Luckmann, The Social Construction of Reality (Harmondsworth 1967), pp. 65-70 and
11OfT.: and on narrative, see esp. H. Garfinkel. Studies in Ethnomethodology (Englewood
Cliffs. N.J. 1967) (together with the important critique of the work of Schiitz and an
appreciation of Garfinkel by J. Heritage, Garfinkel and Ethnomethodology (Cambridge and
Oxford 1984)): D.Sperber, Rethinking Symbolism (Cambridge 1975), pp.85-149: GofT.
Marx and Mead, pp. 112fT.; and W. Labov and J. Waletzky, 'Narrative analysis: oral versions
of personal experience', in Essays on the Verbal-and Visual Arts, ed. J. Holm (Seattle 1967).
pp.12-44.
Religion and belief 327
Pagan survivals?
The degree to which Christianity had been adopted by the populations of
the territories remaining to the empire in the second half of the seventh
century is still far from clear. While it had been the official religion of the
Roman state since the time of Theodosius I, and while, by the end of the
sixth century at least, non-Christians are treated by both Chalcedonian
and monophysite writers alike as either marginal or backward, it is
nevertheless clear that considerable numbers of people continued to
observe traditional and pre-Christian cult practices, whether this occmred
in a thinly disguised but nevertheless Christian form, in which non-
Christian rituals and practices received a Christian veneer, or whether it
occurred in an overtly pagan form. To some extent, the question is bound
up with the survival of the native - non-Greek - languages of the East
Roman world, particularly in Asia Minor, where it has sometimes been
assumed that the survival of languages such as Phrygian or Galatian was
accompanied also by the survival of pre-Christian cultural traditions and
beliefs. 2 Now it is certainly true that non-Greek languages may have
survived in Asia Minor well into the seventh century; 3 and they existed, of
course, in the Middle Eastern provinces of Syria and Egypt, for example.
But while linguistic differences certainly facilitated a degree of local par-
ticularism, and - in the cases of Syria, Egypt and North Africa - were on
occasion combined with religious differences or disagreements to function
as vehicles for sentiments and actions hostile to the state or to the
Chalcedonian establishment, there is no reason for assuming automatic-
ally that the survival of pre-Hellenistic languages meant also the survival
of pre-Christian religions. 4
The universality of Christianity was the proclaimed reality of the
seventh-century Byzantine world. It was necessarily accompanied, in
theory at least, by the universality of a single orthodoxy, which from the
council of Chalcedon of 4 5 1 was represented in the so-called Chalcedonian
creed of the two natures- and from the middle of the reign of Justinian I by
the neo-Chalcedonian theology based on this and the theological system of
Cyril of Alexandria. The only serious challenge to this, within the frame-
2 See especially K. Holl, 'Das Fortleben der Volkssprachen in Kleinasien in nachchristlicher
Zeit', Hermes 43 (1908), 240-54; criticised by Sp. Vryonis, jr., Decline of Medieval Hellenism,
pp. 45fT. and 59f.: and in Bv(aJJT£vti 1 (1969), 214f.
3 See esp. P.Charanis, 'Ethnic changes', 23fT., although vitiated by an acceptance of Holl's
methodological assumptions. On the survival of Galatian in the first half of the seventh
century, see Timotheus Constantinopolitanus, De Receptione Hereticorum (PG LXXXVI
11-68), 13B-16A: and note J. Gouillard, 'L'Heresie dans I'empire byzantin des origines au
xue siecle', TM 1 (1965), 299-324, see 304, on this text.
4 So Charanis, 'Cultural diversity and the breakdown of Byzantine power in Asia Minor',
DOP 29 (1975), 9-10.
328 Byzantium in the seventh century
work of Christianity, was monophysitism, which eventually lost the battle
within the East Roman state when the provinces that professed it were lost
to the Arabs. But while Christianity in its neo-Chalcedonian or its mono-
physite form was represented as universal, and was certainly taken by the
establishment of Church and state to be so, non-Christian practices and
traditions seem to have survived in a number of places. There is a
difference, of course, between the subsumption of pagan traditions and
practices, and sometimes cult observances, within a Christian framework
and the survival of pagan cults as independent active forms of religiou~
devotion and expression. The former represented a process which was, for
the great mass of the population of the ancient and early medieval world,
an inevitable feature of the transfer of devotion from one - syncretic and
pluralistic - set of religious narratives and symbolic systems, to the
explicitly anti-pluralistic soteriology of Christianity. In the West, the
papacy explicitly permitted the incorporation of Christianised pagan prac-
tices or calendar events as a means of promoting the conversion of the
barbarians. 5 In the East, such practices and traditions constituted an
unacceptable challenge to Christian universality, and an intolerable threat
to its claim to mediate between man and God. They had to be dealt with
accordingly. In the context of the seventh century, the opposition between
these two poles appeared even more starkly.
Pagan cults and practices were thus from the mid-fourth century pros-
cribed. As the imperial Church evolved, along with the increasing identifi-
cation of the state with the Christian oikoumene, so the legal condemnation
and persecution of heathens and 'pagans' increased in intensity, and those
who did not openly proclaim their Christianity were progressively
excluded from the apparatus of the state. The practice of 'magic', of taking
haruspices, and related observances were strictly forbidden. Pagan temples
and sites of worship were destroyed, sometimes being deliberately replaced
with Christian buildings. Officials found guilty of participating in or con-
doning pagan rituals were dismissed, as were Christians who were found
to have lapsed into heathen ways. 6 It was, of course, impossible to
eradicate such ancient traditions in a matter of a few years or even over
two centuries, forming as they did central elements in people's day-to-day
experience and practice and in their narratives of that experience and of
s The policies of the early Church in Kent provide a good example: see Brehier and Aigrain.
p.286.
& For a general survey of the state's response to the traditional religions and cults, see K.L.
Noethlichs, Die gesetzgeberischen Massnahmen der christlichen Kaiser des 4. ]ahrhunderts gegen
Hdretiker, Heiden und ]uden (Cologne 1971 ). For the closing or destruction of temples.
proscription of cult practices and 'magic', see CTh. XVI. 10.4 (a. 354) and XVI. 10.16 (a.
399), with IX. 16.1 and 2. For dismissal of officials and the formal declaration of
Christianity. see CTh. XVI. 7.5 (a. 391).
Religion and belief 329
their place in the world. On the other hand, Christianity was itself a
dynamic social and ideological force, and the repressive measures of the
state, while they certainly promoted the interests of the Church, were not
themselves alone responsible for the long-term development and success of
the new soteriology.
'Pagan' beliefs and practices did, therefore, continue to exist within the
late Roman and Byzantine world well into the seventh century at least,
and in certain more isolated areas probably longer. It is possible to dis-
tinguish two forms of 'survival', however. On the one hand, we have the
conscious efforts of members of the social elite and the literate class of the
state to maintain, somewhat self-consciously, an antique way of life and
system of beliefs - these are chiefly members of the senatorial elite, of the
academies with their ancient traditions, and of the educated urban
bureaucracy. This form certainly disappears during the later sixth and
early seventh centuries. On the other hand, there are the unreflective
values and traditional practices of rural populations, particularly in the
more remote areas of the empire, or in regions where local cults, for
example, retained their social relevance and vigour. 'Pagan' is in this con-
text a misnomer -indeed, the continued use of the term by historians today
reflects a somewhat uncritical, and very unfortunate, because quite mis-
leading adoption of a medieval term of reproach and condemnation.
In the former category belong the Academy of Athens, for example,
closed by Justinian in 529, and the numerous members of the senatorial
and governing elite, many of them purportedly Christians, indicted and
tried for paganism during his reign. 7 Indeed, Justinian carried out a series
of purges, re-enacting and reinforcing the anti-pagan legislation of his
imperial predecessors. 8 Cult centres such as Baalbek/Hierapolis or
7 See A. Cameron, 'The last days of the Academy of Athens'. Proc. Cambridge Philol. Soc. 195
(1969), 7-29, and Malalas, 451. See also P. Lemerle, Le premier humanisme byzantin. Notes
et re marques sur enseignement et culture d Byzance des origines au x~ siecle (Paris 19 71 ),
pp. 69f.: H.Blumenthal, '529 and after: what happened to the Academy?', B 41 (1978),
369-85: and for Justinian's persecution of senators and bureaucrats, see Jones, LRE, vol. I,
pp. 285fT. In 529 he ordered the baptism of all pagans and non-Christians under threat of
sequestration of property and dismissal from office: C] I, 11.1-10. See also the survey of
J. lrmscher, 'Heidnische Kontinuitat im justinianischen Staat', in Seventeenth International
Byzantine Congress, Major Papers, pp. 17-30.
8 Jones, LRE, ibid.; Stein, Bas-Empire, vol. Il, pp. 369fT.; note J. Constantelos, 'Paganism and
the state in the age of Justinian', Catholic History Review 50 (1964), 372-80. This affected
naturally enough many other aspects of traditional elite culture. Classical learning.
inevitably associated in the Christian mind with the pagan past, tended to take an
increasingly background role. Classical patterns of presentation and style retreat before the
forms and modes of scriptural and patristic writing. While this does not necessarily mean
that classical learning was driven out- as has sometimes been argued -it does suggest that
it lost its formerly privileged position. Knowledge of the classics, of Attic style, and of
classical mythology still retained a crucial significance and symbolised an important
element in the self-image of the Byzantine ruling elite. But it had henceforth to be presented
330 Byzantium in the seventh century
Carrhae/Harran attracted a great deal of imperial attention, of course, and
during the sixth century there were a total of seven purges there and in the
surrounding districts. 9 But less well-known centres were also purged, and
the legislation of the sixth century demonstrates clearly enough that
'paganism' was still regarded as a living force in many parts of the empire.
The cult centres at Hellopolis and Harran were still active at the end of the
reign of Maurice: the latter occurs in the early Islamic tradition as a well-
known pagan centre which flourished well into the Islamic period. The
tenacity of such ancient religions makes it clear that legislation and per-
secution alone were rarely enough to destroy such practices and the beliefs
that promoted them. 10 On the other hand, it is clear from the response of
the urban population of cities such as Antioch. who was outraged by the
continued practice of pagan communities, that Christianity was the major-
ity religion and that pagan centres were intensely localised phenomena. 11
'Pagan' practices, as defined by contemporaries, existed on a more
widespread - a more popular - basis in parts of Asia Minor, however. In
542 Justinian commissioned the monophyslte John ofEphesus to carry out
a large-scale missionary expedition in western Asia Minor, as a result of
which tens of thousands, according to contemporary sources, were
brought into the Church. His missionary activity continued throughout
the reign of Justinian and into that of Justin 11. chiefly In the provinces of
Caria. Asia. Lydia and Phrygia. 12 Similar persecutions and missions took
place in other parts of the empire. notably Syria and Egypt. although
aimed usually at specific cult centres, 13 while in the Western provinces
isolated elements of pagan cults continued to exist. although the evidence
is sparse. According to a tenth-century source, the (non-Slav) inhabitants
within an entirely Christian and Christianised context. See Averil Cameron, Agathlas
(Oxford 1970), esp. pp. 890'.: H.-G. Beck, 'Bildung und Theologle im friihmlttelalterllchen
Byzanz', In Polychronlon. Festschrlft F. DOlger (Heldelberg 1966), pp. 72-81: Lemerle,
Prenller hun1anisme, pp. 85-7: Cameron, 'Images of authority', 4 and l7f.: and 'New and
old In Christian literature', in Sewnteenth International Byzantine Ct!ngress. Major Paptrs,
pp.45-58.
' Jones. LRE. vol. 11. p. 943: also Rochow, Die Heidenprousse unter den Kaisern Tlbtrius ll
Konstarrtinos und Maurllclos, pp. 1200. See Evagrius, V, 18 (212-14): John of Ephesus.
1140'.
Jo See Rochow, Dle Heldenprousse, pp. 126fT.: and Catnbrldge History of lslanr, vol. 11: The
Further lslarnic Lar1ds. lslarnlc Society and Civilisation, eds. P.M. Holt, A.K.S. Lambton and
B. Lewls (Cambridge 1970), pp. 786-7, on the Sablans (Sibl'a) of Harran.
11 Rochow, Die Heldenprousse, pp. 128f. See also Herrin, Formation o/Chrlstendorn, pp. 184f.,
for examples of high-ranking pagans In Bdessa and Antloch including, according to John
of Ephesus and Bvagrtus, the patriarch Gregory of Anttoch. See in general F.R. Trombley.
HellmJc ~Uglon and Chrfst1anl%1Jt1on c. 3 70-529 (Religions in the Graeco-Roman World CXV.
~ideo 1993).
12 See Jones, LRB. vol. I. pp. 28Sf. and Rochow, Die Heldenprozesse, pp. 121fT. with sources
and literature.
13 see )ones, LRE. vol. 11. pp. 942-3 (the centre at Phllae on the Nile, and the centre and
temple of Jupiter Ammon in the Augila oasis): See also Stein, Bas-Emplre, vol. 11. pp. 300-1
and 372.
Rtliglon and belle/ 331
of the Mant in the Peloponnese were Christianised only during the reign of
Basil 1, 14 while local cults In Thrace and Macedonia may also have
persisted. Here, however, the arrival of Slav peoples may well have
overwhelmed the old tradition. and lt was the missionary activity of the
eighth and, especially, the ninth centuries which reintroduced Christianity
on a widespread basis. Paganism in Africa - excluding the case of Bgypt -
seems on the whole not to have been a significant problem, and to have
been anyway confined to the Berber population of the hlnterland. 15 But it
is clear that. right to the end of the sixth century. pagan cults of one sort or
another continued to exist in many parts of the empire and, in certain
cases. to enjoy considerable local support: and that a wide range of
pre-Christlan practices continued to make up an Important element of the
day-to-day belief patterns of a great number of the ordinary population of
the empire. 16
It is not surprising, therefore, that evidence for pagan survlvals, for
'magic' and 'superstition' is still to be found in seventh-century sources:
and Indeed, the conditions brought about by the Arab incursions and the
consequent disruption of life In the provinces as well as In major urban
centres - with the Interruption In the activities of the local clergy and the
episcopate - may have permitted many ancient traditions, which had
survived in one form or another as long as this, to experience a revival of
sorts. 17 The arrival of new populatlons - notably Slavs - either as Immi-
grants into the Balkans or as the result of forced transfers to depopulated or
underpopulated areas of Asia Minor, must also have affected the areas in
which they were settled. Some older, non-Christian religious and linguistic
14 DAI 50.71-6: see D.A. Zakythlnos, Le Despolllt grec de Morte, vie et Institutions, revised edn
Chr. Maltezou (London 1965), pp. 6-14 and 381f.
•s See for a good general survey Rochow, •zu elnlgen opposltlonellen rellgl6sen Stromun-
gen', 245-50. The slow assimilation and Chrlstlanlslng of the South Balkan Slavs had
already begun In the middle of the seventh century. The leader of the Rouchlnalln 674.
Perbund, knew Greek, and this may reOect a Hellenlsatlon of some leading elements
among the Immigrant clans. Whether this involved Chrlstlanlsatlon Is dliBcult to say. See
Lemerle, us plus anciens recuells, vol. n. pp. 113-14; P. Lemerle, •La Chronlque
lmproprement dlte de Monemvasle. Le contexte hlstorlque et legendalre', RBB 21 (1963),
5-49, esp. 181T. Note for the following period also P. Dvomlk, la Slaves, Byzance et Ro1ne
au Ir sl~cle (Paris 1926), pp. 23 Sf. Por Africa, see )ones, LRB. vol. 11, p. 942: and see
Cameron, Byzantine Africa, p. 40.
1 6 See the apposite remarks of )ones, LRB. vol. 11, p. 941.
17 This Is. at least. the Implication of canons 8 and 18: the former attempts to re-establish the
practice of calling yearly synods for each ecclesiastical province, abandoned due to enemy
raids: the latter orCiers the clergy who had abandoned their Docks for the same reasons (or
claimed to have done so) to return to their parishes. See H.J. Magoulias, -rile Lives of
Byzantine saints as a source of data for the history of magic In the sixth and seventh
centuries A.D.: sorcery. relics and Icons'. B 37 (1967). 228-69. More recently, P.R.
Trombley, The Survival of Paganism In the Byzantine Bmplre during the pre-lconoclaUc period
(540-727) (Ann Arbor 1981) Is useful: but on the context and slgnlflcance of these
•survlvals', see below.
332 Byzantium in the seventh century
traditions may well have been dealt a fatal blow in this way; more
importantly, the supposed universality of Christian belief within the empire
must have been seriously jeopardised by these migrations, for such new
arrivals can have been only superficially, if at all, Christianised. The
regions in which John of Ephesus carried out his missions seem still in the
later sixth century to have been populated by many non-Christians.
During the trials of large numbers of 'pagans' under Tiberius Constantine
in 5 79 and the following years, the province of Asia was picked out as a
particular source of paganism. 18 It is highly likely that the traditional cult
practices of such areas continued to receive popular support, in the
countryside at least, and they may very well have been given a new lease
of life by the destruction of urban centres - which had, on the whole,
always been Christianised early and more completely than the surround-
ing country 19 - and by the consequent removal, or at least the weakening,
of Christian supervision.
The probability is that both indigenous and imported non-Christian cults
and beliefs proliferated in many regions of Asia Minor, and certainly in the
Balkans, during the seventh century, especially in those regions which the
clergy had abandoned. 20 But the evidence remains patchy. The canons of
the Quinisext which, as we have seen, set out specifically to regulate the
clergy and the behaviour and practices of the subjects of the empire, are
directed at Christians and tell us little, and then only indirectly, about
non-Christians. What they do illustrate, however, is the degree to which
the population in different regions of the empire (although again, the
canons rarely specify which regions) had subsumed many features of their
traditional religious practices and beliefs into Christianity. As mentioned
already, this was actually encouraged on occasion in the Western Church
as a means of promoting conversion. It may well have been, implicitly, the
case in the East, too, on occasion.
What the evidence does illustrate, importantly, is the difficulty faced by
any commentator, modern or medieval, in disentangling the complex
elements which go to make up any given set of beliefs. Christianity also had
its demons and evil spirits, its exorcisms and its rites of purification or
damnation, many of which were in effect no different from those of pagan
belief, at least at the descriptive level. Members of late Roman and early
Byzantine society, from the highest and most privileged to the lowest and
1s See John of Ephesus Ill, 33sq.; and Rochow, Die Heidenprozesse, pp. 120fT.
19 See Jones. LRE. vol. 11. pp. 942f.
20 The cult of Cybele, for example, which received great support from the local population of
Caria and which was condemned by John of Ephesus in the sixth century, was still in
existence in the mountains of the same region in the eighth century. as reported by
Cosmas of Jerusalem - see Cosmas Hierosolymitanus. Scholia in Gregorii Nazianzeni
CArmina (PG XXXVIII), 502. See also note 10. chapter 9 above.
Religion and belief 333
St Anthony the Younger records that the saint cured a woman's infertility
by writing an incantation on a strip of parchment torn from a bible, a prac-
tice explicitly forbidden in canon 68 of the Quinisext: 26 in the early ninth
century St Ioannicius was famed for his powers over wild animals- on one
occasion at a feast he issued commands to a trained bear, again a practice
expressly forbidden in canon 61. 2 7 The same canon is aware of the dangers
of such practices for the ordinary population - as is Theodore of Studion
over a century later: 28 yet only a few years later, the hagiographer of
Michael of Synnada could write that his saint worked miracles in order to
instil fear and respect into the uneducated. 29 The plain fact is that these
practices were widespread, ancient and deep-rooted; legislation alone was
unable to alter this; and they had been thoroughly integrated into the
pattern of daily life.
Many other traditions, including the use of masks, the masquerading in
the clothing of the opposite sex, the lighting of fires and so on, have
remained part and parcel of peasant culture in the Balkans and Anatolia to
the present day. 30 They have been thoroughly absorbed into a Christian
framework of beliefs and a Christian calendar. Other practices reflect, simi-
larly, folk-traditions which existed independent of any specific religion or
cult, but which were clearly regarded for convenience as 'pagan' by the
authorities. Canon 60 condemns the practice of imitating a trance-like state
and imposes exorcism on the practitioners who thus permit evil spirits to
take hold of them. 31 Mimes, popular theatre, pantomime and wild-animal
hunts were similarly proscribed. 32 Yet the satirical theatre, certainly, con-
tinued throughout the Byzantine period, particularly in the cities, and dealt
with popular and contemporary themes - political affairs, the character
and mores of foreigners such as Armenians or Arabs, even aspects of New
Testament history and, perhaps inevitably, the Church and its clergy. 33
nemque Textuum Graecorum et ad Historiam luris Graeco-Romani Pertinentia Viro Doctissimo
D. Holwerda Oblata, eds. W.J. Aerts, J.H.A. Lokin, S.L. Radt and N. van der Wal (Groningen
1985), pp. 119-33, for Balsamon's understanding of ·customary law' and its relationship
to the civil law.
26 F. Halkin, ·saint Antoine le Jeune et Petronas le vainqueur des Arabes en 863', AB 62
(1944), 187-225, see 195: Mansi XI, 973C-D.
27 Vita S. Ioannicii, in AS, Nov. ll/1, Vita a Petro, 384-434: see 3908--C, 412C-4138.
28 S. Theodori Studitae Epistolarum Lib., I (PG IC, 904-1116), ex. XIX (9651}-9688).
29 The Life is to be found in C. Doukakis, Mi~t; ovvatapurnjt; 1ravrtcJv TtiJv a-yitJJv ( 12 vols ..
Athens 1889-96), Maii, 411-22. see 417: see BHG 3 , 2274x.
3o See, for example, J. du Boulay, Portrait of a Greek Mountain Village (Oxford 1974), esp.
pp. 60fT., and on local taboos and myths, such as fortune-telling, pp. 64fT. See also M.F.
Herzfeld, The Poetics of Manhood. Conust and Identity in a Cretan Mountain Village (Prince-
ton, N.J. 1985), esp. pp. 238fT.
31 Mansi XI. 9690. 32 Canon 51: Mansi XI. 9688.
33 See F. Tinnefeld, ·zum profanen Mimos in 8yzanz nach dem Verdikt des Trullanums
(691)', Bv{avr,va 6 (1974), 325fT.: and esp. Ja.N. Ljubarskij. ·ner Kaiser als Mime: zum
Problem der Gestalt des byzantinischen Kaisers Michael ID', ]OB 37 (1987). 39-50:
336 Byzantium in the seventh century
The effectiveness of the canons needs to be seen in this context, therefore:
and it should be remembered that most of the prohibitions taken up by the
Quinisext were, in fact, reiterations of earlier prohibitions going right back
to the fourth century, measures which had clearly had only very limited
success. 34
The great majority of the practices condemned in the canons of the
Quinisext, therefore, are 'pagan' primarily because the ecclesiastical estab-
lishment was bound to identify them as non-Christian and, on a variety of
grounds, morally questionable, if not downright dangerous. But their
existence both before and after the council need not in itself cause us to
doubt that Christianity was by this time the dominant belief system in the
early Byzantine world. Pockets of 'real' paganism - actual living cults, as
opposed to occasional festivities and so on - undoubtedly did survive, even
if we know next to nothing about them (the cult of Cybele in Caria was
probably not an isolated phenomenon). 35 But the practices condemned by
the Quinisext throw more light upon the traditional beliefs and super-
stitions of ordinary people who were also Christians, than upon paganism.
And in this respect, it is perhaps time that historians abandoned the
terminology of their medieval sources and viewed these practices for what
they were (and are): essential elements of the social reproductive practice
of the ordinary rural and urban populations of the empire. The anti-pagan
legislation of the sixth century and before is not repeated in later codifi-
cations;36 the Quinisext canons themselves make no mention of pagans as
such, only 'Hellenic', which is to say, pagan, practices. Later Church
legislation concentrates on the prevalent heresies of the time, but
see in particular 41fT. and 44-6. Note also the comments of Zonaras, the twelfth<entury
canonist and jurist, in Rhalles-Potles, Syntagma, vol. Ii, pp. 424fT. Those bishops who
attended the Quinisext and who were familiar with life in the capital. will have been very
well aware of the continued popularity of street theatres and related entertainments. If the
fictional Life of And.rew the Fool is to be placed in the later seventh century, as Mango has
reasonably argued (see introduction, above), there is plenty of evidence for this: see Vitil
Andreae Sali 6480, 652C and so on.
34 Cf. Jones, LRE. vol. IT. pp. 977f.
1s The attitudes and fears of contemporaries and later commentators is well summed up in
the gruesome story of the sacrifice of an unborn baby by the Byzantine population during
the siege ofPergamon in 716. For. as has now been shown, the actual events were taken
from an older apocalyptic tradition by an anonymous writer contemporary with the siege
of Constantinople in 717-18, and later incorporated into the historiographical tradition
of Theophanes and Nicephorus. They did not actually take place: but they symbolised the
anxieties of the time both with regard to the ancient pagan rites and to the barbarians
who threatened the empire. See W. Brandes. 'Apokalyptisches in Pergamon'. BS 47
(1987). 1-11.
36 Only one piece of Justinianic anti-pagan legislation was taken up in the later ninth-
century Basilika, cf. C/ I, 11. 9, a law forbidding the testamentary transmission of property
to persons or institutions which support pagan cults and beliefs. Why this pronouncement
alone was taken up is not immediately apparent. Cf. Bas., I. 1.14 and II. 3.7.
Religion and belief 337
prohibiting the addition of the phrase ·who was crucified for us' to the
creed, a theopaschlte formulation which reflected a monophysite theol-
ogy: the second prohibiting the depiction of Christ as a lamb, a practice
which, it was argued, jeopardised the assumption of two natures, human
and divine, of Christ. 41 Canon 9 5 also implies the continued existence of a
variety of monophysite sects and tendencies, although the list must be treated
with caution. In listing the process whereby heretics who wish to join or
rejoin the true faith might be admitted to the Church, the canon notes that
for certain groups, Severus of Antioch and the archimandrite Eutyches, two
of the best-known monophysite polemicists, were to be first condemned
{along with the patriarch Nestorius) before they could be accepted. 42 It is prob-
able that various minor sects, which still held views that might be charac-
terised as either monophysite or Nestorian, were intended here. On the
whole, however, monophysites do not seem to be a serious concern, and
indeed the fact that the canon stipulates the requirements for admission may
well suggest that such monophysites as remained within the empire were
being gradually assimilated into the Chalcedonian fold.
The hostile activity of the Arabs may well have played a central role
here, for the devastation they brought about seems to have dislodged large
numbers of the rural populace in many areas, forcing them to seek refuge
in less exposed districts. Interestingly, canon 95 notes that numbers of
heretics - including Bunomians, Sabellians and Montanists - had left the
region of Galatia and sought baptism: and it is highly likely that this
movement was a result of the economic and physical dislocation caused by
raiding Muslim forces. More importantly, it forced hitherto isolated rural
communities, who had probably been able to practise their form of Chris-
tianity with little interference, into the ·outside' world ofneo-Chalcedonian
orthodoxy, where the differences and divergences were more apparent,
attracting the attention of the authorities. This general phenomenon must
within the empire, including its Spanish territories (held until c. 62 5: the
final conversion of the Visigothic Church to Chalcedonian orthodoxy took
place at the council of Toledo in 589) 48 by the time of the accession of
Heraclius.
The Montanist heresy, which had its centre in Phrygia, may have
lingered on into the seventh and early eighth centuries, although the
evidence is inconclusive: it is difficult to ascertain whether a source such as
Theophanes means the real Montanists or merely uses the term as a
convenient and well-known element in a list. 49 Later legislation- notably
the condemnation of Montanists and Manichaeans in the Ecloga - seems
to rely on the Justinianic codification for its inspiration, and the term is
used once more as a convenient 'catch-all', as may also be the case with
the 95th canon of the Quinisext. Montanism certainly seems to have
existed into the late sixth century, however, as John of Ephesus, who led a
major drive against their cult centres and converted many to orthodoxy
(i.e. monophysitism), reports in detail. But his missionary activities,
together with the fierce persecutions under Tiberius Constantine, may well
have dealt the fatal blow to the Montanist communities. 50
Similar considerations apply to the Messalians, sometimes called Mar-
cianists, both terms used in the sixth and seventh centuries for defamatory
purposes, rather than signifying actual practices or beliefs. Messalianism
originated as an ascetic heresy in Syria during the fourth century: but by
the later sixth century the term seems to have lost its real significance. 51
And the fact that it occurs in the scholia of Maximus Confessor to the
turn (2 vols. Gottingen 1939), vol. I. pp. 3870'.: S.C. Fanning, 'Lombard Arianism
reconsidered', Speculum 56 (1981), 241-58.
48 See E.A. Thompson, The Goths in Spain (Oxford 1969), pp. 3200'.: P. Goubert, 'Influences
byzantines sur l'Espagne wisigothique (554-711)'. REB 2 (1944). 5-78. see 43-9: and
the council of Toledo: Mansi IX. 985f.
49 They were heavily persecuted by Justinian: see Stein, Bas-Empire, vol. 11, pp. 3 74f.: P. de
Labriolle, La Crise montaniste (Paris 1913 ), pp. 53 20'. For their origins in the second
century. see esp. S. Runciman. The Medieval Manichee. A Study of the Christian Dualist
Heresy (Cambridge 1947). pp. 18fT.: F.E. Yokes, 'The opposition to Montanism from
Church and state in the Christian empire', Studia Patristica IV, 2, ed. F.L. Cross (Berlin
1961), pp. 518-26: W. Schepelern. Der Montanismus und die phrygischen Kulte (Tiibingen
1929). For the story ofTheophanes (according to which an edict of Leo Ill in 722 ordered
the forced baptism of all Montanists, and as a result of which the adherents to the heresy
locked themselves in their churches and set them on fire. rather than be converted), see
Theophanes, 401. But see also A. Sharf. 'The Jews, the Montanists and the emperor Leo
III', BZ 59 (1966), 37-46, see 43: and Procopius, Historia Arcana XI. 23: Stein, Bas-
Empire, vol. 11, p. 375. which may be Theophanes' original source. Runciman, The
Medieval Manichee, p. 18, accepts the story. as do Brehier and Aigrain. p. 439.
50 See Ecloga XVII, 52: and J. Gouillard. 'L'Heresie', 308-9. For John ofEphesus, see Michael
Syr., vol. 11. 269fT.: John ofEphesus III. 13, 20. 21. 26 and 32. In general. see Sharf. 'The
Jews, the Montanists and the emperor Leo Ill', esp. 38f.
51 See the summary and the literature in Roe how, 'Zu einigen oppositionellen religiosen
Stromungen', 2 74-8.
342 Byzantium in the seventh century
Pseudo-Dionysius Areopagite - 'Lampetianoi, that is, Messalianoi or Adel-
phianoi, which is to say, Markianistai'- is no evidence for the existence of
Messalian heretics or communities. 52 Part of the difficulty in identifying
such groups lies in the fact that orthodox critics of aberrant beliefs and
heresies tended to use the descriptive terms of earlier writers and of an
earlier period in their lists and classifications of heretics and heretical
beliefs, and it is difficult to know to what extent these lists represent a
contemporary situation, or merely reflect an antiquarian and condemna-
tory topos. Older terms were often applied, with little or no theological
justification, to quite new groups of heretics. The term 'Messalian' was
thus used also of Bogomils in the later period, while terms such as
Montanist or Arian occur similarly alongside other names of actual, living,
heresies from the seventh century on. 53 Thus references to the Meletians,
Paulianists, Marcionists, Sabbatians, Novatians, Quartodecimans (Tessa-
rakaidekatitai), Eunomians, Sabellians and many other sects must be
treated cautiously. 54 In the early seventh-century handbook of the presby-
ter Timothy of Constantinople, De receptione haereticorum, and in the 95th
canon of the Quinisext, such sects are mentioned without any real evi-
dence that they actually swvived. What both texts represent is a catalogue
of traditional heresies, subdivided into three categories according to their
degree of difference from orthodox Christianity and the mode in which
their adherents are to be readmitted to the Church. 55 Similarly, in the
anti-heretical compilation of Anastasius of Sinai and in a (probably)
seventh-century text on the Messalians by the monk and presbyter George,
lists of heretics also occur, and it is clear that in part, at least, the polemical
tradition and the intention of the authors of such works have determined
the composition of the lists themselves. 56
52 PG, IV. 169. Messalianism seems to have died out by the seventh century- see Rochow,
'Zu einigen oppositionellen religiosen Stromungen', 278 and note 1.
53 D. Obolensky, The Bogomils (Cambridge 1948), pp. 240f.: Runciman, The Medieval
Manichee, pp. 63fT.; M. Loos, Dualist Heresy in the Middle Ages (Prague 1974), pp. 72 and
330fT.: Rochow. 'Zu einigen oppositionellen religiosen Stromungen', 274 note 1.
54 For the origins and history of these sects, see Dictionnaire de theologie catholique, eds.
A. Vacant, E. Mangenot and E. Amann (Paris 1930), vol. IX, 2, 2009-32 (Marcionism);
1464-78 (Macedonianism): Xlll. 2. 1445ff. (Quartodecimans); XIV. 1. 430-1 (Sabbatia-
nism): T. Gregory, 'Novatianism. A rigorist sect in the Christian Roman empire', Byzantine
Studies 2 (1975), 1-18: also Lexikonfiir Theologie und Kirche, eds. J. Hofer and K. Rahner.
2nd edn (Freiburg i. Br., 19 5 7-68), vol. VI, 1313f. (Macedonianism): VU, 2 5 7f. (Mele-
tians); IX. 192 (Sabbatianism): VID. 213f. (Paulianism): see also CMH. vol. IV. part 2.
pp. 190-2: Beck, Kirche pp. 349-50 (Messalianism): also Jones, LRE, vol. II. pp. 95~.
55 See PG LXXXVI. 11-68 and Beck. Kirche, pp. 401-2 (for Timothy of Constantinople):
Mansi XI, 9848--E.
56 See PG LXXXIX, 268, and Beck, Kirche. pp. 442f. and 446: and for George, see M. Richard,
in ~ 2 5 ( 19 56). 3 50--62. See esp. Gouillard. 'L'Heresie'. 302 and 304 with note 3 7:
Beck. Kirche, p. 44 7. Note the comments of Rochow, 'Zu einigen oppositionellen religiosen
Stromungen', 277.
Religion and belief 343
possible connection with some of the earlier sects, which may have been
reshaped during the seventh century, or may indeed have attracted new
followers and adherents as the remnants of the majority of the older sects
were dispersed or died out. It is at least likely, therefore, that while the
Paulician and athigganoi movements developed their own independent
and dynamic traditions, they were rooted In, and owed their beginnings to,
the conditions which signalled the end of most of the other Christian sects
of Anatolia.
The one group of believers who presented a real problem for both
Christian theologians and the Christian state throughout the period dealt
with here, and indeed throughout the history of the state itself, a group
which, in spite of more or less constant persecution, occupying always a
subordinate po.sitlon within Eastern Christian society and culture, does
survive and is able even to prosper, Is represented, of course, by the Jews.
Judalsm presented a number of difficulties to Christian thinkers.
But it also presented difficulties for the state and for society at large. for
the structure of Jewish beliefs and kinship gave Jewish communities a
stubborn resilience which was able to weather the fiercest storms of
persecution, forced baptism and so on. Up to the sixth century, the Jews
had been tolerated, with only minor and occasional persecutions directed
specifically against them. But they, along with certain other groups within
Roman society, had fewer rights than orthodox subjects. 66 From Justi-
nian's reign, however, begins a long period of persecution: Justinian
himself deprived Jews, and Samaritans. of their few remaining rights
within the state with regard to public office or state service in general.
Under Justin they had already been deprived of the right to make wills and
to receive inheritances, being also debarred from carrying out any legal
act, such as being a witness in a law court. Justin and Justinian both began
to apply the laws against heretics and pagans to Jews and Samaritans as
well: and although forcible baptism had been applied to Jewish communi-
ties in the fifth century on occasion, such measures were enacted increas-
ingly from Justinian's reign on in the East, and from the later sixth century
67 See Jones, LRE, vol. 11. pp. 948-50: for the recent literature, J. Starr. The Jews in the
Byzantine Empire, 641-1204 (Athens 1939): A. Sharf, Byzantine Jewry from Justinlatl to
the Fourth Crusade (New York 1971), esp. pp.19ff.: Yannopoulos. La Socleti profane,
pp. 243-51: Beck, Klrche, pp. 332-3 with further literature.
68 See DOiger, Regesten, nos. 196, 197 and 206. The interesting contemporary Doctrina
Jacobl nuper Baptizati records the events of the reigns of Phocas and Heracllus relevant to
this policy. from the point of view of a supposedly genuine convert. See Beck, Kirche,
p. 44 7; and R. Devreesse, 'La Fin inedlte d'une lettre de S. Maxlme: un bapteme force de
Juifs et de Samarltains a Carthage en 632'. Revue des sciences religieuses 17 (1937).
25-35: see CPG Ill, 7699 (Bpistula 8).
69 See especially Sharf, Byzantine Jewry. pp.l91T. and 531T. On Leo's edict, ibid., pp. 611T.
70 Mansi XI, 9 3 3B. Note also canon 11 (ibid., 94 SB warning against the use of unleavened
bread, mixing wlthjews at the baths. dealing with Jewish doctors); canon 33 (9570) and
canon 99 (985B) (against a variety ofllturglcal or related practices. especially ln Annenla,
which smacked of strong Jewish influence).
Religion and belief 347
century - possibly, if not probably, an imperial response to popular
pressure - had encouraged Jews to re-examine their position and their role
within the state. Their resentment expressed itself in terms of civil disturb-
ances, and in particular in the collaboration of some Jewish communities
with the Persians in the early seventh century. 71 The consequent Christian
outrage merely exacerbated a vicious circle. By the time of the Quinisext,
Jews were explicitly as bad as pagans and heretics in terms of the danger
they posed to the state, and especially of the challenge they presented to the
universalist claims of neo-Chalcedonian imperial orthodoxy. Anti-Jewish
tracts now became a standard element of Christian polemic. 72 Regular
persecution of Jews becomes a commonplace in Byzantine political history:
and the regular use of the term 'Jew' to demean or insult becomes a topos
of some genres of Byzantine literature. 73 Judaism itself becomes synony-
mous with a drift away from orthodoxy and with potential political-ideolo-
gical subversion. 74 Whether there were, in fact, any substantial communi-
ties of Jews in the territories remaining to the empire after about 650 is
71 Jewish and especially Samaritan revolts: see the summary in Kopstein, ·zu den Agrarver-
haltnlssen'. pp. 36-7: S. Wlnkler, ·ote Samarlter In den Jahren 529/30', Kilo 43 (1965),
435-57. For the Jewish response to the Persians and Arabs, see Sharf. Byzantine Jewry,
pp. 48-5 7 with literature, and analysis of the results for later Christian reprisals and state
repression. On anti-Jewish polemic. see G. Dagron, V. Deroche. 'Juifs et Cbretiens dans
I'Orient du VIr siecle', TM 11 (1991), 17-2 73: V. Deroche, 'La polemique anti-Judaique au
VIe et au vne siecle. Un memento inedit, les Kephalaia', TM 11 (1991 ), 2 7 5-311: G. Dagron,
'Judaiser', TM 11 (1991), 359-80. _
72 Of the surviving polemical literature usually ascribed to the sixth century, there is only
one antl-Jewlsh tract, Itself In the form of a dialogue between a Persian magus, Christians,
pagans and Jews at the court of the Sassanld Great King. See Beck. Klrcl1e, p. 381. Another
'Debate with the Jew Herban' dates also to the middle or later sixth century (Beck. Kirche,
pp. 386 and 407): whereas from the seventh century there are, in contrast, at least three
major polemical treatises: those of Stephen of Bostra (ed. G. Mercatl, ln Theologisclte
Quartalscllrift 77 (1895). 663-8: repr. in Opere ndr1ori I (Studi e Testi 76, Rome 1937),
pp. 202-6): of Hleronymus of Jerusalem (cf. P. Batiffol, 'Jerome de Jerusalem d'apres un
document lnedlt', Revue des questlotrs hlstoriques 39 (1886), 248-55: and PG XL.
845-66): and the so-called T,61raLa xaTa 'fov8a£wv tv Aa~aax(t) (ed. G. Bardy, in PO
XV (Paris 1927), pp. 189fT.). as well as a number of minor polemics, the Doctrina Iacobl
ru1per Baptlzatl, and hostile references in the hagiographlcal tradition. See Beck, Kirche,
pp. 44 7tT. The contrast Is very clear: and see the survey of M. Waegemann, 'Les Traites
adversus I11daeos: aspects des relations judeo-chretiennes dans le monde grec', B 56
(1986), 295-313. See Averil Cameron, 'Byzantifles and Jews: some recent work on early
Byzantium', BMGS 20 (1996) 249-74.
71 See Beck, Klrclre, pp. 443 and 447-8. Note the use of the term to emphasise the superiority
of Christian beliefs to Judalsm (and Implicitly to other doctrines) In a polemical context In
the later seventh-century miracles ofSt Artemius (see 48.26sq .• 63.13sq.): and note also
the position of the Jew as instrument of the Devil typical in middle Byzantine literature,
and exemplified In the later-seventh- or early-eighth-century story about the Church
administrator In Adana (Clllcla 11), who Is deceived Into making a pact with the Devil
through a Jewish Intermediary. See L. Radermacher. Grlechlscl1e Quelletr zur Faustsage
(Vienna and Leipzig 19 2 7) ( = Sitzungsber. d. Akad. d. Wlss. In Wten, phll.-hist. Kl. CCVI.
4). pp. 1641T.
74 See Sharf. Byzat~tit~e Jewry, passi111, and 'Byzantine Jewry In the seventh century'. BZ 48
(1955). 103-15.
348 Byzantium in the seventh century
difficult to say. Individuals and their families there must certainly have
been: but (and ignoring the numerous literary topoi referred to) there is no
evidence for organised communities of Jews in the empire until a much
later date. Jews, nevertheless, became scapegoats for Christian apologists,
as Byzantine society became more and more exclusivist and introverted. I
will return to this below.
begins to reassess the narratives of its place in the world, so this hostility
becomes more pronounced. And it is not confined simply to elements of the
social and economic elite. On the contrary, and for social reasons as well as
for political-theological reasons, the popular hostility to the (mostly)
upper-class persons accused, rightly or wrongly, of adherence to pagan
beliefs and practices during the trials and persecutions of the years 5 79-82
and after, is an indicator of the direction of the feelings and the attitudes of
ordinary people in cities such as Constantinople, Antioch, Edessa, Baalbek,
Harran and others. What is important about the events is the fact that,
whereas persecutions varying in intensity, imperial legislation and large-
scale missionary activity - that of John of Ephesus is known best - had
occurred before, they had been directed by the state and had rarely found
more than a passive, if accepting, response among the ordinary orthodox
populations. 77 Now popular riots ensued when the penalties imposed upon
the accused were thought to be too lenient. 78 John of Ephesus and Evagrius
ascribe this to the intense piety of the Christians in the empire: and while
there is no reason to doubt the latter, it seems clear that this response is
something quite new. Once again, the notions of exclusiveness and of
religious solidarity, of marking off clear boundaries between true Chris-
tians and Romans, as opposed to pagans, heretics and 'outsiders' in
general. is evident. The hostility of the population of Constantinople to the
Arian church of the Germanic mercenary troops in the early seventh
century is in the same mould. 79 And while it is no doubt possible to find or
to assume more immediate reasons for these popular reactions, it was the
changed ideological atmosphere which determined the particular form of
the reaction, and not the immediate context.
This tendency to exclude those defined as marginal to the orthodox
Christian community, which becomes increasingly evident in the actions
and attitudes of ordinary people, and especially of the urban populations of
the empire, is emphasised by the political shrinkage of the middle of the
seventh century. Following the loss of Jerusalem, Antioch and Alexandria,
only Constantinople remains to serve as the focus of Church and state
hierarchies, as the source of power and authority, privilege and prestige.
At the same time, there is a marked absence of any effort to continue the
77 See I. Engelhardt, Mission und Politik in Byzanz. Ein Beitrag zur Strukturanalyse byzantini-
scher Mission zur Zeit ]ustins und ]ustinians (MBM XIX, Munich 1974), esp. pp. 12ft". for
John ofEphesus: also pp. 128fT. and 178-86. For general remarks, H.-G. Beck, 'Christliche
Mission und politische Propaganda im byzantinischen Reich', in Settimane dl Studio del
Centro ltaliano di Studi sull'alto Medioevo XIV (Spoleto 1967), pp. 649-74 (repr. in Ideen
und Realitdten in Byzanz IV (London 1972)).
78 See the account in Rochow, Die Heidenprozesse, pp. 1240". Sources: John of Ephesus Ill,
27-34: Evagrius V, 18.
79 See Haldon. 'Ideology and social change', 162 and note 59.
350 Byzantium in the seventh century
80 See Brehier and Aigrain, pp. 200-1. where the Christianisation of the Slavs in the Balkans
is assumed to have been under way by the time of the establishment of the Bulgars in the
680s.
st Mansi XI. 996E. See B. Grafenauer, Die ethnische Gliederung und geschichtliche Rolle der
westlichen Sri.dslawen im Mittelalter (Ljubljana 1966), p. 19. But doubts have been expres-
sed as to the Slavic origin of the name- seeP. Charanis, 'The Slavic element in Byzantine
Asia Minor in the thirteenth century', B 18 (1946-48), 78 and note 1 (repr. in Studies on
the Demography of the Byzantine Empire VII (London 1972)): but these are not very
convincing: whether or not the name Serb has a Slavic root, the point is that the people in
question used this name themselves, and Gordoserba may well reflect the establishment of
an episcopal see for them in Bithynia. See Obolensky, Byzantine Commonwealth, pp. 59f.:
and Lllie, 'Kaiser Herakleios und die Ansiedlung der Serben', 26fT. That such a procedure
was not unusual at the time is clear from the canons of the Quinisext itself, where canon
38 (Mansi XI, 960E-961A) notes that newly founded or re-founded 'cities' should be
subject to the traditional civil, fiscal and ecclesiastical authorities. Note also canon 3 9
(ibid., 961A-C) on the establishment of the 'city' Nea Ioustinianopolis in Hellespontus for
the refuge congregation of Constantia in Cyprus.
Religion and belief 351
Pseudo-Epiphanius. 82 It is tempting to conclude that this reflects the
activity of Church and state in the conversion and integration of the new
settlers. The imposition of Christianity on such immigrant populations
must anyway have been regarded as a duty of the emperor, and the fact
that there is virtually no explicit evidence for this does not alter that. The
exclusion of the monophysites from the Christian oikoumene, implicit in the
acts of the sixth council and in the canons of the Quinisext, demonstrates
that the state can in no way have tolerated such overt heterodoxy. That
the canons of the Quinisext wish to deal with pagan and Jewish tendencies,
but make no reference to actual communities of pagans (for example), is
surely suggestive of the fact that there were no such obvious targets to
name - it is unlikely that all reference to such a dangerous element within
the Christian community would have passed over in such silence, if it had
actually existed.
We may reasonably conclude, therefore, that in name at least the
population of the empire was by this time assumed to be entirely Christian,
an assumption which certainly underlies the canons of the Quinisext; and
that the chief problem was perceived to lie in the continued use of
cult-practices, superstitions and so on, which for the contemporary Church
were dangerous leftovers of pre-Christian tradition and had to be excised.
The fact that the empire, nevertheless, retained its multiethnic and polyglot
character - Greek-, Slav- and Armenian-speakers dominated, but other
ethnic/linguistic groups counted themselves as 'Romans', too- gave Chris-
tianity and orthodoxy a particular importance, of course; and the rele-
vance of notions of 'conformity' and 'belonging' at this time is particularly
apparent, as we shall see.
If missionary activity continued at all in this period, it did so at a very
low-key level. Specific groups - such as the Slav immigrants - may have
been compelled by the power of the state to convert, even if at first only
superficially. But massive undertakings of the sort carried out by John of
Ephesus and others in the mid-sixth century do not appear in the sources
at all, and it is tempting to conclude that they simply did not occur because
it was felt that there was no need, or rather, no perceived need, for them.
For the cultural introversion which typifies Byzantine society from the
later sixth to the middle of the eighth centuries (approximately) meant also
a narrowing of horizons, cultural and ideological, as well as, more obvi-
ously, geopolitical. The shrinking of the empire to a rump of the Justinianic
state brought with it, naturally enough, a loss of interest in what had now
become very distant affairs - the question of the Christian communities in
82 In Gelzer, Ungedruclcte und ungenilgend veroffentlichte Texte der Notitiae Episcopatuum, p. 538
number 187. In general. see also Ditten, 'Zur Bedeutung der Einwanderung der Slawen',
pp. 153fT.
352 Byzantium in the seventh century
south Arabia or Ethiopia, for example, must have seemed very distant from
the concerns of the government of the mid-seventh century. On the other
hand, conversion for diplomatic-political reasons remained on the agenda:
for Christianity marked out the Romans and their world empire clearly
from their barbrian foes. 83
Under Heraclius, attempts were made to Christianise the Serbs and the
Croats 'invited' to settle in the western Balkans. While these efforts were
not successful in the long term, short-term diplomatic success did follow. 84
The conversion of the Onogur ruler Organa with his son Kovrat and other
followers at Constantinople in 619 similarly served diplomatic ends and
belonged to a long and respected Roman political-diplomatic tradition. It
was apparently - according to the limited and much later tradition
incorporated into the History of the patriarch Nicephorus in the early ninth
century - quite successful. But only the leadership of these Bulgaric clans
seems to have accepted Christianity, so that their demise meant not only
the end of their new religion, but also the hitherto friendly relations
maintained with the Byzantine court. 85 In the same way, it has been
argued that a serious plan to achieve the conversion to Christianity of
Sassanid Persia was evolved and pursued during the 620s and 630s, a
plan which was, in the event. brought to nothing by the Arab invasions. 86
Such missionary efforts may well have been stimulated by the eschatalogi-
cal attitudes which became apparent at the end of the sixth century and in
the reign of Heraclius. 87
Thereafter, and until the later eighth and early ninth centuries, neither
state nor Church seems to have promoted or supported in any significant
way - that is, which merited mention in the sources - a deliberate policy of
missionary activity and proselytisation either within or without the
empire. The conversion of the Chazar wife of Justinian II provides an
example of one way in which non-Christians were converted: but it is an
isolated and, in general terms, an insignificant example. 88 No doubt
individuals did preach Christianity in neighbouring lands or along the
83 Compare the speech attributed by Theophanes (307.3sq.) to Heraclius, delivered to the
soldiers before battle: the Christian Romans are placed clearly on the side of God's struggle
with evil, against the pagan and blasphemous barbarians.
84 See the summary in Obolensky, Byzantine Commonwealth, pp. 59fT.: and Ditten. 'Zur
Bedeutung der Binwanderung der Slawen'. p .. 129 with literature: Lilie, 'Kaiser Her-
akleios und die Ansiedlung der Serben', 26fT. with sources and literature.
85 Summarised in Obolensky, Byzantine Commonwealth. pp. 62-3.
86 See C. Mango, 'Deux etudes sur Byzance et la Perse sassanide, 11: Heraclius, Sahrvaraz et la
vraie croix', TM 9 ( 19 8 5 ), 10 5-18: note the earlier study by I. Shahid, 'The Iranian factor
in Byzantium during the reign of Heraclius', DOP 26 (1972), 295-320.
87 See Mango's final remark, ibid.. 117, with reference to the prophecy of Chosroes ll
reported in Theophylact Simocatta V, 15.1-11: and compare the argument in the text of
the Doctrina Iacobi nuper Baptizati.
ss Theophanes, 372.30sq.: Ostrogorsky, Geschichte. p. 119.
Religion and belief 353
border regions, when the opportunity presented itself: but these seem to
have had little effect. As far as the sources reflect the actual situation in the
Slav-occupied Balkans and the Peloponnese, in the early ninth century, for
example, the population was still predominantly pagan.
Cultural introversion thus came to mean a preoccupation with the
attempt to force the 'real' world of the time to fit the 'ideal' world or model
of the political theology of state and Church. The only response the
imperial government and the Church seemed able to offer to opposition
within its frontiers, and within the Christian world at large, where
straightforward argument or command proved insufficient, was military
force and violence. And the imperial government - and Church - seem to
have been far too involved with problems of internal political authority
and the distribution of power, together with the determination to stamp
out all heterodox belief and practice which accompanied this concern, to
be able to commit the effort and the resources necessary to large-scale
missionary activity. In ideological terms, such activity must have seemed
simply ineffective, if it was considered seriously at all. Perhaps it was also
the pressure placed on the Christian polity by the militant and aggressive
force of Islam which emphasised this tendency - conversion by the sword
seemed, at least according to this example, to be both quicker and more
effective. The traditional missionary activity of the Church must have
appeared in comparison simply not effective enough to make the effort
worthwhile. For, more importantly, the military success of Islam was
taken commonly by Byzantine society to be a sign of God's wrath against
the Chosen People for the sins they had committed. It is not surprising,
therefore, that the longer-term tendencies evident from the later sixth
century were focused and intensified in the second half of the seventh
century around a whole group of symbolic referents which bore directly or
indirectly on this theme within the framework of the traditional imperial
ideology: imperial authority, the universality of orthodoxy within the
empire, imperial responsibility for both ensuring and maintaining ortho-
doxy, and for perceived failure to do so. In this context, the overriding
concern was for internal order and correct belief- a prerequisite, after all,
for any attempt to expand and recover the areas wrested from imperial
control. 89 Only then could the question of the wider Christian world be
considered - and this meant, first of all, relations with the West and in
particular with the papacy. Only when all these problems had been
resolved could the question of the conversion of the barbarians outside the
empire seriously be considered.
Given these concerns and the different routes by which they could be
89 See Haldon, 'Ideology and social change', esp. 165-7 and 175-7 with sources and
literature for a summary of some aspects of this development.
354 Byzantium in the seventh century
achieved - represented by the state and its political ideology on the one
hand and by elements within the Church, especially the traditional oppo-
sition to state intervention in (or attempts to direct) matters of theology
and interpretation, on the other hand -it is not surprising that the conflicts
which arose, over monenergism and monotheletism. over imperial auth-
ority and what amounted to the theory of imperial 'infallibility' and, later,
over icons, did occur. Neither is it surprising that the intellectual - as
opposed to the political-military - confrontation with Islam did not even
begin until the middle of the eighth century. Islam, even according to John
of Damascus still a Christian heresy, was not the cause of Byzantine
defeats; it was the Christian community itself which had brought the forces
of Islam down upon it, and the situation could be recovered, therefore, only
by first putting the Christian house in order. The strengths or weaknesses
of Islam, the existence of pagans in the Balkans - such questions were
insignificant compared with the quest for orthodox purity, correct belief
and the maintenance of the order and harmony derived from, and imi-
tating, that reigning in heaven. 90
These are some of the key motifs of seventh-centwy political-theological
debate; and it is the attempts of different social/political groups within the
empire to come to terms with the radically changed social. economic and
political conditions of the imperium Romanum after the 640s which must
figure at the centre of any modem attempts to understand and explain the
political and ideological history of the Byzantine world in this period. For
members of the Byzantine cultural-ideological world - the 'symbolic uni-
verse' of east Mediterranean imperial orthodox culture- the crux of the
matter was the imbalance between the way the world was supposed to be
and the perceived and experienced realities of the times. What the events of
the seventh century actually present is the harsh juxtapositioning of
realities against theoretical representations: or, put another way, it
demonstrates the effects on people's understanding and explanation of the
90 It was primarily the iconoclastic controversy. in particular the supposed Islamic influence
on the first iconoclasts. especially Leo m. which stimulated this interest and the need to
confront Islamic doctrine. The first informed treatise against Islam is by John of Damascus,
being the second part of his Fount of Knowledge (ll11-vil "fVOOewc;): see PG XCIV, 677-780
(De Haeresibus); see D. Sathas. John of Damascus on Islam. The 'Heresy of the lshmaelites'
(Leiden 1972). Later polemics - by Theodore Abu Qurra. for example, a pupil of John of
Damascus - elaborate the basic argument which consists of a chapter-by-chapter refuta-
tion of the Koran, intended to demonstrate on the basis of patristic writings and of the
scriptures the contradictions and inconsistencies of Islamic thought. See Beck. Kirche,
pp. 337tr., 478 and 488f.: A.Th. Khoury, Polimique byzantine contre l'Islam (VIU-XUr
siecle) (Leiden 19 72 ); also E. Trapp, 'Manuel U. Palaiologos, Dialoge mit einem .. Perser" ·.
Wiener byzantinistische Studien U (Vienna 1966 ), see pp. 11-9 5 with literature and a
general survey of the beginnings and development of Byzantine anti-Muslim polemic.
Note also E. M. JefTreys. 'The image of the Arabs in Byzantine literature'. Seventeenth
International Byzantine Congress. Major Papers. pp. 305-23, see pp. 316ff.
Religion and belief 355
Instead, attention was drawn to less material and less fallible symbols of
heavenly authority and, more Importantly, of heavenly intercession. Local
communities, In particular urban communities, overcame, at certain levels
of social experience and group Identity. the social and class differentiation
within their society through appeal to a single divine intermediary and
intercessor - a local saint or a figure from the divine hierarchy of angels,
even (in the case of Constantinople) the Virgin herself. And this new
emphasis was brought out and given expression in the cult of relics of many
saints and in the icons through which the powerless human could approach
directly- and not through the formal networks of the Church- a patron or
protector. 92 At the same time, the peculiar holiness or the ascetic and hermit,
who had confronted the devil and his hordes directly and not been overwhelmed,
provided a similar attra~tion. A feature of both urban and rural society in the
late Roman period, the signincance of the 'holy man' lay in the function he
came to fulfil as both social intermediary and intermediary between God
and man. Importantly, however, neither icons nor holy men were part of
any official framework of authority consecrated through the Church. On
the contrary, they were implicitly blessed directly by God and the Holy
Spirit, as the icons 'not made by human hand' demonstrate all too clearly.
And as such they were both immensely attractive to people in search of
answers and support. comfort and affirmation of their lives as they led
them: and at the same time potentially subversive and anomic in respect of
the 'establlshment'.93 They could undermine confidence ln the Church.
challenge its representatives In their interpretations and explanations.
mislead or corrupt those who followed them. But this was not (yet) the
issue at stake. Indeed, the popular shift of attention was quickly taken up
9l Haldon, 'Ideology and social change', 161f.: and Cameron, 'Images of authority': Nelson,
'Symbols ln context': E. Kltzlnger, ~e cult of Images ln the age before Iconoclasm', OOP 8
(1954), 85-150: Brown, 'Dark-age crisis': for the cult of the Virgin, see Cameron,
'Theotokos': and for the cult of relics. see Auzepy. 'L'evoludon de 1' attitude face au miracle
a Byzance'. Por the sixth-century situation and the latent contradictions. see Cameron.
Procoplus, esp. pp. 242-60 ('Procoplus and sixth-century political thought').
91 See Klt21nger, 'Images before Iconoclasm': and esp. Brown, 'Holy man'. Por the Icons •not
made by human hand' - GChelropolitll - see Kitzlnger, 'Images before iconoclasm',
112-15. Note also. however. the critical remarks of H.W. Drljvers, 'Hellenistic and
oriental origins', In The ByZtJnUne Saint, ed. S. Hackel (London 1981) ( = Studies supple-
mentary to Sobornost, V), pp. 25-33, who modifies Brown's original thesis In a number of
aspects, noting that while the particular soclo-ldeologlcal function of holy men evidenced
In the Syrian tradition for that region was determined by local social and cultural
structures, the holy man as such was not a purely Syrian phenomenon, having also a
general relevance In late Antique society, the significance of which was structured and
nuanced by local conditions. 'Ibis comes out clearly in the mlracle-collectlons, particularly
those of St Artemlus and St 'lberapon, and In the accounts of wonders worked by both
holy men and monks, and Icons or holy amulets - the stories attributed to Anastaslus of
Sinal, for example, or those ln the lJfe of Andrew the Pool. See chapter 11 with notes S3
and SS.
Religion and belief 357
94 See Cameron, 'Images of authority', and esp. P.J. Alexander. 'The strength of empire and
capital as seen through Byzantine eyes', Speculum 37 (1962). 339-57, see 345. It must be
emphasised that the Constantinopolitan element in the rhetoric of imperial ideology was
itself nothing new. From the time of Constantine's transfer of the capital from Rome.
efforts had been made to clothe imperial tradition in a new Christian garb. in terms of the
'new Rome' and the symbolism of renewal (see Alexander, 'The strength of empire and
capital'. 348fT.). But it was eminently suited to the ideological needs of the emperors of the
later sixth century. who took it up and developed it in a much more explicit form - along
with the symbolism of its divine protectress. the Virgin - and thereby determined the
future course of a crucial component of Byzantine imperial ideology. See the literature
and discussion in Cameron. 'Theotokos', passim. Alexander, 'The strength of empire and
capital, 341fT.. and esp. E. Fenster. Laudes Constantinopolitanae (Miscellanea Byzantina
Monacensia IX. Munich 1968). pp. 200. See also the references in note 122. chapter 9.
below.
95 For the importance of such categories and the boundaries they represented. see esp.
F. DOlger. 'Bulgarisches Cartum und byzantinisches Kaisertum', Bull. de l'Institut archiolo-
gique Bulgare 9 ( 19 3 5 ). 57-68 ( = Byzanz und die europdische Staatenwelt. Ausgewahlte
Vortrage und Aufsatze (Ettall953 and Darmstadt 1964). pp. 140-58). see 58f.. and 'Rom
in der Gedankenwelt der Byzantiner'. Zeitschrift fiir Kirchengeschichte 56 ( 19 3 7). 1-42 ( =
Byzanz und die europaische Staatenwelt. pp. 70-11 5): note also P. Brown. Religion and
Society in the Age of St Augustine, pp. 46-73, see SS.
Religion and belief 361
that expressed in the concern to dra\\' the boundaries between 'real' and
'false' holy men - in the 'questions and answers' attributed to Anastasius
of Sinai and, more dramatically. in the hagiographical tradition - in the
Life of Andrew the Holy Fool and. thereafter, in the narrative literary
tradition of the Byzantine world. 96
The reaffirmation of the late sixth century, therefore, represents an
attempt to explain change as perceived by members of the East Roman
cultural world from their own particular position and sense of place within
their society. It was thus a relatively diffuse set of developments. It is
expressed most obviously in the focusing of attention on imperial cere-
monial and, more specifically, in the centralising of a variety of elements
within the framework of the imperial ideology around the figure of the
emperor, the ruler appointed by God and the symbolism of the divinely
bestowed imperial authority. An increase in the ceremonial and ritual
aspect of court life - both public and private - had been an element of the
imperial cult since the fourth century, of course: but the later sixth century
saw a distinct quickening of pace. 97 But, crucially, this refocusing now also
involved other elements which had hitherto been less central - heavenly
guardians and guarantors of imperial authority, elements which had
represented also the tendency to redirect attention away from God's agent
on earth (and the vast established institutional framework through which
imperial power was exercised) back to God Himself. 98 The saints and
martyrs and other divine intercessors about whom civic and local saints'
cults proliferated played a double role. While they publicly evoked the
heavenly sources of imperial authority, they served at the same time to
represent a more immediate and tangible source of divine authority and
grace. Power in this respect, rather than being centralised, was in fact
diffused and diversified at a multiplicity of local levels. Evidence for such
cults and for the devotion they attracted increases dramatically at this
time: so that while the central authority struggled at the formal, official
and public level of Constantinopolitan and provincial ceremonial observ-
ance to centre attention on the emperor and his relation with God, it was
this very emphasis on the divine source of the emperor's authority which
contributed to and promoted the power of local saints and martyrs: for it
1o1 See, for example, H. Hunger, Prooimion. Elemente der byzantinischen Kaiseridee in den
Arengen der Urkunden (Vienna 1964): and cf. an eighth-century view, in the romance of
Barlaam and Joasaph. trans. in E. Barker, Social and Political Thought in Byzantium
(Oxford 19 57), esp. pp. 82f.: and see Beck, Kirche, pp. 482f. For this type of literature -
the 'Fiirstenspiegel' - see Hunger, Profane Literatur, vol. I. pp. 157fT.
1o2 A useful way to look at such changes is through the medium of personal and group
narrative, that is, accounts of events or situations in the sources which, whatever their
conscious intention, contain implicit assumptions about the ways in which the world
was perceived and how the individual perceived him or herself. It is through narrative -
that is, through accounts of experience - that the construction of a personal social
identity and a reality is made possible. I have discussed this approach at greater length in
'Ideology and social change', esp. 151fT., where further literature will be found. A further
pointer to the direction of change can be seen in the hagiographical and other writings of
the seventh century in particular, in which the direct personal relationship between God
(or his representative, the saint, martyr or similar figure) and individual is both taken for
granted and a sine qua non for the construction and understanding of the texts them-
selves. The accounts of the miracles of Artemius and of Therapon, for example, compiled
during the later seventh and early eighth centuries, provide classic examples: and note
the comments attributed to Anastasius of Sinai in Quaestio 55 (PG LXXXIX, 617A-
6208)- but also in other questions- where this relationship and its mutual nature is
discussed and stressed.
364 Byzantium in the seventh century
ideology of the state, seemed to be vindicated by the successes of the
Emperor Heraclius in his wars with the Persians. It also explained the
disasters of the reign of Phocas and of the early years of Heraclius
himself. 103
The rise of Islam, and the Arab conquests, marked a new, and in the
event much more real, threat to imperial stability and to the very existence
of the empire itself. It dislocated Byzantine society much more funda-
mentally and dramatically, and at all levels - political, economic, and in
terms of beliefs and ideas about the world. Reasons for the onslaught, and
for its successes, were not difficult to find within the existing framework of
belief, in particular the assumption that the Chosen People had sinned in
some way and were in consequence suffering their chastisement, a motif
well established in Christian political theology . 104 Monotheletism, the last,
unsuccessful attempt of the neo-Chalcedonian imperial establishment to
win over the monophyslte East - offered reason enough for many in both
West and East for the continuing success of the Arabs, and of other
barbarians in the Balkans. But the very fact of opposition to imperial policy
- even though justified by Maximus Confessor on strictly theological
grounds - was, in the context outlined above, in which imperial authority
itself was at stake, a direct challenge that could not be ignored. Imperial
insistence on acceptance of its policies, therefore, whether that involved
accepting monotheletism itself, or merely agreeing not to discuss the
nature of imperial authority, becomes quite understandable. All the
emperor wanted was an acknowledgement - through acceptance of the
Typos of 648 - that he remained the fount of all authority on earth,
because he was God's direct choice for this role. 105 And the relevance of
monotheletism to the question of reuniting the monophysltes in the Bast in
communion with the dyophysites in the West, whatever the hopes that
may have been cherished about their political recovery, sUps into the
background.
The conscious and unconscious efforts to rethink the elements of the
101 See especially P. Lemerle, ·ouelques remarques sur le regne d'Heracllus', Studl Medlevali I
(1960), 347fT. (repr. In Le Monde de Byzance: hlstolre et Institutions Ill (London 1978)):
S. Spain Alexander, 'Heraclius, Byzantine imperial ideology and the David plates':
Cameron, ·Images of authority', 21ff.: Shahid. •The Iranian factor', 303f., and •Heraclius.
'II'LO'TO~ £v Xpurr~ paac.~euc;', OOP 34/5 (1980/1), 225-37.
104 See S. Sophrotdi ... Bpistola Synodlca ad Sergium Patr. CP (PG LXXXVII, 3, 3148-200),
31970: note also Anastasius of Sinal, Quaestio 17 (PG LXXXIX, 484A-500A), regarding
the evils which befall the Romans: and cf. Quaestio 114 (76SC-768A). on the reasons for
pestllences and similar misfortunes. Note also Lateran, 40.28sqq.: Sophronius of Jerusa-
lem's reason for not attending.
1os For Maximus' position, see Ep. X (PG XCI, 449-53), 5420: and compare his other
statements on his position during his various interrogations: PG XC, 116-17, 14 SC-D,
161D-164A and 164D-165A. See Haldon. 'Ideology and social change', 173-6 for a
more detailed discussion.
Religion and belief 365
the fictional Life of Andrew the Fool (later seventh century) deals with the
same point. Such questions and stories illustrate the concerns of this time
of uncertainty - as do queries such as why there were so many lepers,
cripples, epileptics and others among the Romans, in contrast to other,
non-Christian peoples; or whether prophesying and fortune-telling
through lachnisterion (chance searching through pages of the Old and New
Testaments) were permitted. 110
The traditional ideological framework offered little comfort. But the
apocalyptic prophecies, which represented a long popular tradition and
responded most clearly to the needs felt by the uneducated mass of the
population in the provinces especially, had become the bread-and-butter of
such preachers and itinerant holy men. 111 And it is not surprising that it is
at just this time that the greatest and most widely disseminated of the
medieval compilatory apocalypses, that of Pseudo-Methodius of Patara,
was produced. 112 What is particularly significant is that apocalyptic
writings of this sort represented an alternative ideology of the future: the
formal political ideology permitted an abstract and distanced statement of
the relationship between empire and God; the eschatology of writings like
the apocalypse of Pseudo-Methodius - which, following an increasingly
important trend within the apocalyptic-eschatalogical tradition, identified
the historical Christian Roman empire with the last of the four world
empires of the vision of Daniel - in contrast, predicted an ultimate and
mythology about the date of the last judgement, and the fate of the empire
in the immediate future, may have been handled, that Theophanius
produced the date of A.D. 880 (in our reckoning) for the end of the
world. 116
The activities of the itinerant holy men. the inability of the established
Church to maintain ecclesiastical discipline and, in particular, the already
established fact that the location of what was holy or sacred in Eastern
Christian culture was both more widely dispersed and more ambiguous
than in the West - and, therefore, more directly accessible, more open to
immediate personal experience - all these elements contributed to a new
atmosphere. Bspecially indicative is the proliferation of private chapels
and, indeed, the fast-growing custom of celebrating the liturgy in private
homes, something quite absent in the West, where the Church retained a
much stricter control over such activities. 117 It was this new atmosphere
which generated both an understanding of what was happening to the
traditional framework of society, as well as the action which was felt to be
necessary to preserve it intact, by allowing a more openly critical position
with regard to imperial authority and the individual emperor's interpreta-
tion of that authority. It is worth adding, perhaps, that the attempts of the
Church to control the hermits and preachers were, on the whole, unsuc-
cessful: the itinerant. wonder-working holy man or monk remains a classic
of Byzantine hagiography in the ninth and tenth centuries. The popularity
and importance of such figures is borne out by the number of references to
holy men competing for their audience and following - there must have
been many more such figures than the hagiographical tradition alone
would suggest. Just as significant is the effort of the Church to assert its
authority over the scriptural and textual tradition upon which dogma and
the canons were founded. Canon 9 of the Quinisext is particularly strongly
worded: the clergy and bishops should interpret Scripture strictly in
accordance with the Fathers of the Church, and not improvise - once
more, the establishment of authority and the signalling of the existence of
116 See Beck, Klrche. p. 473. The text Is discussed by A. Dobschiitz, • Coislinlanus 296', BZ 12
(1903), 534-67, see 549fT.
117 See especially P.R.L. Brown, 'Bastern and Western Christendom In late Antiquity: a
parting of the ways', Studies in Church History XIII (1976), 1-24, see llf.: Nelson,
'Symbols in context, Ill f. and 115f. For private chapels and the liturgy, see canons 31
and 59 of the Qulnisext (Mansi XI, 9 56B and 969C): and the discussion ofT. Mathews.
•.. Private" liturgy ln Byzantine architecture', Cahlers Archiologlques 30 (1982), 125-38.
Whether there was indeed a proliferation of 'domestic' icons during the seventh century, as
has been maintained (e.g. J. Herrin. 'Women and the faith in icons in early Christianity', in
Culture, l~ology and PoUtics. ed. R. Samuel and G. Stedman-Jones (London 1982), pp.
56-83, see 66ff.) has been seriously questioned by P. Speck. 'Wunderheilige und BUder: Zur
Frage des Beginns der BUderverehrung', in Varia m (Poikila Byzantina XI. Bonn 1991)
163-24 7: ldem. 'Das TeufelsschloS. BUderverehrung bei Anastasios Sinaites?', in Varia V
(PoikilaBymntinaXIll. Bonn 1994) 295fT.
370 Byzantium ln the seventh century
clear boundaries are the chief concerns. And these concerns are echoed
also in the Questions and Answers of Anastasius of Sinal. Indeed. the effort
made at this time to establish an authoritative set of texts from which
dogma could be adduced, clear in the proceedings of the sixth ecumenical
council and in the canons of the Quinlsext, is an important affirmation of
this preoccupation.11s
The political and ideological history of the second half of the seventh
century illustrates the extent of the changes. Political coups, military
rebellions and attentats all had their immediate, conjunctural causes. But
that they could occur, and that such actions could be envisaged as
ideologically acceptable, shows that the ground rules within which indi-
viduals and groups situated themselves socially had been drastically
revised. The later seventh century contrasts vividly with the sixth century,
a period of relative Internal stability. political expansion and ideological
security, at least up to the SSOs and 560s. In such a context, the imperial
ideology left no room and made no provision for direct challenges to
imperial authority. Conversely, however, the very different situation of the
later seventh century and the realignment of elements within the symbolic
universe and especially within the imperial ideology itself meant that such
a challenge could appear both justifiable and worthwhile.
Justinian II's reformed coinage offers a clear example of the desperate
efforts made by the emperors to keep up with these shifts In people's world
view: the Qulnlsext had ordained that Christ should no longer be repre-
sented as a lamb, but in his human form, thereby the better to stress his
incarnation (canon 82). Justinian's reformed coinage moved the emperor's
bust from the obverse to the reverse of the gold coins, introducing a bust of
Christ to the obverse. The intention must have been tu emphasise the
ordinance of the Quinisext: but it served also to stress the nature of Christ's
role as mediator and Intercessor between heaven and earth. And, given the
Ideological context we have described, it must also have served to empha-
sise the emperor's particular role ln this relationship. The Hodegos of
Anastasius of Sinai. written during the years from c. 640 to c. 680 and
incorporating his own later additions, argues strongly for the value of
certain representations froni the life of Christ, in particular the crucifixion,
as didactic means of refuting heresy. Together with canons 73, 82 and
100 of the Quinisext, which all deal with images. this may be evidence of a
tendency at this time to recruit icons into the service of the Church as one
more weapon in the battle against heterodoxy and the struggle to main-
tain the boundaries between orthodoxy and the 'outside' world. Once
118 See the useful brief summary of K. Rlngrose, Saints, Holy Men and Byzantine Society, 726
fD 843 (Ann Arbor 1976), pp. 830'. For the Qulnlsext, see Mansl XI. 952: and for
Anastaslus, see qu. 117.
Religion and belief 371
120 See chapter 2. above; and Haldon, ·Ideology and social change', 177-89 with sources
and literature.
121 See chapter 3 above: and see also W. Goffart. ·zosimus. the first historian of Rome's fall'.
American Historical Review 76 (1971), 412-41. see 425-6 and notes 63-6.
Religion and belief 373
122 See chapter 3 above; and note especially H. Hunger, Reich der neuen Mitte, on the process
whereby Constantinople was transformed from the city of the imperial government, one
among several equally important and prestigious cities in the sixth century, to the city,
during the seventh century. a process completed by the loss of Alexandria, Antioch.
Jerusalem and other large centres to the Arabs. But the process was initiated under
Justinian, and taken up and promoted by his immediate successors. Cf. Cameron,
'Theotokos'; and H.-G. Beck, 'Konstantinopel. das neue Rom', Gymnasium 71 (1964).
166-74; W. Hammer, 'The concept of the new or second Rome in the Middle Ages',
Speculum 19 (1944), 50-62.
374 Byzantium in the seventh century
service came to be identified with particular districts. Provincial fears and
uncertainties. provincial attitudes to the government or the local administra-
tion. anxiety about and frustration at the failures of the government to deal
effectively with the various barbarians besetting the empire and wrecking
the rhythm of economic and social life: all of these feelings could now be
expressed by the provincials through only one channel - the local army.
The attitudes and actions of soldiers thus take on a new significance.
They serve to a degree, and however muted and refracted, as a barometer
of the views and beliefs of provincial society. This explains also their
'incorporation' by the state into the framework of legitimacy, even if only
nominally- both Constantlne IV and Justinian 11 attempted to integrate the
armies as an element of the state and its authority into some of their formal
statements. 123 While military unrest or opposition to the government was
obviously determined in its form and content by the specific context of the
times, the public activities of soldiers can suggest a great deal about the
responses of the ordinary people of the times, about whom we hear
otherwise virtually nothing. It was because the existence of traditional
society as it was understood seemed to be threatened and because the
stable framework through which experience could be reconstructed via
personal and social narrative was shaken. that soldiers could take the sorts
of action that they did in the middle of the seventh century and afterwards.
They were simply responding to their understanding of events, and their
position both socially and institutionally gave them the power to intervene
directly to restore the situation, as they perceived it, to a former state, a
state of order. certainty and political and social harmony.
Taken as a whole. therefore. the period from the reign of Justin 11 up to
that of Leo Ill presents a fascinating story, of a society and a culture in the
process of redefining itself. 'Redefining' was, of course, not the conscious
intention - reaffirmation of the traditional was what was intended - but
this was nevertheless the end result, viewed from our vantage point. Every
society or culture generates sets of legitimating ideas and theories,
explanatory and descriptive mechanisms which are, in effect, the social-
functional forms of personal and shared narrative reconstructions of
experience. through which each group within the society Is able to 'justify'
or legitimate its practice and explain its position in terms of its physical and
social environment. Such theories and explanations are themselves deter-
mined in their content by the subjective evaluation of the experiences of
the institutional group or social class concerned, and, by the functions they
fulfilled, given expression In the terms of what was culturally available,
through the symbolic universe. They represent various aspects of the main
ideological currents prevailing within a culture and, less immediately, the
12 3 See Mansi, XI. 201C: Riedinger. 10.23f.. and 73 7B-738A: Riedinger, 886.2Q-25.
Religion and belief 375
As we have seen in the foregoing account, late Roman society was marked
by a distinct introversion and introspectiveness from the late sixth century
on. While this tendency is represented at the level of official, public
consciousness - where it is most easily detected - as a form of ideological
reorientation, as an attempt to reaffirm the traditions and values of the
past, its roots lie in the material conditions of existence and the experiences
and perceptions of people at all levels of society, from the lowliest tied
peasant to the emperors themselves, and in the ways these people were
able to give meaning to and come to terms with these experiences.
The interpretation placed upon these perceptions and experiences both
promoted, and in its turn was promoted by, changes which also affected
people's relationships to one another, and the concepts and vocabulary
available to describe and explain these relationships. In terms of their
response to the wider world, we have seen how some of these ideas were
marked out. But they had effects upon what might be termed the social
infrastructure, too, the relationships of individuals and groups through
marriage and kinship, patronage and clientship and, most especially, in
the context of seventh-century Byzantium, through and within the appar-
atuses and the hierarchy of the state.
One of the most significant developments of the later Roman period was in
the area of kinship structures, 1 and the ways in which Christian marriage,
as a formal system of gift-exchange, property-transmission and social
1 For some introductory comments on the problem. see J. Thirsk, 'The family', Past and
Present 2 7 ( 1964). 116-22. the essays in S.C. Humphreys, The Family, Women and Death:
Comparative Studies (London 1983). and in R.N. Anshen, ed., The Family: Its Function and
Destiny (New York 1959), and esp. P. Laslett. 'Family and household as work group and
kin group: areas of traditional Europe compared', in R. \A/all et al., eds., Family Forms in
Historic Europe (Cambridge 1983), along with the other essays in that volume.
376
Infrastructures and hierarchies 377
state: although again, the first clear evidence of this process is from the
ninth century. Similarly, by the ninth century betrothal and marriage
were seen, at least by the Church, as more or less equally binding: so much
is implied in the replies of Pope Nicholas I to the questions on Christian
practice addressed to him by the Bulgar Tsar Boris-Michael in 866: and
this is the effect of novels 74 and 109 issued by Leo VI. 6 At the same time,
the process of prohibiting marriage within an ever-widening range of
cognates - beyond first, and later second, cousins - had been completed, in
theory, by the later seventh century. Such prohibitions are embodied in the
canons of the Quinisext council of 692 and are firmly laid down in the
Ecloga - although it is probable that they finally obtained general and
widespread acceptance and enforcement only in the eleventh century. 7
The Ecloga took up once more, although in a revised form, the heart of the
Justinianic legislation on divorce, which had been abrogated by Justin 11,
and there is a very marked tendency to reinforce the permanence of the
marital contract and to limit the possibilities for divorce. By the eighth
century, divorce could only be obtained (again at least in theory) with
some difficulty, after a hearing, a radical change from the traditional
Roman practice. With its emphasis on family-law, especially the dis-
appearance of the patria potestas of the family head over his offspring once
they had attained the age of majority, the Ecloga marks an important stage
in the consolidation of the orthodox nuclear family of the middle ages. 8
The stimulus to this legislative activity on the part of both Church and
state, it has been suggested, is to be located in the reaction to a very
different tendency in many parts of the empire, namely the reassertion
from the later third century of close ties of consanguinity in marriage
arrangements, and in particular the emphasis on cross-cousin marriage
(that is, between sons of sisters and daughters of brothers of the same
6 See Justinian, Nov. 94 (a. 538), 4-5: and compare with Ecloga 11, 6. See H.J. Wolff. 'The
background of the post-classical legislation on illegitimacy', Seminar 3 (1945), 21-45
(repr. in Opuscula Dispersa (Amsterdam 1974), pp. 135-59). For the ninth-century evi-
dence, see, for example, Epanagoge XVI. 1.
7 See the summary in Beck, Kirche, pp. 87fT. with literature.
s See canon 54 (Mansi XI, 9680-E): Ecloga II. 2. For some general comments, see Sp. Troia-
nos, 'H J.LETa~a<J11 a-rro TO pwf.L<XLXO CTTO Bu,aVTLVO 8ixaL0 in Seventeenth International
9
•
Byzantine Congress, Major Papers. pp. 211-35: and D. Simon, 'Zur Ehegesetzgebung der
Isaurier', Pontes Minores I (1976). 16-43, see 30-42 (although the novel in question has
now been shown to date from the reign of Leo V, the general argument made in this article
remains valid). For the redating, see 0. Kresten, 'Datierungsprobleme "Isaurischer" Ehe-
rechtsnovellen.l. Coli. I 26', Pontes Minores IV (1979), 37-106, see 49-53. For the Roman
background, see the survey of Beryl Rawson, 'The Roman family'. in The Family in Ancient
Rome: New Perspectives (London and Sydney 1986), pp. 1-57: and esp. W.K. Lacey, 'Patria
Potestas', ibid., pp. 121-44. For a summary of the Byzantine developments. see
A. Schminck, art. 'Ehebruch', in Lexikon des Mittelalters lll (1986), 1660, and Zacharia,
Geschichte, pp. 55-83.
Infrastructures and hierarchies 379
were betrothed and married, strengthened the nuclear family unit at the
expense of both older, more diffused forms of kinship group. and of simple
concubinage and cohabitation. In effect. the Church tried to extend its
supervision over all areas of sexual relations by confining and limiting
them to a specific form of marital relationship, accompanied by a series of
concomitant parental rights and duties, property-regulating stipulations
and associated institutions such as God-parenthood. Another result was
the legal and the moral privileging of legitimate as opposed to illegitimate
children in respect of inheritance.
Parallel to these developments there evolved also the institution of
spiritual parenthood, between godparents and godchildren. Even these
relationships were assimilated within the general system of prohibited
degrees of affinity, so that the two systems constituted a mutually reinforc-
ing whole. Indeed, in Christian thought the spiritual relationship was
regarded as much superior to the merely fleshly kinship bond itself. 13
These changes did not occur evenly or all at once. Their evolution begins
already in the later third and early fourth centuries, if not before, in Roman
civil law: and still in the seventh century the stable system of later centuries
had not been attained. In the later ninth century, Leo VI had still to
legislate on relationships of spiritual and adoptive parenthood in order to
deal with continued failures to observe the relevant canons of the Quinisext
council, a point which demonstrates nicely the often considerable gap
between legislative theory and social practice. A similar divide no doubt
existed in respect of many other of the developments outlined above. But
the popular response to Heraclius' marriage to his niece Martina shows
that by this time at least the idea of conjugal and sexual ties between such
close kin was regarded with considerable distaste. One must recall, of
course, that figures greatly in the public eye attract more attention, and are
often expected to behave more closely in accordance with the codes
stipulated by the moral universe. than the rest of society. But the story is at
least indicative. 14
13 See Ecloga Il, 2, and XVII, 25 and 26: cf. canon 53 of the Quinisext (Mansi XI. 968C). For
the Justinianic legislation (less restrictive) see C] V, 4.26/2 (a. 530): and compare with the
ultimate results of these developments in terms of the attitudes to marriage, kinship. and
'blood' relationships in modern Greek rural society. as surveyed in J. Du Boulay. 'The
blood: symbolic relationships between descent, marriage, incest prohibitions and spiritual
kinship in Greece', Man. new series. 19 (1984), 533-56. with literature. In general on
godparenthood, see E. Patlagean. 'Christianisation et parentes rituelles: le domaine de
Byzance', Annales E.S.C .. 33 (1978). 625-36 (repr. in Structure sociale. no. XII): and. for a
recent survey of later developments. Ruth Macrides. 'The Byzantine godfather', BMGS 11
(1987). 139-62. See also the essay by A.A. Cekalova, in Udal'cova. ed .. Kul'tura Vizanlii.
14 See chapter 8 above. p. 304: and see Leo VI. Nov. 24 (in P. Noailles and A. Dain. Les
Novelles de Lion VI le sage: texte et traduction (Paris 1944), pp. 92-5). Note also the
comments of the twelfth-century canonist Balsamon on the relevant canon, 53. of the
Quinisext (Rhalles-Potles, Syntagma. vol. II. pp. 430f.). Whether the patriarch Sergius was
Infrastructures and hierarchies 381
also involved in this is unclear: seeP. Speck, 'Die Interpretation des Bellum Avaricum und
der Kater M£XAEJ.1.1t'E', in Poikila Byzantina VI: Varia II (Boon and Berlin 1987),
pp. 374-5.
15 See Patlagean, Pauvreti economique, pp. 128-45: and note the review by L. Couloubarit-
sis, in Revue beige de philosophie et d'histoire 60 (1982). 374-82, esp. 379f.
16 See Justinian, Nov. VI, 1.8 (a. 535): for the nomocanons, see Beck, Kirche, pp. 145fT.: and
see A. Schminck, art. 'Ehe', in Lexikon des Mittelalters Ill (1986), 1641--4.
For the different trajectories of Eastern and Western Christianity in these respects, see
J. Goody, The Development of the Family and Marriage in Europe (Cambridge 1983),
pp. 103fT.: but note the critique of C.J. Wickham, in Journal of Peasant Studies 14 (1986),
129-34: and D. Herlihy, Medieval Households (Cambridge, Mass. and London 1985),
pp. lOfT.: cf. also A. Esmein, Le Mariage en droit canonique (Paris 1929-35).
382 Byzantium in the seventh century
eralised use of the term familia in the sources, to refer to the wider
'extended' family network, with that for the actual practical, functioning
family unit, which was clearly the 'nuclear' unit. For the latter group no
real equivalent term existed; and it has been convincingly shown that,
until the wider network began to lose its more extended and ramified
elements, this remained the case. This evolution was part and parcel of the
social and cultural changes of the period from the third century on, of
course, and it is only when they are well under way that familia comes
actually to represent the reality of the elementary family group. The
practical disappearance after the fifth century of clan names, and the
reappearance of nomina gentilia only during the ninth century on any
substantial scale in the Byzantine world - a development which corres-
ponds more or less exactly with the rise of the new aristocracy of the
middle Byzantine period - is significant. The intervening centuries were
marked by the radical loosening of such wider ties and the absence of any
integrative kinship structure higher than the elementary family. The
almost complete lack of family names on seals or in the literary sources -
excluding nicknames or ethnonyms - during the later sixth, seventh and
earlier eighth centuries is in this respect particularly relevant. 17
By the end of the seventh century, therefore, Christian marriage seems to
have become, in legislative terms at least, the preferred form of social-
sexual organisation: while the elementary, or nuclear, family was rapidly
becoming the only significant unit of any social relevance. The legislation
itself marks only specific moments in the evolution and generalisation of
the social institutions themselves, of course, and its clear-cut formulations
can by no means be taken to mean that other forms of familial structure
did not continue to exist for some considerable time. There remained still
substantial areas of conflict between Church and state - over the question
of divorce, for example, and especially of remarriage, and over the question
of whether civil or ecclesiastical courts should have the final competence
over matters pertaining to marriage and divorce: but the attention paid to,
and emphasis placed upon, the elementary family unit, with its limited
lateral extensions, and the parallel institutions of spiritual parenthood,
demonstrates that by the later seventh and early eighth centuries these
were well on the way to becoming the key terms within which the social
relationships of Byzantine society were understood.
11 See the excellent analysis of Brent D. Shaw, 'The family in late Antiquity: the experience of
Augustine', Past and Present 115 (May 198 7), 3-51, with extensive literature: and the
comments of B. Rawson, The Roman Family, pp. 7ft'. For the Byzantine period, see F. Win-
kelmann, 'Probleme der gesellschaftlichen Entwicklung im 8./9. Jahrhundert', in Seven-
teenth International Byzantine Congress, Major Papers, pp. 57 7-90, see 581ft'.. and Quellen-
studien, pp. 143ft'.
Infrastructures and hierarchies 383
36 The classic survey of Charanis, 'Ethnic changes'. illustrates the point well.
Infrastructures and hierarchies 389
37 For later Roman systems of status-recognition. see Jones. LRE. vol. II. pp. 543fT.: K.M.
Hopkins, 'Elite mobility in the Roman empire', Past and Present 32 (1965). 12-26, and
'Social mobility in the later Roman empire: the evidence of Ausonius', Classical Quarterly.
new series, 11 (1961). 29-48: R. MacMullen, 'Social mobility and the Theodosian Code',
]RS 54 (1964). 49-53.
38 See }ones, LRE. vol. II. pp. 546fT. and 737-57: and chapter 4 above.
39 }ones. LRE. vol. I. pp. 387-90, and vol. II, pp. 5510'.: note also Cameron. 'Images of
authority', 27f.
390 Byzantium in the seventh century
has often given a false sense of the political hegemony of the senatorial elite
and those aspiring to membership of it.
In fact, the crucial position of the emperor in the whole edifice becomes
really clear only during the seventh century, for it is then that the
economic and cultural dominance of the old broad senatorial estab-
lishment, with its roots ultimately in the landowning, but still municipal.
elite of the provinces, finally crumbles under the various internal and
external pressures that have been discussed already. Its survival into the
middle decades of the seventh century is suggested by what little prosopo-
graphical evidence there is: beyond the 650s and 660s, however, it seems
clearly to have been unable to provide the staff and the leaders of the state's
apparatus that it had done hitherto. Increasingly, 'outsiders' of all kinds,
linguistically, ethnically and culturally, appear in important positions in
the administrative apparatus of the state, military and civil. 40 This
phenomenon is accompanied by a marked increase in the prominence and
relative value of what are in later sources referred to as 'imperial' as
opposed to 'senatorial' titles of rank, a distinction found in treatises on
titulature and precedence from the ninth century on, but which has its
roots in the late Roman period, more particularly in the developments of
the seventh century.
The original distinction is clear enough in the sixth century. As we have
seen, those who belonged hereditarily to the senatorial order bore the title
of clarissimus, and this is what was passed on by higher-ranking persons-
of illustris rank, for example- to their sons. By Justinian's reign, only those
who also held the titles of patricius, ex-consul. illustris and illustris inter
agentes could sit on the senate proper: and of these, it was mostly the active
illustres, who bore the epithet gloriosus or gloriosissimus (Gr. endoxotatos)
who represented the real power and who also occupied the higher posts,
civil and military, in the state.
These epithets all signified membership of the wider senatorial order.
They were not equated with specific positions or functions, referred to as
dignities, dignitates. Apart from titles awarded by the emperors in excep-
tional circumstances, such as nobilissimus, curopalates, Caesar (the latter
regularly employed during the sixth century to signify the emperor's
intended successor) and more commonly patricius, dignities were in the
first instance derived from offices, which could be bestowed on an active
basis, a titular basis (including the cingulum, or mark of office) or on an
honorary basis (involving the title only). It is likely that initially at least a
titular office was bestowed on persons who had actually held the office in
question. But by the sixth century the titles of consul, prefect and magister
between active posts and the older order of dignities appears, so that the
posts known in the later period as ci~LaL 81i.t AO'YOU (meaning that they
were awarded by the emperor's word), actual functional positions, while
they could be held on a titular basis (ci1T'paTwc;), were held in addition to a
title from the older order of dignities: the latter represent positions in the
hierarchy only. The development reflects a major change from and elabo-
ration upon the late Roman system, according to which any office among
higher grades could be awarded as a dignity of one sort or another and
was recognised as such even when it was at the same time an active
appointment. 44 The reasons for the change are not difficult to see. The
great government departments of the late Roman state were for the most
part fragmented during the seventh century, and a whole new range of
leading posts came to the fore. The majority of the older functional posts
became obsolete and disappeared entirely: only those dignities which were
already forming a distinctive order of titles and honorific ranks, alongside
the newly created or newly prominent functional posts of the seventh
century Byzantine state, survived.
The textual and sigillographic material for the period illustrates the
development. In the first place, a reference in the Typos of Constans 11 of
648, followed by an edict of Constantine IV in 680, orders the punishment
of laypersons who do not conform to the imperial order by depriving them
of their axiai, zone or strateia. 45 Here are the three Latin terms of dignitas,
cingulum and militia, and it seems reasonable to assume that they represent
the traditional late Roman distinction between, respectively, the possession
of an honorary or actual dignitas; the conferment of an office (whether in
actu or in vacante) and straightforward service in a branch of the imperial
civil or military establishment. 46 The distinction between axia and strateia
is more clearly expressed in the Ecloga, where a difference between dignity
and function is clear: although the former may well signify also the
assumption of an accompanying high post. 47 But the Byzantines them-
selves used the terms interchangeably, which leaves the modern commen-
tator, unsure of the exact context or the intentions of the writer, with a
number of difficulties. 48
What is clear, however, is the formation and existence by the later
44 See chapter 4. For the later system. see the discussion of Oikonomides. Preseance.
pp. 281fT. and Bury, Administrative System. pp. 21f. The difference was expressed in the
ways the dignities were awarded: known as a~iat. 8t.a ~pa~£iwv, they were bestowed
through insignia. The sixty or so functioning offices were awarded directly by the
emperor, hence their being referred to as a~iaL 8La A6-you. See Oikonomides. Prisiance.
pp. 281-2. and Bury, Administrative System, pp. 20fT. and 36fT.
4S Mansi X. 10320 and XI, 7120. 46 See C] XII. 8.2 (a. 440-1).
52 See the important comments of Winkelmann, Rang- und Amterstruktur, pp. 19-28.
s1 Ibid., p. 41.
54 Ibid., pp. 45-61 and 138.
55 See Zacos and Veglery, no. 2007: Laurent. Corpus. vol. ll, no. 278 with sources: and
Theophanes, 367.22sq.
5& See Haldon, Byzantine Praetorians, pp. 183-4, and Haldon's review ofWinkelmann. Rang-
und Amterstruktur, in BS 4 7 ( 1986 ), 229-32. see 2 32.
Infrastructures and hierarchies 395
But what is particularly important is that the titles - including those which
ought properly to be classed as 'senatorial': hypatos, apo hypatOn, apo
eparchon, stratelates, silentiarios and vestitor - now seem to be part of a
single system dependent upon the emperor's pleasure, which can be
combined with other titles according to the appointments currently or
formerly held. 57 Indeed, the titles listed above seem now to be the only
marks of membership of the senatorial 'order' itself, since the generic
epithets of illustris and magnificus seem to drop out of using during the first
part of the seventh century. Gloriosissimus is retained, as we have seen, in
its Greek form of endoxotatos, but only until the 740s. The fact that the first
two- hypatos, apo hypatan- were, at least until the eighth century, of high
status supports the contention that the senate as a body in Constantinople
retained a degree of prestige; but equally, the titles of eparchon and strate-
lates both lose in value. The titles of apo hypatOn and hypatos had rated the
epithet gloriosus and ranked at the top of the scale according to novel 62 of
the Emperor Justinian: the titular ranks of apo eparchon and magister
militum were classed among the second grade of illustres, as magnifici. 58
The devaluation of the latter titles during the second half of the seventh
century and the first part of the eighth is important, because it reflects the
firm establishment of the title stratelates, for example, as a titular dignity;
its replacement in functional and practical respects by the office and title of
strategos; and its concomitant loss of status and value as it becomes
progressively divorced from the active, functional establishment of the
state. 59 Similarly, apo eparchon loses in value over the same period: and
both titles disappear after 899. The loss of status in the case of the title
ex-prefect may reflect the demise of the praetorian prefecture and the
splitting up of its civil-administrative functions, a development outlined in
chapter 5. The sigillographic evidence makes it clear that the 'senatorial'
titles were now part of a single system of hierarchy and were awarded on
just the same basis as the palatine or 'imperial' titles. Senatorial rank no
longer existed, for no senatorial order existed. Instead, a number of
senatorial titles survived, titles which presumably also conferred mem-
bership of the ceremonial body of the senate which played such an
important part in imperial and state ritual. 60
57 Winkelmann, Rang- und Amterstruktur, pp. 45ff.
58 Justinian, Nov. 62, 2 (a. 537): for the equivalence of magister militum and prefect see
Justinian, Nov. 70 (a. 538).
59 By the middle of the ninth century, it had come to occupy the lowest place in the
hierarchy: see Winkelmann, Rang- und Amterstruktur, p. 39.
60 See Oikonomides, Preseance, p. 295 and references. The history of these titles in the
exarchate of Ravenna is, as might be expected, very similar. See the analysis of Brown.
396 Byzantium in the seventh century
What this implies. of course, is that the older senatorial order had
withered away. 61 All 'senators' were henceforth imperially sponsored, as
the incorporation of 'senatorial' titles into an imperial system of prece-
dence demonstrates. And this implies that the economic power and cul-
tural authority of the socio-economic groups from which the illustres had
been drawn had been fragmented or destroyed. In effect. while the senate
may still have had some authority in state affairs, by nature of its physical
context - in the capital city of the empire - and its traditions, it no longer
represented any sort of economic interest, a class of landowners whose
existence, however broadly defined and loosely composed in the late
Roman period, nevertheless reflected the dominance of a landowning
aristocracy of privilege, sharing in a common cultural heritage.
Additionally, the older senatorial elite had also based its position on the
tenure of high civil office, the provincial magistracies and governorships,
and so forth, and the majority of these seem either to have disappeared as
they became irrelevant to the changed situation or were very greatly
reduced in status. from about the middle of the seventh century. 62 From
this time, the senate was increasingly an assembly of imperially sponsored
title-holders, whose only real functions were to act on ceremonial occa-
sions as a symbol of Roman imperial tradition. Obviously, the senate could
still serve as a focus of opposition to. or a source of counsel and support for.
an emperor, simply because it included many of the leading officers of the
court - all those with the ranks of hypatos, apo hypat6n and patrikios, for
example. This can clearly be seen at the beginning of the reign of Constans
Il, at the beginning of this evolution, and in the last years of the seventh
century. 63
At first, as we have seen, the highest senatorial titles, those of hypatos
and apo hypaton, retained their status. But even they begin dwing the
eighth century to lose ground to 'imperial' titles, and the reasons for this
must surely be sought in the development sketched out above. As the
Gentlemen and Officers, pp. 136fT., with a critique of E. Stein, ·La Disparition du Senat de
Rome a la fin du VIe siecle', Bull. de la Classe des Lettres de l'Acad. de Belgique 23 (193 7).
365-90 (repr. in Opera minora select.a (Amsterdam 1968), pp. 359-84).
61 While the situation in Italy was by no means the same, the process of the withering-away
of the older senatorial elite offers a number of important parallels: see Brown, Gentlemen
and Officers, pp. 21-3 7. Continuity, on the other hand, can be much more clearly
observed in the early medieval West, as shown in the analysis of A. Demandt. 'Der
spatromische Mllltaradel', Chiron 10 (1980), 601-36.
62 See Arnheim, Senatorial Aristocracy, esp. pp. 15 5-71 for the senate as a social-economic
elite in the later Roman period.
63 See Beck, Senat und Volk, pp. 31f., 42fT. and 49, and the remarks at 57f. Since the leading
state offices were usually accompanied by the rank of patrikios, apo hypatOn, hypatos and so
on, all such officials, whether active or titular. will have been of senatorial status. Even in
the later period this was the assumption: see, for example, De Cer., 15.6-7: 174.11-12:
290.16sq.
Infrastructures and hierarchies 397
67 See, for example, Haldon, Byzantine Praetorians, pp. 18 Sff. (spatharioi); Guilland, Recher-
ches, vol. I, pp. 277-9; Diehl. L'Exarchat de Ravenne, p. 173 note 2 (koubikoularioi); see
Laurent, Corpus, vol. 11, s.t. koubikoularios, silentiarios, chartoularios, sakellarios: and
Haldon, Byzantine Praetorians, p. 188 note 415: Brown, Gentlemen and Officers,
pp. 134-5.
68 See Jones, LRE, vol. 11. pp. 523fT.: Arnheim, Senatorial Aristocracy, pp. 103fT.
69 See the useful list of Yannopoulos, La Societi profane. pp. 14fT. In general. see the articles of
R. Guilland, 'La Noblesse de race a Byzance', BS 9 ( 1948), 307-14 (repr. in Recherches,
Infrastructures and hierarchies 399
vol. I. pp. 15-22): 'La Noblesse byzantine a la haute epoque'' 'EA.A1]VLXa, 1t'apQp'1'TU.La 4:
Ilpouq;opa ei~ ITiATrtuVa n. Kvp£axi81]V (Thessaloniki 1953), pp. 255-66 (repr. in
Recherches, vol. I. pp. 2 3-31 ). For the epithet 'son of in its various forms, see Nesbitt,
'Double names on early Byzantine lead seals', 109ff.
7° E.g. Vita Theod. Stud., 116B (€v -yiv£1. ... ~a~1rp<i>v): Vita Blasii Amor., 659E (Twv
E1TI.<ri}~wv): Vita Evaristi, 300.20-1 (E'Tt'L<PaviO"TaTOL xa~ 1t'Epioo~o1.): Vita Nicephori
Medic., 405, cap. 5.9 (-yivouc; 1r£p1.~~£1t'Tou): Vita Euthymii lun., 16.21 (£inraTpi&a .. ):
Vita loannis Psichaitae, 18.22 (E1t''-<PaV£Lc;): Vita Alypii styl., 161.11 (1r£PI.<PaV£Lc;): and so
on. For the exarchate of Ravenna, see Brown, Gentlemen and Officers, pp. 166fT.
71 For example, Anastasius of Sinai, Quaestiones, 504A: Vita loannis Eleemosyn., 77.18:
Miracula S. Artemii, 14.22: Vita Grey. Agrigent., 633B: Vita Antonii Iun., 197.28
(apxovrEc;): Miracula S. Artemii, 11.21-2: 44.22 (ivoo~o .. TOiJ 1ra~aTiou): and the list at
Yannopoulos, La Societe profane, p. 15 notes 32-50. For the reassertion of these concepts
in the ninth century, see E. Patlagean, 'Les Debuts d'une aristocratie byzantine et le
temoignage de l'historiographie: systeme des noms et liens de parenre aux IXe-xe siecles',
in The Byzantine Aristocracy, IX to XIII centuries (BAR. Int. Ser., 221, Oxford 1984),
pp. 23-43. See also Winkelmann, Quellenstudien, pp. 143ff.
400 Byzantium in the seventh century
municipality, and second, the wider polity. Personal loyalty to God and to
one's family eventually came to be expressed as priorities at the very least
equivalent to, when not actually superior to, loyalty to the state or to a
notion of 'society'. The development is clearly expressed at a later date- in
the vernacular tradition of the akritic cycle, for example, or in the eleventh-
century Strategikon of Kekaumenos 72 - but its origins lie in the trans-
formations of the later sixth and seventh centuries.
Individuals were now perceived of as the responsible - culpable -
elements In God's universe and in society, in a way which had not been the
case before. The new emphasis, as has been pointed out, is most apparent
in the way in which the body and the individual become the centre of
attention in the penal law of the later seventh century and the eighth
century, especially and most explicitly in the Ecloga. 73 Indeed, by a series
of metaphors drawn from the Christian and the Judaic traditions, a
body-symbolism was evolved which, while it had come into being already
in the Roman period, was first formally elaborated in the Bcloga. Nasal
mutilation was thus associated with sexual offences, while the putting out
of eyes was related to crimes of sacrilege and, by extension, to treason. The
two were, of course, associated, for power and sexuality, and the meta-
phors by which these were represented in symbolic discourse, are univer-
sally related. 74
Emphasis on the body as the individual, and on public and dramatically
obvious physical punishment as retribution, as evidence of the nature of
the crime and as a demonstration of imperial authority. is only one side of
the coin, however. For at the same time, the linking of notions of corporal
mutilation with both Christian morality and imperial philanthropy and the
very concept of the individual's direct responsibility to God for his or her
sins 75 flew in the face of the traditional Roman ideal of the family headed
and guided by the just paterfamilias. It was a set of attitudes which could
have flourished only at the cost of both the concept and the structure of the
traditional family, however these may have been shaped: and, as we have
seen, one of the key developments over this period was the reduction in the
authority of the head of the family and a strengthening of the moral
12 For some valuable comments on the representation of relationships or honour, shame and
patronage In these texts, see P. Magdallno, 'Honour among Romalol: the framework of
social values In the world of Dlgenes Akrltes and Kekaumenos', BMGS 13 (1989)
183-218. On the developments outllned here. see Haldon, 'The miracles of Artemlos and
contemporary attitudes'.
71 See B. Patlagean, Byzance et le blason pinal du corps, 4050'. (cited note 24, chapter 10,
above).
74 See Ibid., 407.
75 These elements are all fundamental to the narrative In the miracles of Artemlus and
Therapon, and many others: and they are echoed In many other texts with Increasing
emphasis from the seventh century on. See. for example, Anastaslus of Sinal. Quaestiones,
55 (617 A-6208, esp. 6178-C).
Infrastructura and hierarchies 401
76 On the patria potestas, see the literature in note 8, chapter 10, above.
77 See the evidence assembled In Hunger, Proolmlon, passim.
402 Byzantium in the seventh century
implicit in the structure of late Roman social organisation and culture, and
also emphasised the isolation of the East Roman world and the imperial
Church. It is hardly surprising that the motif of the Chosen People found a
particular echo in the surviving literature of the time. 78
78 The concomitant representation of the emperor as a new David illustrates and emphasises
the attitudes of the times: see Cameron, 'Images of authority', 21-2: see also S. MacCor-
mack, in B 52 (1982), 287-309, see 295fT.: Dvornik, Early Christian and Byzantine
Political Philosophy. vol. Il, pp. 797 and 823.
CHAPTER I I
The literature and the art of the period we are concerned with represents
one aspect of the social and cultural whole of the late antique and early
medieval east Mediterranean civilisation which is the object of our
enquiry. In itself it is, of course, a vast field which has been studied under a
number of subcategories, and I shall not attempt a descriptive account of
them all here.
My concern is rather with the ways in which these forms of represen-
tation functioned during the course of the seventh century in a way
which has rendered them peculiarly difficult of access to later commen-
tators. They were vehicles for the self-representation of the culture
which produced them. They symbolised and transmitted, for different
elements of the population, according to their means of access to them,
fragments of an ideological system and a cultural universe. And at the
same time, they constituted the shape of that cultural and symbolic
universe, which we can observe both through these forms and through
other sources.
These are normal and fundamental functions of artistic and literary
production. But in the east Mediterranean world of the later sixth century
and after, symbols that were culturally available evoked and were focused
around specific aspects of that symbolic universe in a way which contrasts
with that of the preceding years, a focusing which is part and parcel of the
attempts at re-evaluation and reaffirmation discussed already in chapter 9.
This is not to suggest that this process, at least in its main elements, was in
any way one which was consciously undertaken or executed. In one of its
most obvious - and fundamental - features, it clearly was not: by the later
sixth century, the linguistic Hellenisation of the state and its administrative
apparatuses, and all that depended upon or was associated with the state
(the senatorial elite or the Church, for example), was well advanced, a
process that was effectively completed during the years of the early Arab
403
404 Byzantium in the seventh century
conquests. 1 The old world of Latin West and Greek East, sharing a unified
political culture, was a thing of the past, in spite of the continued existence
of Byzantine possessions in North Africa until the late seventh century and
in Italy until after the middle of the eighth century. 2
Latin left its mark, of course, most clearly in legal terminology and
literature, where it remained the basis of the technical jurisprudential
vocabulary: and also in the field of mechanics and especially military
equipment and organisation, as well as in numerous words and terms for
items of everyday use, both in domestic and agricultural terms. But the
language of state and diplomacy was Greek, and already by the middle of
the century letters and other documents to and from Constantinople to the
West were accompanied by translations. 3
By the end of the reign of Phocas, the Slav occupation of much of the
Balkans, and the existence of the Avar dominion, had severed any regular
and direct land link between the Greek-speaking southern Balkans and the
Latin-speaking provinces around the Danube. Most importantly, the lan-
1 For general surveys, see H. Zilliacus, Zum Kampf der Weltsprachen im ostr6mischen Reich
(Helsingfors 19 3 5 ): L. Hahn, 'Zum Sprachenkampf im romischen Rei eh bis auf die Zeit
Justinians', Philologus, Suppl. 10 (1907), 675-798, and 'Zum Gebrauch der lateinischen
Sprache in Konstantinopel', in Festgabe fur Martin von Schanz (Wiirzburg 1912),
pp. 173-83: note also the review by F. DOlger of Zilliacus, Zum Kampf der Weltsprachen. in
BZ 3 6 ( 19 3 6 ). 108-17. More recently. H. Mihaescu has studied the relationship between
Greek, Latin and Daco-Roman or Slav cultural-linguistic zones in the late Roman and early
Byzantine world. See especially the summary article, with more up-to-date literature. in
'Die Lage der zwei Weltsprachen (Griechisch und Latein) im byzantinischen Reich des 7.
Jahrhunderts als Merkmal einer Zeitwende', in Studien zum 7. ]ahrhundert, pp. 95-100. On
the background to the changes of this period, see G. Dagron, ·Aux origines de la civilisation
byzantine: langue de culture et langue d'etat'. RH 241 (1969), 23-56: see esp. 360'.
2 For North Africa, see Cameron. 'Byzantine Africa', and for Italy, Brown, Gentlemen and
Officers, pp. 650'. and esp. H. Steinacker. 'Die romische Kirche und die griechischen Sprach-
kenntnisse des Friihmittelalters'. Mitteilungen des Institutsfilr osterreichische Geschichtsforsch-
ung 62 ( 19 54), 28-66. Southern Italy and Sicily had since the sixth century B. C. had
notable Greek elements, of course. and this seems to have been strengthened during the
seventh century A.D., at least in the far south and in Sicily, by refugees from the
Peloponnese. See A. Guillou, 'Italie meridionale byzantine ou Byzantins en Italie meridi-
onale', B 44 (1974), 152-90 (repr. in Culture et societi en Italie byzantine XV (London
1978): C. Mango, 'La Culture grecque et l'Occident au VIIIe siecle', in Settimane di Studio del
Centra ltaliano di Studi sull' alto Medioevo XX. 2 (Spoleto 1973), pp. 683-719: P. Charanis,
'On the question of the Hellenization of Sicily and southern Italy in the Middle Ages'.
American Historical Review 52 ( 1946/ 7). 74-8 7.
3 Note the comments of Pope Gregory I (Gregorii I Papae Registrum Epistolarum. eds. P. Ewald
and L.M. Hartmann, in MGH. Epp. 1 and 2 VII, 27 (2nd edn. Berlin 1957), p. 474: 'hodie in
Constantinopolitana civitate, qui de latino in graeco dictata bene transferant non sunt.' For
Latin in military language, see Mihaescu. Die Lage der zwei Weltsprachen, 99 and note 24.
and 'Les Termes de commandement Iatins dans le Strategicon de Maurice', Revue de
Linguistique 14 (1969), 261-72. In the field of law, Latin clearly had a considerable
influence: but already by the later sixth century the greater part of imperial legislation
promulgated from Constantinople was in Greek. See L. Wenger, Die Quellen des romischen
Rechts (Vienna 19 53). esp. p. 660.
Language. literature and the icon 405
guage of the orthodox Church in the East was always firmly Greek, and it
had indeed been predominantly Greek-speaking thinkers and theologians
who had been pre-eminent in the religious controversies and who had set
the pace in theological debate In the centuries since the peace of the
Church. It Is perhaps symptomatic that the great leaders of the religious
opposition to monotheletism in North Africa and Italy were - with the
exception of Pope Martin - Greek-speakers and that the key debates in the
controversy were carried out in Greek, even in North Africa - the famous
debate between Maximus and Pyrrhus, for example, in Carthage in the
year 645. 4 It is this accelerating process of linguistic Hellenisation which
provides the backdrop to the developments described in what follows.
Two phenomena in particular deserve our attention: and although
neither is limited exclusively to the seventh century, it is then that the
context described in the foregoing chapters of this book gives them a
particular weight and significance. It should be made clear from the outset
that these elements played themselves an equal part in painting the picture
of the seventh century that we can construct from our sources, they were
integral aspects of a continuing dialectical process. The two phenomena in
question are: the increased centrality in both ideological and artistic-
representational terms of icons and the decline and near disappearance of
secular literature. They are not linked directly, but they are part of the
same pattern of cultural changes which I have attempted to describe. And
they constitute a crucial pointer to the character of seventh-century
culture and belief.
and their lifelike and almost humanly accessible quality. This may have
been the case: although it assumes without argument a questionable
essentialism of perception - that what we might today feel to be 'more
approachable' held the same symbolic and emotive values for a medieval
observer. I will return to this problem shortly. For it is clear, on the other
hand, that accessibility and receptiveness could equally well be expressed
in the 'abstract' form. It is less the style itself which promotes or inhibits
accessibility than the context in which the figures are represented, and in
which 'style' and 'form' are attributed with specific meaning, and
symbolic-evocational functions. As we will see, it is important to remember
that different cultures also perceive differently - from each other as well as
from us. And it seems a reasonable surmise that it was the linear, hieratic
and abstract mode of representation which came to meet best the demands
of the producer and the beholder. It seems to have responded to and
reflected the attitudes of the late sixth and seventh centuries, which sought
an affirmation of the heavenly, and therefore unsullied, unassailable,
status and authority of the prototypes which the icon encapsulated.
Imperial parallels, on coins of the later seventh century, for example,
would appear to bear this out, given the need to express and reinforce
imperial authority at this time. We may reasonably conclude that auth-
ority and status were represented iconographically by an abstract, hieratic
style, more effectively than by the alternatives. 15
Both in theological argument (elaborated during the sixth and seventh
centuries) 16 and in the common perception, icons came to be understood
as being transcendentally related to their prototypes: they were sources,
therefore, of the holy and the sacred. Icons seem to have responded, both in
their physical dissemination and their easy availability, on the one hand,
and in the style in which they were executed, on the other hand, to the
need for a more immediate mode of access to God or his representatives. At
first, the 'illusionist' or 'Hellenistic' mode dominated. But I would argue
that the adoption of an abstract mode - a style in which, as we have said,
1s For a detailed description and analysis of this icon, seeK. Weitzmann, The Monastery of St.
Catherine at Mt. Sinai, the Icons, I: From the sixth to the tenth century (Princeton 197p).
pp. 19-21. For the notion that icons were rendered more approachable through the us~·of
an illusionist mode of representation, see J. Herrin, 'Women and the faith in Icons In early
Christianity', in Culture, Ideology, Politics: Essays for Eric Hobsbawm, eds. R. Samuel and
G. Stedman-Jones (London 1982), pp. 56-83: and for imperial models of solemnity,
authority and power, and the ways in which these were thought to be best represented.
see the detailed fourth-century description of the Emperor Constantius by Julian: Oratio I
(in ]ulian, Letters and Works. ed. and trans. W.C. Wright (London and Canmbridge, Mass.
1954), p. 96): and see note 19, chapter 11 below
t6 Kitzinger, 'Images before iconoclasm', 139-46. Note in particular qu. 39 of the Ps.-
Athanasius Quaestiones ad Antiochum ducem (PG XXVIII. 597-708) datable possibly to the
630s, which is a brief justification of the use of holy images, and in which their miraculous
attributes are taken quite for granted - see 621A-D.
Language, literature and the icon 413
Plate 11.3 Icon of the Virgin and child (detail) between St Theodore and St George,
with flanking angels, monastery of St Catherine, Sinai
414 Byzantium in the seventh century
Plate 11.4(b) Solidus of Constans II with Constantine, his son (obverse and reverse)
the key figures were represented as passive and motionless, attentive and
ready to be approached by the supplicant - must have been also a
functional response to a qualitative change in the nature of this demand;
more particularly, to the need for both accessibility, differentiation from
the earthly world, and undeniable spiritual authority - something which
the naturalistic portraits of the Hellenistic tradition were perhaps less able
to communicate. For the •illusionist' mode, at least when individual or
small groups of figures were concerned, was less approachable, if only
because it depended upon a dynamism and narrative involvement within
the composition itself, which necessarily restricted the observer to that role
alone, excluding him or her from actually approaching and being received
by the object of devotion. 1 7
The process by which painters of icons and mosaicists arrived at this
particular mode of expression is a more difficult problem of course, and one
which I cannot do justice to here. What is clear is that, by the later sixth
17 See E. Kitzinger, 'On some icons of the seventh century', in Late Classical and Medieval
Studies in Honor of Albert Mathias Friend, jr. (Princeton 1955), pp. 132fT. For the lack of
personal accessibility and involvement inherent in the three-dimensional, dynamic art of
the classical period. see T.J. Boatswain, 'Images of uncertainty: some thoughts on the
meaning of form in the art of late Antiquity'. BMGS 12 (1988). Note also the comments of
J.-M. Spieser, 'Image et culture: de l'iconoclasme a la renaissance macedonienne', in
G. Siebert, ed., Methodologie iconographique (Strasbourg 1981 ), 96f. and esp. Onians (see
note 10 chapter 11 above).
Language, literature and the icon 415
20 See, for example, K. Weitzmann. 'The study of Byzantine book illumination, past and
present', in The Place of Book Illumination in Byzantine Art. ed. G. Vikan (Princeton 19 7 5 ).
p. 160, see 3-4.
21 For a general survey of the concept of 'art' in modern culture, see Janet WoltT. Aesthetics
and the Sociology of Art (London 198 3 ), and The Social Production of Art (London 1981 ):
and for the question of aesthetic value-attribution, R. lngarden. 'Artistic and aesthetic
values'. in H. Osborne, ed .. Aesthetics (Oxford 1972). pp. 39-54. See also R. Wollheim. Art
and its Objects (Harmondsworth 1968 ).
Language. literature and the icon 419
understood. The crucial problem for the modern interpreter is to grasp the
modalities of style which represent shifts in the interpretational patterns,
first of all: and then - much more difficult - to relate these changes in style
to the functional demands placed upon artistic representation (whether
those demands were explicit or- as is more usual- implicit). This assumes,
of course, that shifts in modes of representation also tie in with, affect and
reflect, shifts in the perceived or the required significance of a represen-
tation. The real problem is to see to what emotional and psychological
needs a change in aesthetic actually responds, or may itself stimulate. And
it is at just this point that the question of universals must be addressed.
Now, it seems to be a reasonable assumption that certain elements of our
aesthetic responses are universal - if only because all human creative and
artistic activity is carried on by the same biological being. Just as there
appear to be phylogenetically determined capacities to generate linguistic
structures or to employ different modes of cognition - symbolic, semantic
and so on - so the probability of some phylogenetically determined faculty
to respond to certain types of form- size, depth and so on- and colour,
which structures the possibilities of production and interpretation, seems
unavoidable. Sentiments or moments in human experience which remain
universal and constant- such as love, hate, fear, death, birth, ageing and
so on - whatever the cultural variation in their mode of expression and
representation, are common to all. And, if - using socially inflected
conventions - an artist, or a whole style of representation, is able to evoke
such basic elements of experience, this serves at least as part of the
explanation for the ability of some works to transcend cultural barriers. 22
The problem remains to recognise exactly what each different culture
understands by a specific style and how its effects were given expression.
If we accept the possibility of both a deep structure of aesthetic responses
and a given cultural-aesthetic continuum, then we can justifiably apply
some of our criteria to artifacts not directly of our own culture, but of
cultures which have a specific and determinate historical affinity with ours.
If we reject these premises, of course, then we must seek some direct
statement from the culture itself on the aesthetic qualities concerned, and
the role they were held to play. 2 3
In the case of the orthodox, Byzantine world we are fortunate to have
some comments from members of the culture itself; and so, while I would
certainly argue for both a historical-cultural affinity as well as a generative
22 See in particular the work of Sebastian Timpanaro, On Materialism (London 1975): and
Raymond WiUiams, 'Problems of materialism', New Left Review 109 (May-June, 1978),
3-17, see 10.
23 See in this respect R. Wollheim, 'Aesthetics, anthropology and style', in M. Greenhalgh
and V. Megaw, eds., Art in Society (Ithaca and London 1978), esp. pp. Str.
420 Byzantium in the se\'enlh century
and phylogenetically determined aesthetic faculty, this need not be the only
basis for any assumptions we might make. Such statements confirm the
validity of our interpretation of the different modes of representation: in
particular, the difference between, and different aesthetic-psychological
functions of, the 'illusionist' and the 'abstract' styles described. 24 Later
Byzantine writers stress particularly the centrality of ·order' and
motionlessness, both in invoking the accessibility of the figures portrayed
and in emphasising their other-worldliness and authority, themes which
have been discussed and stressed by other scholars. 25 Of course, such
conscious formulations were also subject to long-term historical evolution
and represent possibly only a certain stage in the development of Byzantine
understanding and explanations of their figurative art. But it is at least
clear that such art was always open to interpretation and explanation and
that there existed at different times differently nuanced but generally avail-
able sets of notions about the function of images. 26 In the sixth century,
Nil us Scolasticus remarked that the image of an angel immediately evoked
the heavenly sphere: Agathias comments that the image imprints itself
within the beholder. 27 What these, and many other comments, suggest is
the evocational. which is to say the symbolic, power of images.
Some scholars have argued that there is .. no (conscious) symbolism in
Byzantine art, and that. on the contrary. it was intended to be explicit and
realistic. But this seems to miss the point at issue. The problem revolves not
around whether or not Byzantine commentators or theologians imbued
religious art with a conscious symbolism. but rather whether the notion of
'reality' in figural art was broadened or redefined and whether it became
more nuanced, according to the nature and explicit function of the work in
question. 28 In other words, and as I have argued above. the shifts in mode,
and the choice of a particular mode, may well represent explicit decisions
and intentions on the part of the craftsman or the patron: but this in itself
reflects the availability to the culture of a choice in mode of representation
at a tacit or subconscious level. that is, at a level at which emotional and
evocational stimuli operate, and as a function of iconographic intention. 29
24 See especially Henry Maguire. 'Truth and convention in Byzantine descriptions of works
of art'. DOP 28 (1974). 113-40: and the essays ofByckov. Popova and Komec (chapters
15. 16 and 17) in Udal' cova, ed .. Kul'tura Vizantii.
2s For example, Kazdan and Constable, People and Power in Byzantium, pp. 104f.
26 See Mathews, Byzantine Aesthetics. for example. whose survey of the literary sources
makes this abundantly clear. whether one accepts his conclusions or not.
21 Anthologia Palatina I. 33 and 34.
2s Mango. Byzantium: the Empire of New Rome. p. 264. for example. argues against any
symbolism. But see H. Maguire. Earth and Ocean: The Terrestrial World in Early Byzantine
Art (London. Pa. 198 7). pp. 5-15. 81-4.
29 See, for example. the comments of Th. Adorno, Aesthetic Theory, eds. G. Adorno and
R. Tiedemann. Engl. trans. C. Lenhardt (London and New York 1984), esp. pp. 8-9.
Language. literature and the icon 421
33 See. for example. C. Mango. The Art of the Byzantine Empire. Sources and Documents
(Englewood Cliffs. N.J. 1972), p. 38 (description of the martyrdom of St Euphemia. late
fourth century): and esp. H. Maguire. Art and Eloquence in Byzantium (Princeton 1981 ).
pp. 34fT.. and 'Truth and Convention' (cited. note 24, chapter 11. above). 22f. The
development has been discussed at length. for the ninth century, by Leslie Brubaker,
'Byzantine art in the ninth century: theory, practice and culture', BMGS 13 (1989).
2 3-94 and 'Perception and conception: art, theory and culture in ninth-century Byzan-
tium', Word and Image 5 (1989). 19-32. The importance of tears as a purifying and
cleansing element is made apparent in the writings of Anastasius of Sinai. In qu. 105 (PG
LXXXIX, 757C4-760A8) and at several points in his Oratio de Sacra Synaxi (PG LXXXIX.
832D-833A. 83 7A) their importance for true repentance and understanding is made
very clear.
34 See Vita Tarasii. 414.18sq. 35 Mansi XIII. 9. 11 and 32.
Language. literature and the icon 423
42 Kltzinger. 'Images before iconoclasm', 96-100: and see V. Nunn. 'The encheirion as
adjunct to the Icon in the middle Byzantine period', BMGS 10 (1986), 73-102.
• 1 For a similar point, although from a different standpoint. J. Onians, •Abstraction and
imagination in late Antiquity', Art History 3 (1980). 1-23.
44 Mansi XI. 9778-9808 and 9850: see Kltzlnger, 'Images before Iconoclasm', 120f.: Anna
Kartsonis, Anastnsls: The Making of an I1nage (Prlnceton 1986), p. 59.
Language, literature and the icon 425
The second of the two phenomena noted above, namely the more or less
complete disappearance after the first quarter of the seventh century of a
secular literature, has invoked much comment and discussion. The obvious
explanation- that the conditions of that century. and indeed of much of the
following century, did not provide an environment at all conducive to such
activity - is clearly correct. But how does this very general explanation
relate to the specific developments in question? After the late-sixth- or
early-seventh-century works ofTheophylact Simocatta, for example, or the
anonymous Paschal Chronicle, or that of John of Antioch, there is a lacuna
of almost two centuries until the next surviving historical work. Similarly,
the seventh and much of the eighth century provide no examples of
geographical, philosophical or philological literature: 1there is no historical
poetry after George of Pisidia, and only a trickle of legal literature and
secular rhetoric. Apart from supposed lost histories of a certain Trajan
patrikios of the seventh century and of the so-called megas chronographos, or
'great chronographer', of the eighth century, the letters of a few Church-
men and the powerful, the very small amount of legal literature mentioned
already and the surviving documents of state and Church as institutions,
the literary output of the seventh century appears to have been almost
entirely theological in nature, or at the least concerned with matters of
dogma, devotion, various aspects of liturgical practice, problems of day-to-
day piety and observance, and so on. 45
Now the fact that theological and related literary genres maintain a
written existence, whereas the forms of secular literary activity suffer a
dramatic decline. is clearly a reflection of the difficulties of the seventh
century and must in the first instance be a reflection of a change in the
45 The relevant data with detailed surveys can be found In Hunger. Profane Literatur. vols. I
and 11. See. too. the chapter of A.A. Averincev on late Roman literature In Udal' cova. ed .•
Kul'tura Vlunrtll, who remarks also on the break In genre and continuity which sets In
with the work of George of Plsldia and John Moschus. For Trajan patrilclos see Hunger.
Profane Llteratur, vol. I, pp. 337 and 345: D. Serruys, 'Recherches sur l'epltome', BZ 16
(-1907). 1-52: A. Markopoulos. ·A la recherche des textes perdus. L'hlstorlographle
byzantlne de la haute epoque jusqu I au VIII· slecle. Btude prellmlnaire' in From Late
I
Antiquity to Early Byzantium. ed. V. Vavfinek (Prague 1985). pp. 203-7. The cultural
break which the seventh century represents affected secular letter-writing also. See
M. Mullett, 'The classical tradition In the Byzantine letter', in Byzantium and the Classical
Tradition, pp. 75-93. seep. 86. Note also the survey of B. Jeffreys. 'The Image of the Arabs
In Byzantine literature', Seventeenth International Byzantine Congress, Major papers (New
York 1986). pp. 305-23, see pp. 312-14. Por a good survey of the nature of late Roman
historical writing and the problem of the break ln the tradition, see L.M. Whltby. 'Greek
historical writing after Procopius: variety and vitality', In Averil Cameron, and L. Conrad,
eds.• The Early Medieval Near East: Problems In the Lluracy Source Maurlal (Prlnceton 1990):
also J.D.C. Frendo. 'History and Panegyric In the Age ofHeraclius: the Uterary Background
to the Composlton of the Histories ofTheophylact Simocatta', DOP 42 (1988). 143-56.
426 Byzantium in the seventh century
conditions within which the literary culture associated with late Roman
society had existed and flourished. Two elements in particular seem to be
relevant: the decline dwing the later sixth, but especially during the
seventh, century of traditional municipal society and culture: and the
qualitative change in the nature and constitution of the ruling elite. The
two are intimately bound up together, as I have tried to show in chapters 3
and 4 above. And it is clear that the demise of the urban civilisation within
which late Roman literary culture had flourished had a dramatic effect. A
real shift took place in the relationships between social class and literacy,
and more especially between the traditional sources of late Roman culture
and education, and the developing imperial elite of the court and the state
bureaucracy. The latter- for which there is evidence from the middle of the
seventh century - while it will certainly have incorporated established
families and representatives of the old senatorial elite, was recruited more
directly through imperial service and received its rewards through a more
centralised and autocratic system of precedence and hierarchy. It was
drawn from a variety of ethnic and cultural sources, and selection was
based more than previously, it would appear, upon practical administra-
tive, political and military ability, along with the patronage and influence
of those already 'in place'. It was this new, meritocratic elite which began to
dominate both provincial and central administrative apparatuses, along
with the sources of wealth and the means of controlling its distribution. The
older, leisured cultural elite quite simply lost its social prestige and its
economic standing. There is no reason to assume, of course, that the new
elite did not acknowledge the value of the old culture and its traditions, nor
indeed that it did not itself aspire to participate in that culture - so much is
clear from the later revival of interest in 'classical' learning and models of
literacy, and the enormous power of the notion of 'the past' in Byzantine
thinking. But the dominant tendency does seem to have been at least
apathetic in our period with regard to these traditions.
The lack of literature in the fields mentioned above - which cannot
possibly be a reflection of some supposed (and mysteriously selective)
failure of the literary output of the seventh and early eighth centuries to
survive - confirms the hypothesis: the fact that theological literature does
survive, and in considerable volume, makes it certain. For the Church
maintained its traditional administrative organisation and, to a great
extent, within the empire, its sources of revenue. It needed to be able to
educate its clergy, and it needed literate and cultured men for its highest
offices. 46 But even here, it was topical questions of the day, the study of the
writings of the Church fathers and of the general councils, along with
scripture and exegesis that provided the main fields of concern. Interest in
the pre-Constantinian, much less the pre-Christian, culture of the past was
a rarity. 47
The nature ofhagiographical writing from the eighth century underlines
the character of the shift. Not only does the hagiography of the later eighth
century and after deal with a very different type of saint or holy man from
that familiar from the period up to the Arab conquests (as we might expect,
given the nature of the social and cultural changes already discussed): it
represents a different style of hagiographical narrative, in which the
connection with the forms of late antique literary types has been severed.
The seventh century did not by any means see the end of hagiography, but
it did witness a major qualitative change in its composition and presen-
tation.48 Just as significantly, the ethos which underlay the collection and
preservation through recopying of classical, patristic and historical texts in
the ninth and tenth centuries especially reinforces the nature of the break.
For the fear of losing forever the literature of the past (meaning, in effect, of
the period up to the mid-seventh century) seems to be a central motif. 49
By the same token, it is illustrative that the traditional secular system of
education seems to have disappeared almost entirely - with one or two
individual exceptions - and even in Constantinople was reduced to
insignificance. Whatever the value of the remark of the ninth-century
chroniclers that after 726learning in the Roman world was extinguished,
their comments certainly reflect a general situation. 50 Only an elementary
form of primary schooling seems to have carried on, if we exclude the
private tuition that must have been available to the wealthier; and it is
interesting that the regular use of the Psalter as the basic reading primer in
both Constantinople and the provinces probably begins in the years about
the middle of the seventh century. 5 1 As we have seen, there does seem to
47 Beck, Kirche, esp. pp. 430-73 on the period of the monenergite and monothelete debates,
for a representative survey.
48 See the discussion of L. Ryden, 'New forms of hagiography: saints and heroes', Seventeenth
International Byzantine Congress, Major Papers, pp. 537-54: and note W. Lackner, 'Die
Gestalt des Heiligen in der byzantinischen Hagiographie des 9. und 10. Jahrhunderts',
ibid., pp. 523-36.
49 As has been emphasised by H. Hunger, 'The reconstruction and perception of the past in
literature', Seventeenth International Byzantine Congress, Major Papers, pp. 507-22, esp.
519.
50 Theophanes, 405.10sq., and especially the story recorded in Georg. Monachi Chronicon,
742.2-22.
51 See Mango, Byzantium: The Empire of New Rome. pp. 136f.. for a brief survey of the
evidence: and for a more detailed picture, Anne MofJatt, 'Schooling in the iconoclast
centuries', in Iconoclasm, eds. Bryer and Herrin. pp. 85-92. See also Lemerle, Le premier
humanisme byzantin, pp. 98-103. See, for example. Vita Andreae Cretensis, eh. 3, where
Andreas receives an education in ta peza grammat.a. and later in ta hypsilottra mathemata.
That a traditional education of sorts continued to be available, to some, however, albeit
subordinated to the demands of theology and 'orthodoxy' (whether from a Chalcedonjan
428 Byzantium in the seventh century
have been a limited legal training available at Constantinople in the last
years of the seventh century, as canon 71 of the Quinisext suggests. But
there is no evidence for any other form of higher education. The use of the
Psalter reinforces the impression gained from the types of literary activity
that did flourish at this time that the Church and clergy came to play a
much more central role in basic and more advanced education than
hitherto, as well as in the transmission of literacy and a literary culture in
general, especially in respect of what was read. In effect, a cycle of
developments was set in train that could have had only one result: a
decline, even if temporary, of interest in, and transmission of, the secular
literature of the sixth century and before, contrasting with the emphasis
that fell upon the reading and production of theological literature. The
more pivotal position of the clergy in the maintenance of literacy and the
selection of reading matter was to have important consequences for a later
period. And it marks also a decisive break with the literary and cultural
pluralism of the late antique world.
What I am suggesting, therefore, is quite straightforward. The old
culture had been maintained within a specific ideological and social-
economic framework, that of the municipal economies and society of the
late Roman world and the senatorial elite which dominated central and
provincial culture and politics. During the seventh century this economic
and ideological framework was shattered. In its place there developed
gradually from the second half of the seventh century a new, and quite
different, social and political elite drawn from a wider variety of social and
cultural backgrounds, and founded within a centralised imperial estab-
lishment which came to be the sole effective source of wealth, power and
privilege. This new elite had very much less interest in and commitment to
the traditional literary culture and its values, concerning itself more
immediately with cementing its own power and position by and through
the imperial administrative apparatus which it served. Needless to say, this
tendency represents the sum ·of a host of individual aspirations and careers
- a conscious set of discourses and narratives which provided a common
political ideology for this group had hardly begun to develop at this stage.
Slowly, as this new elite became entrenched and as the structures of the
medieval Byzantine state began to emerge from the difficulties of the
seventh and eighth centuries, it began once more to cultivate its interest in
a supposedly classical past that was, as several historians have shown,
more late Roman than pre-Christian. Both the very limited degree of
literacy in the Byzantine world (in contrast with popular views on the
or a monophysite point of view) is clear from the case of the Armenian Ananias of Sirak.
whose 'biography' illustrates the point well. See J.-P. Mahe, 'Quadrivium et cursus
d'etudes au VIle siecle en Armenie et dans le monde Byzantin'. TM 10 (1987). 159-206.
Language. literature and the icon 429
1925) (originally in AB 43 (1925), 5-85 and 303-25): note esp. E. Patlagean, 'Ancienne
hagiographie byzantine et histoire sociale', Annales BSC 1 (1968), 106-26 (repr. in
Structure sociale V) who stresses precisely this point in relation to hagiography, collections
of miracles, and so forth. See also Patiagean, 'Discours ecrit, discours parle. Niveaux de
culture a Byzance aux Vllle-IXe siecles', Annales BSC 2 (1969), 264-78 (repr. in Structure
sociale VI).
55 See Beck, Kirche, pp. 4300., esp. 43 7 and 444: G. Dagron, 'Le Saint, le savant, l'astrolo-
gue. Etude de themes hagiographiques a travers quelques recueils de ..Questions et
reponses" des ve-vue siecles'. in Hagiographie, cultures et sociiti (lV"-Vlr siecles). Etudes
Augustiniennes (Paris 1981), pp.143-55 (repr. in La Romaniti chritienne IV): A. Garzya,
'Visages de l'hellenisme dans le monde byzantin (IVe-xne siecles)', B 55 (1985), 463-82.
Cf. H. DOrries, art. 'Erotapokriseis', in Reallexikon fur Antike und Christen turn 6,
pp. 34 7-70. See also G. Bardy, 'La Litterature patristique des Quaestiones et Responsiones
sur l'Ecriture sainte', Revue Biblique 41 (1932), 210-36, 341-69 and 515-37: ibid., 42
(1933), 328-52. Two collections of 'Questions and Answers' in particular deserve our
attention: the Quaestiones ad Antiochum ducem ofPs.-Athanasius (in PG XXVlll, 597-708)
and those attributed to Anastasius of Sinai (in PG LXXXIX. 312-824: see CPG m. 7746).
The fonner collection, compiled in the eighth or ninth century, clearly draws on the latter.
itself a product of the last years of the seventh century. The Ps.-Athanasius incorporates
what may be an earlier text, compiled at about the time of the forced baptisms of Jews
(632-4) undertaken by Heraclius, as the presence of a long argument clearly designed to
persuade Jews of the justice of the Christian case might suggest (PG XXVID, 684C-700C:
see CPG Ill, 7795). See in particular the literature cited at CPG m. 7746: and J.F. Haldon,
'The works of Anastasius of Sinai: a key source for the history of seventh-century east
Mediterranean society and belief', in Averil Cameron and L. Conrad, eds., The Early
Medieval Near East: Problems in the Literary Source Material (Princeton 1990).
just as important a source, both for the attitudes and beliefs of ordinary people, as well
as for the cultural and social history of the period, are the collections of narrationes or
stories about the doings and sayings of holy men and monks of the time. Perhaps the best
known are those contained in the Spiritual Meadow of John Moschus, a collection of the
early seventh century, including both earlier and contemporary eye-witness reports (CPG
m, 7367 for editions and literature). But those attributed to the monk or abbot Anasta-
sius, who may be Anastasius of Sinai, are equally important for the seventh century.
shedding light in particular on the Christian populations of the areas conquered by Islam.
See CPG Ill, 7758; and Haldon. 'The works of Anastasius of Sinai'.
Language. literature and the icon 431
60 See Dagron, 'Le Saint, le savant, l'astrologue'. 1460'. and chapter 9. above, pp. 3640'.
Compare the story of the magician and the icon recorded in the Life of Andrew the Fool
(note 53, chapter 11. above): Vikan, 'Art, medicine and magic', 68-70.
61 The so-called Apocalypse of pseudo-Methodius seems to have had a very wide audience:
that appended to the Life of Andrew the Fool occupied a similar place in the tradition. Both
represented and stressed the powerful (and predestined) bond between the Chosen People
and the divine plan, and placed much emphasis on the temporary nature of the set-backs
suffered by the empire in the second half of the seventh century. See the discussion in
chapter 9 above, pp. 3670'.: and Mango. 'The Life of Andrew the Fool reconsidered',
305-8.
62 See E. Kitzinger, The Art of Byzantium and the .\fedit\.-al \\'est (Bloomington and London
1976), pp. 200fT.: and the remarks of N. Baynes. ·The Hellenistic civilisation and East
Rome', in Byzantine Studies and Other Essays (Oxford 1960L pp. Sf.
434 Byzantium in the seventh century
rural and urban population of the empire, cultural patterns determined by
the stubborn anti-pluralism of the Church and the increasingly dominant
role played by the clergy - and by religious literature - in the maintenance
of literacy.
Of course, this is a generalised picture: individuals at court and in the
provinces still continued to be acquainted with and to foster the literature of
the past: and there can be no doubt that the average state official or
member of the imperial senate was different in his cultural horizons and
aspirations from the average peasant- even though these aspirations oper-
ated within the shared general framework just described. Further differenti-
ation between the populations of the now limited number of real urban
centres and that of the rural hinterland of the empire was inevitable.
Indeed, the population of Constantinople as a whole will have had a very
different view of things - bearing in mind the fact that the perspectives
expressed through hagiography, apocalyptic writings, collections of 'ques-
tions and answers' of miracles and so on, while shared by the whole culture
at a general level, differed in respect of local and regional outlook and inter-
ests. The maintenance of a literary tradition, with its classical pretensions,
rhetorical artifice and stylistic conservatism is not to be doubted. The theo-
logical, homiletic and hagiographical traditions testify to this, quite apart
from the surviving secular texts. 63 In addition, it must be remembered that
the functional importance of style in different contexts was crucial - the
level of style, as has been shown, was associated with specific genres, 64 and
this certainly ensured a crucial functional framework and stimulus for the
continued cultivation of the literary, especially the rhetorical, registers.
Exegesis demanded very different stylistic techniques from, for example,
panegyric, and these different styles were already firmly embedded in the
literary tradition, religious and secular, by the fifth century. 65
&3 Compare, for example, the style of the encomium on the miracles of the martyr Therapon,
compiled in the late seventh or early eighth century (ed. L. Deubner, De Incubatione Capita
Quattuor (Leipzig 1900). 120fT.) with that of the miracles of Artemius; or the classical
allusions and references in the homilies of Andreas of Crete - compiled in a more
accessible style to reach a wider audience. but nevertheless full of traditional rhetorical
motifs. See Th. Nissen. 'Diatribe und consolatio in einer christlichen Predigt des achten
)ahrhunderts', Philologus 92 (1937), 177-98 and 382-5. On the importance of rhetoric,
see esp. H. Hunger, 'The classical tradition in Byzantine literature: the importance of
rhetoric', in Byzantium and the Classical Tradition. pp. 3 5-4 7: and for the rhetorical link
between art and literature. Maguire. Art and Eloquence. esp. pp. 22-52.
M See I. Sevcenko. 'Levels of style in Byzantine prose'. Akten des XVI. Internationalen
Byzantinisten-Kongresses. I. 1 (Vienna 1981) ( = ]OB 31. 1). For a valuable comparative
analysis of these stylistic trends, see M.B. Cunningham. ·Andreas of Crete's Homilies
on Lazarus and Palm Sunday: a critical edition and commentary' (Unpubl. PhD., Univ. of
Birmingham. Centre for Byzantine Studies and Modern Greek, 1983).
&s See in particular T.E. Ameringer, The Stylistic Influence of the Second Sophistic on the
Panegyrical Sermons of St. John Chrysostom: A Study in Greek Rhetoric (Washington D.C.
1921 ): R.R. Ruether, Gregory of Nazianzus, Rhetor and Philosopher (Oxford 1969): Sev-
Language, literature and the icon 435
But the elite literary culture of late antique municipal society had passed
away for ever, and with it the pluralistic and multi-faceted world which it
represented. The icon and the Psalter are the hallmarks of the later
seventh-century world, a world which. while now more compact and
tightly controlled than before, was inhabited by individuals searching for
unity and a common identity through the symbols available to them- the
orthodox faith, the icon and the emperor.
cenko, •Additional remarks to the report on levels of style', Akten des XVI. Internationalen
Byzantinisten-Kongresses 11, 1 (Vienna 1982), 220-38 ( = JOB 32, 1), with examples.
CHAPTER I 2
The history of East Roman or Byzantine culture in the later sixth and
seventh centuries can be most easily represented in terms of two dominant
motifs: the increasing introversion of orthodox culture and the quest for
security. By the former, I mean the generalised concentration in the
thinking of the society as a whole on the personal relationship of indi-
viduals to God, the identity of orthodox thinking with the survival of the
Roman oikoumene, and the exclusion of all marginal or heterodox groups
from consideration, in a much more emphatic way than had been the case
before the last years of Justinian. By the latter, I mean the manifest collapse
of confidence in the traditional symbols of earthly supremacy, in particular
the institutions of the imperial establishment, and the search for ways in
which an imagined older order - of stability and confidence - could be
recovered, which would fulfil the desire both to conform to the spirit and
the letter of Chalcedonian orthodoxy, and at the same time to reassert the
political dominance of East Rome and the symbolic universe it represented.
The first is evident in the literary texts of the period: the second is implicit in
the assumptions, actions and responses of individuals and groups within
Byzantine society in the period from the 640s and beyond.
These two motifs were, of course, inseparable, since the maintenance of
orthodoxy and the exclusion of heterodoxy automatically- it was believed
- brought with it, ultimately, political supremacy, at least until the events
immediately preceding the Last Judgement. In this respect, it seems to me
that some of the apocalyptic literature of the times conceals also - some-
times rather obviously - elements of optimism which belie the belief in a
supposedly imminent Day of Judgement. The Apocalypse of Pseudo-
Methodius especially - understandably extremely popular and widely
disseminated throughout the orthodox world in the Middle Ages - looks
forward to the defeat of the Muslims and the reconquest of all the lost lands
436
The transfonnation of a culture 437
of the empire before the Second Coming, and thus - given the bleak
outlook in the second half of the seventh century -implicitly provides what
must have been a rather lengthy breathing-space before the end of the
world could be expected. 1
It is in this context that we must try to interpret and understand the
evolution of seventh-century social. political and cultural history, and not
just within the empire. Similar concerns and anxieties affected also the
monophysite and neo-Chalcedonian communities in the Near and Middle
East, too. It is a world in which the public pluralism of the late antique past
had been eradicated, because it no longer represented a comfortable mode
of understanding and acting within (and upon) the world as it was
perceived. Security, and the assurance of doing the 'right thing', could be
found in a uniformity of belief, both imposed from above and at the same
time desired by the 'ordinary' people. Yet the contradictions between the
theory of the world represented by Church and state at the public level. and
the rapidly changing circumstances in which people found themselves, at
different times and in different places, could not be papered over so easily
by the imposition of a rationale from above. Individuals continued to ask
questions and to seek answers, whatever their social and cultural position.
Men such as Maximus Confessor represented the anxieties and uncertain-
ties of many less literate and articulate than themselves. A common motif
remained 'orthodoxy' - but how to attain it, how even to understand it?
These were questions to which neither the official Church nor the Byzan-
tine state were able always to find answers that could be translated
immediately into action, although not for want of trying. And even
Maximus' theology remains just that: a theology, intellectually rigorous,
but politically no more nor less valid than the theories of imperial absolu-
tism against which he pitted his talents.
Within the framework of orthodox piety, therefore, and the exclusivist,
anti-pluralistic political ideology of the imperial state, recourse to the
resolution of problems through an intensely individualistic or personalised
devotion was predictable: for the umbrella of official belief could not handle
the multiplicity and variety of personal needs, nor could it provide more
than the most generalised response to the detailed questions of people
anxious about the very foundations of their day-to-day lives. 2 The daily
worries which affiicted everyone were ever-present, of course: and it was
1 Ps.-Methodius, Apokalypse Xm, 70'. Even more optimistic is the short chronological treatise
of the monk Theophanius, compiled in about 710, in which the calculation of the end of the
world, based on a cabbalistic-numerical equation, falls in the year 880. See E. Dobschiitz,
'Coisllnianus 296', BZ 12 (1903), 534-67, see 5490'., and Beck. Kirche, p. 473. See
chapter 9 and note 116 above.
2 Some of these aspects are described by N.H. Baynes, in Byzantine Studies and Other Essays
(Oxford 1960), p. 5.
438 Byzantium in the seventh century
partly as a result of their effectiveness in providing answers and advice, as
well as alternative models for repentance and the absolution of sins, that
the hermits and holy men of the later Roman world had become so
numerous and popular. And in the shrinking world of the second half of
the seventh century, such issues took on a greater significance: not only
did they affect one's personal life and salvation: but individuals were
regarded as being jointly responsible for the salvation and maintenance of
orthodoxy, the safety of the Chosen People and the restoration of the
Christian oikoumene. The sorts of questions which occur in the 'questions
and answers' attributed to Anastasius of Sinai, and in particular the
tension which they express between divine will and foresight, on the one
hand, and human self-determination and responsibility on the other
(although understood within a divine plan in which this limited freedom
was inscribed), bears a new significance in this context.
It would be quite misleading, of course, to suggest that the sorts of
conditions which I have described above and the attitudes, beliefs and
practices which seem to me typical of late sixth- and seventh-century
society, in both Constantinople and the provinces, came into being over-
night or developed uniformly across the empire in clearly detectable 'acts'
on the historical stage. On the contrary, the evidence is relatively sparse
and relates to only limited areas of the empire, or to a limited context at a
specific moment. It represents a brief glimpse into the lives of individuals or
anonymous groups of people for which we have to provide both the
interpretational framework and the specific rationale or logic. In this
respect, any conclusions we may draw are bound to be incomplete, flawed
and, in some cases, still quite hypothetical or tendentious. On the other
hand. the evidence from all the different sources -literary, archaeological,
sigillographic and so on - when considered as a whole and within a single
cultural context, does bear out the interpretation offered here. It is impor-
tant to remember that we are dealing with several generations of lives - a
short period for the historian. perhaps. but each life represents the growth
of an individual personality and psychology constituted within the cultural
context into which it is born, with all the aspirations, desires and relation-
ships of a social being. The changes which we observe, detected through
different forms of evidence in different ways, affected people differentially
and qualitatively over a longer or shorter period in all these respects. We
observe what we take to be the results of change, but it is not always easy
to discern the causal relationships which generate change in the first place,
nor to determine the point at which quantitative evolves into qualitative
transformation.
It is useful to bear these points in mind when looking at a period of such
complexity as the seventh century. For there is no doubt that many of the
The transformation of a culture 439
(especially in the West), and in terms of the ideological issues taken for
granted which now dominated.
The trauma of the Arab attacks and victories, the loss of the East, the
devastation of much of Anatolia and the great siege of the years 674-8, as
well as the loss of effective imperial control in the greater part of the
Balkans - together with the cumulative results of the withering away of
urban centres as meaningful social, economic and political elements
within both state and society - all had a drastic effect, throwing once more
the legitimating theories of the imperial political ideology into question,
opening up a gulf between the 'reality' of actual events and the traditional
narrative representation of the world. The emperors (rather than the
imperial position as such) were now also to feel the effects of the con-
sequent search for a reordering of the elements of the available legitimat-
ing theories, and their response was predictable. The monenergite and
monothelete policies of Heraclius and Sergius, but especially of Constans 11,
signalled one attempt to redress the balance and to try to regain the
stability which had been regained for a short time by the 630s. And while
the attempt failed, the question of the maintenance of (imperial) authority
became increasingly crucial in the ever-more uncertain situation which
developed during the 650s and beyond, as is clear from the ways in which
the imperial government handled the cases of Pope Martin and Maxim us
Confessor and their adherents.
As we have seen, one of the most significant aspects of later seventh-
century history is the increasing 'interference' of officers and soldiers from
the provincial armies in the internal politics of the state. This activity - less
'interference' than 'participation', for soldiers had traditionally long had a
role in certain aspects of the imperial succession, for example - reflects the
position of the soldiers in provincial society, and given the increasingly
localised recruitment-patterns which take hold from the 650s, the atti-
tudes also, however refracted, of the provincial populations. The actions of
soldiers at this time can be shown to represent a general loss of faith in the
efficacy of the traditional symbols of authority, and hence the growing
ineffectiveness of traditional legitimating narratives. Military unrest was
obviously determined in form and content by its specific context. 3 It
expressed itself in terms of the situation as it existed, and it was precisely
because the traditional, stable framework through which the world could
be made sense of began to break down, and was perceived to be under
threat, that soldiers took the sorts of action which are described in the
sources.
The activities of soldiers, which constituted a direct threat to imperial
4 J.B. Bury, The lAter Roman Empire, from Arcadlus to lrene (395-800) (2 vols., London and
New York 1889), vol. 2, pp. 308-9: Wlnkelmann, 'Zum byzantlnlschen Staat', p. 217:
Stratos, Byzantium In the Seventh Century. vol. IV, pp. 13 5-40.
s MansiXI. 201C: Riedinger, 10.2lff. and 737 (Riedinger. 10.211T. and 88&.2-24).
6 See Mansl XI, 201C-D for Constantlne IV's opening remarks In the sacra to the patriarch
George: and for the Qulnlsext. see Wlnkelmann. Die ostlichen Klrchen. In general, see
chapters 2 and 8 above.
7 See Haldon, 'Ideology and social change'. 178f.: Kaegl, Military Unrest, pp. 110fT.
8 See the summary In Haldon, 'Ideology and social change', 1821f. with literature.
442 Byzantium in the seventh century
9 See my comments in chapter 9: The search for order: the case of the soldiers. above.
The transfonnation of a culture 443
Why did the Byzantine empire not succumb to the various forces, internal
and external, which during the seventh century threatened to destroy it?
The question has often exercised the minds of historians. Some have seen
its survival as mere accident, the failure of its foes adequately to organise
their efforts at conquest or the result of unavoidable internal divisions
within the caliphate. Others have seen the impregnable position of Con-
stantinople, the queen of cities, as the key: yet others have regarded the
strength of orthodox Christianity and the cultural bonds it forged as a
crucial factor: while some historians have seen the well-structured and
flexible administrative, fiscal and military apparatuses of the state as the
foundation of its survival. 10 All of these - although I should wish to modify
each statement in different ways - played a role, of that there can be little
doubt. But to look for single causes, or indeed prime movers, is to misun-
derstand the very nature of historical change. For in many ways the late
Roman state did not survive, at least not in the sense that protagonists of a
'continuity' approach to the problem would have us believe. The physical
space- albeit much reduced- the geography and climate (with natural
and usually very gradual shifts) remain much the same. But late Roman
urban culture vanishes entirely, along with much of the cultural baggage
it carried with it. Instead, new systems of thought develop, new
° For the most recent attempt. see G. Huxley, Why Did the Byzantine Empire not Fall to the
1
Arabs? (Athens, Gennadius Library, 1986). pp. 1-14: and the resume of the argument in
BS 68 (1987). 267: and see the article of G. Weiss, ·Antike und Byzanz: die Kontinuitiit
der Gesellschaftsstruktur', Historische Ztitschrift 224 (1977), 529-60. For a useful survey
of the literature on the question of continuity and discontinuity, see the discussion of
V. Vaviinek, 'The Eastern Roman empire or early Byzantium? A society in transition', in
From Late Antiquity to Early Byzantium, ed. V. Vaviinek (Prague 1985), pp. 9-20.
444 Byzantium in the seventh century
was, as I hope I have been able to show in this book, a very different state
in its workings from that of the late Roman period. The question now
arises, how we set about characterising the society and state formation
which developed, and within what sort of explanatory framework we can
clarify the nature of the transformations which took place in order to
understand how that society functioned at a structural level.
The first, and probably the most obvious point, concerns the fate of the
late Roman cities. 11 The evidence which we have reviewed suggests quite
clearly that the urban centres of the late ancient world were almost totally
eclipsed during the period with which we are concerned. The classical city
had come during the Roman period to occupy a central role both in the
social and economic structure of Mediterranean society and in the
administrative machinery of the Roman state, as focus of market-exchange
activity, of regional agricultural activity and, especially, as tax -collectors.
Where cities in the Mediterranean sense did not exist, the Roman state
created them, either establishing entirely new foundations, or amalgamat-
ing earlier settlements and providing them with the corporate identity and
legal personality of a civitas or polis. These are terms which, we must
remember, bore a specific administrative and fiscal significance in the late
Roman world and did not necessarily imply a major urban centre. The
long-drawn-out shift in the economic and social function of these cities
from the third century on, the final suppression of their economic indepen-
dence during the later fifth and early sixth centuries, and their physical
and social devastation during the seventh century, had consequently very
considerable implications for the fiscal and civil administrative structure of
the late Roman state. Equally, it marked the end of classical city life and
culture, with its urbanocentric economy. One way of looking at these
changes is to see in them a decline in urban civilisation. A more productive
approach is to see them as a gradual change in the function and relevance
of cities to the needs of the late Roman state and the society which
supported it. However we approach the problem, of course, the results
were the same for late Roman culture and, in particular, for the state.
Centralisation of tax-collection and the replacement of local centres of
power by Constantinople, with the resultant attraction of social and
cultural life to the capital, were part of the history of the late Roman world
which the events of the seventh century brought to completion. The
Byzantine state which emerged into the eighth century was effectively an
empire of one major urban centre, together with a few fortunate provincial
urban centres which were able to survive as emporia and ports.
This development had several implications. In the first place, it meant
11 For a fuller survey of the points made here. see Haldon, 'Some considerations'. 78fT.
446 Byzantium in the seventh century
that the state on the one hand, and large landowners (private and
institutional) on the other, inherited the wealth, or at least the territories,
which had previously been exploited by the municipalities. But it also
meant that, on the whole, the wealth extracted from such regions (chiefly
in the form of surplus agricultural and pastoral produce) tended to flow
towards Constantinople, for this was where power was increasingly con-
centrated. It was to Constantinople that the provincial wealthy would send
their sons to be educated or to gain an entree to Church or state service; it
was there that the emperor and cowt were resident, from where titles and
privileges, offices and emoluments were bestowed, and from where the
imperial administrative machinery, as well as that of the Church, was
directed. The state centred at Constantinople inherited the social role of the
cities, in so far as the absence of cities meant that, with the exception of one
(state) institution, the armies, there was no longer a formal and
institutional intermediary between the mass of the provincial population
and the imperial government. It is this lack which goes part of the way to
explaining the significance of the armies and their leaders - a point we
have already examined.
The second point relates to the economic structure of late Roman and
early Byzantine society. The city had never been a centre of industrial
production. Commercial and industrial centres existed, of course, but they
were relatively few in number and were in any case more or less entirely
dependent upon their hinterland for basic supplies of foodstuffs, means of
transport and, more often than not, for the extra labour needed for major
building programmes. The cost of overland transport was, for most cities,
prohibitive, which meant that those situated away from the coast or from
easy access to a port were unable to exist on a non-agricultural basis. Ports
were in a different position, of course, and the major cities of the late
Roman world were almost all on navigable rivers or had good coastal
harbours. The exceptions can generally be explained in terms of state
intervention - the state was the only agency which could maintain the
resources sufficient for this activity - or local and usually short-lived
economic booms. The greater part of the state's income came from taxes
on land and property of one sort or another. Commerce brought in a very
limited income, although it was probably greater in the eastern part of the
empire than in the western. Until the middle of the seventh century the
empire was made up, in effect. of an agglomeration of city-states and
subsistence economies: with the final demise of the cities, this essential
local subsistence character did not change. although the local centres were
eradicated. The agricultural population of the empire, whatever the differ-
ent social and juridical categories into which it was divided, had to rely
upon its own resources, depending upon local market-exchange through
The transformation of a culture 447
took place, except in the highly localised context of major centres such as
Constantinople - by its very nature an exception. In contrast, the con-
tinued issue of a stable gold coinage demonstrates the role of the state in
regulating the distribution of surplus wealth according to its own require-
ments. Of course, in certain circumstances the issue of gold coin may not
have been sufficient to meet the exigencies of the moment, and so state
officials may have had to accept bronze coins as payment - such was the
case in the reign of Heraclius, for example, and under Constans II in Italy,
where the scarcity of resources reached crisis proportions. 12
These considerations are valid both for the later Roman period and for
that from the ninth century on. What evidence there is makes it clear that
they apply equally to the seventh and eighth centuries. While the munici-
palities of the late Roman world vanish, the essential relationship between
state and resources continued to be mediated on the same principles. The
disappearance of the cities, the centralisation of fiscal control, the shift in
production relations which followed the expansion of emphyteutic leasing
and the demise of the senatorial landowning elite, all these factors,
together with the dramatic loss of revenue which resulted from the Islamic
conquests of the second half of the seventh century, meant that the
structural details of the state's extraction and redistribution of resources
were changed, sometimes rapidly, sometimes more gradually. The slow
dissolution of the prefectural instance of fiscal and civil administration
provides a good example of the latter: the rapid transformation of the
central officia in the 620s and 630s one of the former. In terms of
continuity, therefore, the principles of the state's mode of surplus appro-
priation remain much the same: a surplus redistribution system based on a
subsistence peasant economy, a system facilitated by a gold coinage which
served both to promote the extraction of tax and the maximisation of the
state's returns. On the other hand, the structures which evolved to fulfil
these functions changed ve~y considerably after the later sixth century,
and there is no doubt that the seventh century marks a major break with
the late Roman system.
More than anything, however, the seventh century marks in many
respects the reassertion of imperial authority and the power of the state
over its resources. All the factors we have examined in the course of this
book point to this conclusion. The decline of the senatorial elite, the
shrinkage of the empire territorially, the centralisation of fiscal administra-
tion, the disappearance of the cities as intermediate levels of government,
the rise of a new military and administrative bureaucracy dependent much
more directly upon the emperor than hitherto - all are crucial to this shift.
21 See J.F. Haldon, 'The feudalism debate once more: the case of ByzanUwn ', Journal of
Peasant Studies 17I 1 (19 89 ).,5-3 9: and especially the detailed discussion in my The State and
the Tributary Mode of Production (London 199 3 ).
22 For a more detailed analysis, see C.J. Wickham, 'The other transition: from the ancient
world to feudalism', Past and Present 103 (May 1984), 3-36.
The transformation of a culture 457
broken. The state remains as the sole focus of economic and political
power, and although the Church, as the major single landowner after the
state, must be seen as a potential rival. the interests of Church and state
were ideologically so closely bound together (In the long term: ruptures of
the sort typified by the monothelete controversy, for example, did not affect
the institutional, property-owning Church in its economic relations with
the state) that this was not an important source of conflict at this period.
Landlord-tenant relations and the privatised extraction of surpluses - as
rent - on a widespread basis represented the major element in the relations
of production, of course. The state was itself a major landowner, along
with the Church. But the evidence suggests that the proportion of wealth
extracted by the state through tax was at least as structurally significant as
that collected as rent: and the continued existence of a powerful, central-
ised state, with an elaborate bureaucracy and professional (or at least
permanent) army, maintained by the extraction of tax, necessarily limited
the degree to which private rent could be extended. It certainly made any
challenge to the dominance of the state at this period impossible.
The taxation policy of the state dominated the economy of the empire,
promoting some developments, while hindering or preventing others. In
particular, it meant the constant involvement in and attention of the state
upon rural relations of production and the possibilities for surplus extrac-
tion. So much is clear from the incidence of state legislation concerned with
safeguarding the sources of its revenue: it is surely no accident that the
major collections of state legislation dealing with land and the production
of wealth which control of land brought with it come from the sixth and
tenth centuries, two periods when major shifts in rural relations of pro-
duction were taking place (excluding, of course, the difficulties associated
with the lack of legislation in the later seventh century on these matters,
discussed in chapter 7 above) and when a potential or actual threat to the
tax-base was perceived.
Only when the state began to lose control over the means of production
and the rate of surplus appropriation (that is to say, when private rent
began to outstrip tax) and hence to obtain the income necessary to its
existence- in other words, only when the exaction of tribute or private rent
by the landowning class rather than by the state becomes dominant- can we
speak of a real shift within the balance of the tributary relations of production
in Byzantine society. 23 But even at this stage, the entrenched ideology of
21 See Lltavrin, Vlzantliskoe obscestvo l gosudarstvo, pp. 289f.: A.P. Kaidan, Soclal'nil sostav,
pp. 2530'. Note also G. Ostrogorsky, 'Observations on the aristocracy In Byzantium', DOP
2 5 ( 19 71 ), 12fT. The first clear, albeit tentative. Institutional steps towards this process
can be seen In the eleventh century, with the development of the system of pronola grants
and the temporary award of fiscal revenues by the state to private persons In return for
(military) service. But again, this ls only one element ln a complex picture. For the classic
458 Byzantium in the stvtnth century
the state, which found expression in the role of the emperor and the
existence of a centralised state bureaucracy. held the continued expansion
of privatised tributary relations - feudal relations in a sense akin to those
pertaining in the medieval West - back. For the Byzantine aristocracy was
committed to this ideology and political theory even after they had ceased to
represent their objective economic class interests. Like the state which it
represented, and yet for whose resources it competed, the aristocracy was
ideologically divided between serving the state and thus not promoting (or
actually damaging) its own interests as a group of independent land-
owners and landlords, on the one hand. and opposing the state - the
emperor- in order to protect and enhance its privileges and its power-base.
This compromise existed in its clearest form after the eleventh century. But
while the economic contradictions were gradually resolved in favour of the
magnates, the political contradiction was less apparent, a result of the
close ties between imperial political ideology, orthodoxy and the Church,
and the fact that this political system was focused upon the emperor, not
on a concept of 'the state' as such. The political and ideological support of
the elite. and the residual political authority of the emperors (and therefore
of the state) made possible the survival of the state as a parasitic political
form doomed to economic and therefore military and political extinction.
The seventh century thus saw the establishment of conditions which
made possible the survival of one form of the ancient state. For the
senatorial elite had been weakened sufficiently for the state to ignore it as a
class, while the new service elite (from which the middle Byzantine aristoc-
racy develops by the ninth century) was still in its infancy, dependent
entirely upon the state for its existence. Until the eleventh century at least,
the transformed structures of the ancient state provided the dominant struc-
tures of the Byzantine social formation. It is clear from our survey that a
fundamental transformation took place in the late Roman world, a transfor-
mation that made possible, and prolonged, the survival of the Roman state
in the East.
study of this development, see G. Ostrogorsky. Pour l'hlstolre de ltl fiodaliti byzt~ntlne
{Brussels 19 54). The question has been extensively discussed In the Soviet literature: see
the references in chapter I. note 36.
Addendum: Further observations on the
question of the late ancient city
(see Chapter 3)
flourish as centres of local provincial society, but that the mode of socio-cultural
investment had changed. Churches rather than civic, secular public build-
ings seem to have attracted investment, for example: see J.-M. Spieser, 'Les
villes en Grece du Ille au VIle siecle', in Villes et peuplement dans l'lllyricum pro-
tobyzantin (Rome 1984) pp. 315-38. While certain major cities did decline-
as a result both of warfare and natural calamities (Antioch, for example, or
Apamaea: see J.C. Balty, /\pamee au VIe siecle. Temoignages archeologiques
de la richesse d'une ville', in Hommes et richesses I, pp. 79-96)- there is
plenty of incidental evidence for the continuity of provincial urban life (see
M. Whittow, 'Ruling the Late Roman and early Byzantine City: a Continuous
History', Past and Present 129 (Nov.1990), pp. 3-29). What changed was the
emphasis on civic and corporate 'monumentality', a point well illustrated in
the work of Spieser. The important question of the extent to which cities may
have continued to exercise control over their territoria is taken up in F.R.
Trombley, 'Byzantine "Dark Ages'' cities in comparative context', in To
EAATJVtKov. Studies in Honor of Speros Vryonis, jr. 1: Hellenic Antiquity and
Byzantium, eds. J.S. Langdon et al. (New York 1993) 429-49. But the pos-
sibilities for clarifying the situation in the sixth and seventh centuries are still
severely restricted by the patchy and limited archaeological data, in particu-
lar the still very partial and fragmentary ceramic record.
The archaeological material, albeit sparse, can nevertheless be used to
suggest a resolution to one aspect of the problem. In some Byzantine texts,
mostly hagiographical, there occur descriptions of 'cities' which can be
interpreted to mean that there remained a population inhabiting the 'lower'
town. As we have seen, it has been argued that either this means that the
whole ancient city area continued to be occupied: or that the text(s) in ques-
tion consists of topoi and that only a citadel is actually meant (see p. 109
above, and note 40)~ The preliminary results of excavations at Amorion and
several other sites show that while the very small fortress-citadel continued
to be defended and occupied, discreet areas within the late Roman walls also
continued to be inhabited, often centred around a church. In Amorion there
were at least two and probably three such areas (C. Lightfoot, in Anatolian
Studies 44 (1994) 10Sff.). It seems probable that what these findings repre-
sent are small but distinct communities whose inhabitants regarded them-
selves (in one sense, that of domicile, quite legitimately) as 'citizens' of the
city within whose walls their settlement was located, and that the kastron,
which retained the name of the ancient polis, provided a refuge in case of
attack (whether or not it was permanently occupied, still less permanently
garrisoned). Many of the poleis of the seventh to ninth centuries thus may
have survived as such because their inhabitants, living effectively in distinct
'villages' within the area delineated by the walls, saw themselves as belong-
ing to the polis itself, rather than to a village, which may well have been
On the question of the late ancient city 461
referred to by the name of its church or its older suburban quarter. Cf. the
example of Bphesos, which served as a refuge for the local rural population,
as a fortress and military administrative centre, but also retained its role as a
market town. Survey and excavation suggest that it was divided into three
small, distinct and separate occupied areas, including the citadel (Foss,
Ephesus After Antiquity, pp. 106-13): Sardis similarly shrank to a small forti-
fied acropolis, and one or more separate occupied areas within the circum-
ference of the original late ancient walls (Foss, Byzantine and Turkish Sardis,
pp. 5 5-61 ): Miletos was reduced to some 2 5 per cent of its original area, and
divided into two defended complexes (W. Miiller-Wiener, 'Das Theaterkastell
von Milet', Istanbuler Mitteilungen 17 (196 7), pp. 2 79-90: C. Foss,
1\rchaeology and the "Twenty Cities" of Byzantine Asia', 4 6 9-8 6, at 4 7 7f.):
Didyma, close by Miletos, was reduced to a small defended structure based
around a converted pagan temple and an associated but unfortified settle-
ment nearby (Foss, 1\rchaeology and the "Twenty Cities" of Byzantine Asia',
479 with literature). Examples can be multiplied. See the survey of Brandes,
Stiidte, pp. 8 2-111, 13 2ff. with further literature and sources.
For the wider perspective, see the essays in J. Rich, ed., The City in Late
Antiquity (London 1992) and in N. Christie, S.T. Loseby, eds., Towns in
Transition. Urban Evolution in Late Antiquity and the Early Middle Ages
(Aldershot 1996): and in Trade and Exchange in the Late Antique and Early
Islamic Near East (Studies in Late Antiquity and Early Islam 1, V), eds. L.A.
Conrad, G.R.D. King (Princeton forthcoming).
Bibliography
Primary sources
Agathlas ed. R. Keydell, Agathiae Myrlnaei Hlstoriarum Libri V (CFHB 2, Berlin
1967)
Agathon dlaconus (account of events in 713),in Mansl XU, 189-96
Ambroslus (of Milan), Sermo dt Baslllcls Tradendls vtl contra Auxentlum, In PL XVI,
875-1286
Anastaslus Monachus ed. P. Nau, 'Le texte grec des reclts utiles a l'Ame d'Anas-
tase (le Sinaite)', OC 3 (1903), 56-90: see also OC 2 (1902), 58-89
Anastaslus of Sinal lnterrogaUones et Responslones, in PG LXXXIX, 311-824
&rmo adversus Monothtletas, In PG LXXXIX, 1152-80: new edn by K.-H.
Uthemann, Anastasll Slnaltae D,¥ra. &rmones duo In ConsUtutlonem Hominls
ucundum lmaglnem Del necnon O,uscula ad~rsus Monotheletas (Corpus ChrlsUa-
norum Series Graeca XII. Brepols and Turnhout, 1985), pp. 55-83
Anonyml Chronlcon ad Annum Domini 1234 Ptrtines, trans J.-8. Chabot (part 1), In
CSCO scrlptores Syrl, 56: trans. A. Abouna (part 2),1n CSCO scrlptores Syrl, 154
Anonyml Perl stratiglas, ed. and trans. G.T. Dennls, In Thrte Byzantine Mllltllry
Tretrtills (CFHB XXV. Washington, D.C.-; 1985), pp. 1-135
Anonymus Vdrl lncerU Scrlptorls ByzanUnl saec. X. Llber de re Militari, ed. R. Vari
(Leipzig, 1901): new edn and trans. G.T. Dennis, Three Byzantine Military
Treatises (CPHB XXV. Washington, D.C. 1985), pp 247-327
Anthologla Palatina Anthologia Gram~, I-IV. ed. and trans. H. Beckby (Munich
1957-8. second edn 1970)
Apptndlx Bclogae eds. L. Burgmann and Sp. Trolanos, •Appendix Bclogae,' FM Ill
(1979). 24-125
Arculf, Relatlo de locls sanctls, ed. T. Tobler, in Itlnera et Descrlptlones Terrae SanctJJe I
(Geneva 1877), pp. 195fT.
Balidhuri Al-BaltidhurJ~ Kltab futuh al-Buldiin. The Orlglns of the Islamic StJJu,
trans. P.K. Hlttl (London 1916 and Beirut 1966)
BIISillca eds. H.-J. Scheltema. N. Van Der Wal and D. Holwerda, Baslllcorum Ubrl
LX. A I-VII (Textus librorum 1-LIX); 8 I-VIII (Scholia in llbros I-LX. 16)
(Gronlngen, Jakarta and The Hague 1953-83)
Bdevllev, V. Spdtgrlechlsche und sptitlatelnlsche Inschriften aus Bulgarlen (Berlin
1964)
Cedrenus Georgii Cedrenl Compendium Hlstorlarum, ed. I. Bekker 2 vols. (CSHB,
Boon 1838-9)
462
Bibllography 463
Chronicon Anonymi ad Annum Domlnl813 Pertinens, ed. and trans. B.W. Brooks, in
CSCO scriptores Syri, ser. 3.• vol. IV: Chronlca Minora, 3, 1, 185-96
Chronlcon MaronlUcum, ed. B.W. Brooks, trans. J.-8. Chabot, In CSCO scrlptores
Syri. ser. 3. vol. IV: Chronla~ Minora. 2. 3, 35-57
Chronlcon Mlscellaneum ad Annum Domini 724 Pertinens, ed. B.W. Brooks. trans.
J.-8. Chabot, In CSCO scrlptores Syrt, ser. 3, vol. IV: Chronlca Minora, 2, 4,
63-119
Chronlcon Mlscellaneum ad Annum Domini 846 Pertinens, ed. B. W. Brooks, trans.
J.-8. Chabot, In CSCO scrlptores Syrt, ser. 3, vol. IV: Chronlca Minora, 2. 5,
123-80
Chronlcon Paschale, ed. L. Dlndorf (CSHB, Bonn 1832)
Codex Iustlnlanus In CIC 11
Codex Theodoslanus Theodoslanl Llbrl XVI cum Constitutionlbus Sirmondianis, eds.
Th. Mommsen, P. Meyer et al. (Berlin 1905)
ConcUlum unl.wrsale Constant1nopoUtmtum tertium, ed. R. Riedinger, 2 vols. (Acta
Conclliorum Oecumenlcorum ll/2.1-2. Berlin 1990/1992)
Constans 11. Typos In Lateran 208. 15-210. 15: Mansl X, 1029C-1032D
Constantlne IV. Bdlct in Mansi XI, 697A-712D
Corpus Inscrlptionum Graecarutn, ed. A. BOckh (vols. I and 11) and I. Franz (vols.
01-ff.) (Berlin 1828-77).
Corpus lurls Clvllls l, lnstltuUones, ed. P. Kriiger; Dlgesta, ed. Th. Momrnsen: 11,
Codex Iustlnlanus, ed. P. Kriiger: Ill. Novellae, eds. R. Scholl and W. Kroll
(Berlin 1892-S: repr. Berlin 1945-63)
Corpus Scriptorum Bccleslastlcorum Latlnorum (Vienna 1866-)
Cosmas Hlerosolymltanus, Scholia In Gregorll Nazlanzenl Carmina, In PG XXXVIII.
341-679
Cumont. F. 'Les Inscriptions chretlennes d' Asle Mlneure', ln Melanges d'archeologle
et d'hlstolre 15 (1895)
De Admlnlstrando Imperio Constllntlne Porphyrogenltus, De Admlnlstrando Imperio 1:
Greelc Text, ed. Gy. Moravcslk, Engl. trans. R.J.H. Jenklns. New revised edn
(CFHB I = Dumbarton Oaks Texts I, Washington, D.C. 196 7): 11, CommentiJry,
ed. R.J .H. Jenklns (London 1962)
De Cerlmonils Constantlnl Porphyrogenltl De Cerlmonlls Aulae Byzantlnae Llbrl Duo,
ed. J.J. Reiske (CSHB, Bonn 1829-30)
De Thematlbus Costantlno Porflrogenlto, De Thematlbus, ed. A. Pertusi (Studi e Testl
160. Citta del Vatlcano 1952)
Devreesse, Hypomnestlcum R. Devreese, 'Le Texte grec de l'hypomnestlcum de
Theodore Spoudee', AB 53 (1935). 66-80 (BHG 32261)
DOC, vol. 11 Ph. Grlerson, Catalogue of the ByzanUne Coins In the Dumbarton Oaks
Collection and in the Whittemore Collection, vol. 11: Phocas to Theodoslus Ill,
602-717 (Washington D.C. 1968)
Doctrina Iacobl nuper Baptlzatl, ed. N. Bonwetsch, Abhandlungen der konlgllchen
Gesellschaft der Wlssenschaften zu Gottingen. phll.-hlst. Klasse, XII. 3 (Berlin
1910)
Bcloga Bcloga. Das Gesetzbuch Leons Ill. und Konstantlnos' V., ed. L. Burgmann
(Porschungen zur byzantlnlschen Rechtsgeschlchte X, Frankfurt am Main
1983)
Bpanagoge ed. C.B. ZacharUi von Llngenthal, in Collectlo Librorum Iurls Graeco-
Romani Bclogam Leonis et Constantlnl, Bpanagogen BasilJI, Leonis et Alexandrl
Contlnens (Leipzig 1852), 53-217: repr. In ]GR 11, 229-368
464 Bibliography
John of Ephesus The Third Part of the Bccltsiastical History of John of Bphesus, ed.
and trans. R. Payne-Smlth (Oxford 1860)
Lives of the Eastern Saints, ed. and trans. B.W. Brooks, in PO 17-19 (Paris
1923-5)
John of Niklu The Chronicle of John, Bishop of Nllclu, ed. and trans. R.H. Charles
(London 1916)
Jullan, Oratlo I In Jullan, Letters and Works, ed. and trans. W.C. Wrlght (London
and Cambridge, Mass. 1954)
Justinian, Dlgesta ln CIC I
Justinian, Edict. Bdlcta, in CIC Ill, 7 59-9 5
Justinian, Nov. Novellae, In CIC Ill
Kekaumenos Sovetl I rasslcazl Kelcavmena: soclnenle vlzanUjslcogo pollcovodtsa XI
velca, ed .• trans. and comm. G.G. Lltavrln (Moscow 1972): older edn B. Wassl-
llewsky and V. Jernstedt, Cecaumenl Strateglcon et incerti scriptorls de o.fflclls
reglls llbellus (St Petersburg 1896 and Amsterdam 1965)
Klet. Phll. Kletorologlon of Phllotheos, In Oikonomides, Prtstance, pp. 81-235
Konldares, J., 'Die Novellen des Kaisers Heraklelos', FM V (1980), 33-106 (text
62-95)
Konstantopoulos. K.. Bv(avr"a"a p,oA. vP86PovA.A.a TOV eJI it,.,
Nop,,CTp,a'l'""ov Movueiov (Athens, 1917) (= JIAN 5 (1902}, 149-64,
vai~ 'BDv,"ov
Vlta Theodorl Syceotls ed. A. Festug~. VJt dt Thtodore de Sykion (2 vols.• Subsldla
Haglographlca IlL, Brussels 1970) (BHG 1 1748)
Vlta S. Theodorl StudltiJe ed. A. Mal, In NPB VI. 291-363 (BHG3 1754)
Vlta et MJracula Theodorl (tlronls) ed. H. Delehaye, ln Les Ugendes grecques des
saints mllltalres (Paris 1909), 183-201 (BHG1 1764)
Zacos, G. and Veglery, A.• Byzantlnt lad Stals. vol. I. parts 1-3 (Basel1972)
Zonaras Ioannls Zonarae Bpltomae Hlstoriarum Llbri XIII usque ad XVIII. ed. Th.
Biittner-Wobst (CSHB. Bonn 1897)
Zos. (Zoslmus) Zoslml Comltls et EmdvoalU Flscl Hlstorla Nova, ed. L. Mendelssohn
(Leipzig 1887 and Hlldeshelm 1963)
Cameron, Averil, Conrad, L, eds., 'I'ht ByzanUne and Early Islamic Near East 1: Problems
ln the Uterary Source MatlriJJl (Studies in Late Antiquity and Early Islam 1, I.
Princeton 199 2)
Charanls, P. 'Bthnic changes In the Byzantine Brnpire In the seventh century', OOP
13 (1959), 23-44
•observations on the demography of the Byzantine empire', in XIII International
Congress of Byzantine Studies, Maln Papers XIV (Oxford 1966), pp. 1-19
Studies on the Demography of the Byzantine Bmplre (London 1972)
'The monk as an element of Byzantine society', DOP 25 (1971), 61-84
'The transfer of population as a policy ln the Byzantine Bmpire', Comparative
Studies ln Society and History 3 (The Hague 1961 ), 140-54
Chrlstie, N., Loseby, S.T., eds., Towns in Transition. Urban Evolution in Late Antiquity and
the Early Middle Ages (Aldershot 1996)
Claude, D. Dle byzantlnlsche Stlldt lm 6. ]ahrhundert (Byzantinisches Archlv, XIII,
Munich 1969)
Conrad, L.I. 'Theophanes and the Arabic Historical Tradition: Some Indications of
InterculturalTransmission', BF 15 (1990), 1-44
'Epidemic disease in central Syria in the late sixth century. Some new inslghts from
the verse of HassAn lbn Thibit', BMGS 18 (1994) 12-58
Cormack, R. 'The arts during the age of Iconoclasm', in Iconoclasm, eds. A.A.M.
Bryer and J. Herrln (Birmingham 1977), pp. 35-44
Writing In Gold (London 1985)
Cruikshank-Dodd, B. Byzantine Silver Stamps (Dumbarton Oaks Studies VII, Wash-
Ington D.C. 1961)
Dagron. G. 'Bntre village et cite: la bourgade rurale des IVe-vne slecles en Orient',
Kolnonla 3 (1979), 29-52 (repr. in G. Dagron, La Romanltt chretlenne en Orient
Ill)
La Romanlti Chrttlenne en Orient. Htrltages et mutations (London 1984)
'Le Saint. le savant. l'astrologue. Btude de themes haglographiques a travers
quelques recuells de "Questions et reponses" des ve-vne slecles', in Haglogra-
phie, cultures et socltti (Ive-Vll' slecles). Etudes Augustlnlennes (Paris 1981).
pp. 143-55 (repr. In G. Dagron, La Romanlti chretienne en Orient IV)
Dagron. G. 'Judaiser', TM 11 (1991) 359-380
Dagron, G, Deroche. V. 'Julfs et Chretiens dans I' Orient du vne siecle', TM 11 (1991)
17-273
Deroche, V. 'La polemique anti-Judaique au VIe et au VIle siecle. Un memento inedit,
lesKepludaia', TM 11 (1991) 275-311
Dlehl, Ch. L'Afrlque byzantlne: hlstolre de la domination byzantine en Afrlque
(533-709) (2 vols.• Paris 1896)
Etudes byzantlnes (Paris 1905)
'Le senatet !e people byzantln aux vue et VIIr slecles', B1 (1924), 201-13
Dltten, H. BthnJsche Verschlebungen zwlschen tier Ballcanhalbinsel und Kle1naslen vom
Bnde des 6. bls zur zwelten Htilfte des 9. Jahrhunderts (BBA LIX. Berlln 199 3)
Dltten, H. •zur Bedeutung der Blriwanderung der Slawen', in Byzanz lm 7. ]ahrhun-
dert, eds. P. Wlnkelmann et al., pp. 73-160
OOlger, F. Beltrdge zur Geschlchte der byzantlnlschen Flnanzverwaltung bes. des 10.
und 11./ahrhunderts (Byzantlnlsches Archlv IX, Munich 192 7 and Hlldeshelm
1960)
Regesten der Kalserurlcunden des ostromlschen Reiches von 565-1025, parts 1-3
(Munich and Berlin 1924, 1925 and 1932)
Duncan-Jones, R. Structure and Scale 1n the Roman Economy (Cambridge 1990)
472 Blbllography
Dunn, A. 'The transformation from poUs to luutron in the Balkans (m-vn cc.): general
and regional perspectives', BMGS 18 (1994) 60-80
'The Kommerldar1os, the Apotheke, the Dromos, the Vardarios, and The West', BMGS
17(1993)3-24
Durllat, J. Les Dedlcaces d'ouvrages de defense dans l'A/rlque byzantlne (Collection de
I'ecole fran~alse de Rome, Rome 1981)
'Les Finances munlclpales afrlcalnes de Constantln aux Aghlabldes', In Bulletin
archeologique du comlti des travaux historiques et sclentlflques, new series, 19
(1983), 377-86
'Les Grands proprletalres afrlcalns et l'etat byzantln', Cahlers de Tuntsie XXIX
(1981), 517-31
De la vU1e antique ala vUle byzant1ne. Le probleme dts subslstances (Collection de 1'~le
fran~aise de Rome 136. Rome 1990)
Dvornlk, F. Barly Christian and Byzantine Political Philosophy, 2 vols. (Washington
D.C. 1966)
Bbersolt, J. Musees lmpirlaux ottomans. Catalogues des sceaux byzantlns (Paris 1922)
'Sceaux byzantlns du Musee de Constantinople', RN, 4e ser., 18 (1914), 207--43,
377-409
Fogen, M.-Th. 'Gesetz und Gesetzgebung in Byzanz. Versuch elner Strukturana-
lyse', in Ius Commune. Zeitschrift fur europdische Rechtsgeschichu 14 (1987),
137-58
Foss. C. 'Archaeology and the ..Twenty Cities" of Byzantine Asia', American Journal
of Archaeology 81 (1977), 469-86
Byzantine and Turkish Sardis (Cambridge, Mass. and London 1976)
Bphesus after Antlqulty: A Late Antique, Byzantine and Turkish City (Cambridge
1979)
'Late antique and Byzantine Ankara', DOP 31 (1977), 29-87
'The Persians in Asia Minor and the end of antiquity', EHR 90 (1975), 721-43
Frend, W.H.C. The Donatlst Church: A Movement of Proust In Roman North Africa
(Oxford 1952)
The Rise of the Monophyslu Movement (Cambridge 1972)
Gabriell, F. Muhammad and the Conquests of Islam (London 1968)
Garsolan. N. 'Les Sources grecques pour l'hlstolre des Paubclens d'Asie Mlneure:
texte critique et traduction'. TM 4 (1970), 1-227
Gelzer, H. Die Genesis der byzantlnlschen Themenverfassung (Abhandlungen der
klinlgllchen slchslschen Gesellschaft der Wlssenschaften, phll.-hist. Klasse,
Leipzig 1897 and Amsterdam 1966)
Gofrart, W. 'Caput' and Colonate: Towards a History of Lau Roman Taxation
(Phoenix suppl. vols .• 12, Toronto, 1974)
Goodchlld, R. 'Byzantlnes, Berbers and Arabs ln seventh-century Libya'. Antiquity
41 (1967). 114-24
Goubert, P. Byzance avant l'Islam. Byzance et l'Orlent sous les successeurs de ]ustlnlen
1: L'Bmpereur Maurlce: 11: Byzance et les Francs: 11 2: Rome, Byzance et Carthage
(Paris 1951, 1956 and 1965)
Goulllard. J. •L'Heresle dans l'emplre byzantln des orlglnes au Xlle sl~cle', TM 1
(1965}, 299-324
Grabar, A. L'Bmpereur dans l'art byzantln. Recherches sur l'art o.fficlel de l'emplre
d'Orlent (Paris 1936 and London 1971)
Gray Birch, W. de. Catalogue of Seals In the Department of Manuscripts ln the Brltlsh
Museum V: Byzantine Bmplre (London 1898)
Bibliography 473
Great Britain, Naval Intelligence Division. Geographical Handbook series. Greece, 3 vols.
(London 1944-5)
Naval Intelligence Dlvlslon, GeographJall Handbook series. Turkey, 2 vols. (London
1942-3)
Gregory, T.E. 'Kastro and dlatelchisma as responses to early Byzantine frontier col-
lapse', B 62 (1992) 235-53
Grousset, R. Hlstolre de l'Armtnle du orlglnes a 1071 (Paris 194 7)
Grumel, V. 'Recherches sur l'hlstolre du Monothellsme', BO 27 (1928), 6-16,
257-77: 28 (1929), 272-83: 29 (1930). 16-28
Guilland, R. 'Les Patrices byzantins de la premiere moltie du vue slecle', TdJUJ~ el~
1-'vrll-''1" K.I. A~JtciiiTov (Athens 1960), pp. 11-24 (repr. In R. Gullland, Recher-
ches sur les Institutions byzantlns, pp. 162-9)
'Patrlces de Constantln IV a Theodose Ill', 'BAA1]11L:~tci 23 (1970), 287-98
(repr. In R. Gullland, Titres etfonctlons VIU)
Recherches sur les institutions byzantins, 2 vols. (Berlin and Amsterdam
1967)
Titres etfonctlons de l'emplre byzantln (London 1976)
Guillou, A. La Civilisation byzantlne (Paris 1974)
Rtglonallsme et lndependance dans l'emplre byzantln au VIr siecle: l'exemple de
l'exarchat et de la pentapole d'Italie (Istituto Storico Italiano per il Medio Bvo.
Studl Storlcl, LXXV-LXXVI, Rome 1969)
'Transformation des structures socio-economlques dans le monde byzantln du
VIe au Vllle slecle', ZRVI19 (1980), 71-8
Haldon, J.P. Byzantine Praetorlans: An Administrative, Institutional and Social Survey
of the Opslklon and Tagmata, c. 580-900 (Poiklla Byzantlna Ill, Boon and Berlin
1984)
'Comes horreorum- Komes tes Lamlas?', BMGS 10 (1986), 203-9
'Ideology and social change in the seventh century: military discontent as a
barometer', Kilo 68 (1986), 139-90
'"Jargon" vs. "the Pacts"? Byzantine history-writing and contemporary
debates', BMGS 9 (1984-S), 95-132
Recruitment and Conscription ln the Byzantine Army c. 550-9 50: A Study of the
Origins of the Stratlotllca Ktemata (Sltzungberlchte der osterrelchlschen Akade-
mle der Wlssenshaften, phll.-hist. Klasse CCCLVII, Vienna 1979)
'Some considerations on Byzantine society and economy ln the seventh century',
BF 10 (1985), 75-112
'Some Remarks on the background to the iconoclast controversy', BS 38 ( 1977),
161-84
'The Writings or Anastasius or Sinal: a key source Cor seventh-century East
Mediterranean history', ln: Cameron, Conrad, eds., The Byzantine and Early
Isllun1c Near East I. pp. 107-4 7
The Stllt.e and the Trl.butllry Mode of Production (London 199 3)
·auelques remarques sur l'konomle byzantlne de 600 a1100. Esqulsse compara-
tive', ln: R. Prancovtcb, G. Noye, La Stor1a deU'Alto Medloevo ItalJano (VI-X suolo)
alli.ILucedeU'Archaeologla (Rome 1994) 71-84
'Syn6ne: Re-Considering a Problematic Term of Middle Byzantine Fiscal
Administration', Byzant1neandModemGreelcStudles 18 (1994) 116-53 (repr. in
Stllt.e, Army and Society ln Byzantium Vlll)
Stllte, Army and Society fn Byzantium (Aldershot 199 5)
'The Miracles of Artemlos and Contemporary Attitudes: Context and Significance',
474 Bibliography
'Two studies In the continuity or late Roman and early Byzantine military
Institutions', BF 8 (1982), 87-113
Kaplan, M. 'L'Bconomle paysanne dans l'emplre byzantln du v• au x• sl~le', Kilo
68 (1986), 198-232
'Les grands proprletalres de Cappadoce (Vr-xr slecles)', ln Le aree omogeneee della
Clviltll Rupestre nell'amblto IMU'lmpuo BfzQnUno: la Capptrdocla (Galatlna 1981)
a vr xr
us hommes et Ill terre Bymnce du GU sikle (Byzanttna Sorbonensta 10. Paris
1992)
Les Proprietes de la couronne et de l'iglise clans l'emplre byzantln (V'-VI' slecles)
(Paris 1976)
'Les Vlllageols aux premiers slecles byzantlns (VI"-X" slecles): une societe homo-
g~ne?' BS 43 (1982), 202-17
'Quelques aspects des malsons divines du VI• au IXe slecle', .Atp,ipll)p,a trrov N<o
X/JoptiJJio, vol. I (Rethymnon 1986), pp. 70-96
'Remarques sur la place de l'exploitatlon paysanne dans l'economie rurale', In
Akten des XVI. lnternat. Byzantlnlsten Kongresses, 11/2 (VIenna 1982),
pp. 105-14 ( = JOB 32/2)
Karayannopoulos, J. Das Flnanzwesen des friJhbyzantlnlschen Staates (Siidostet~opil
sche Arbelten, Munich 1958)
Dle Bntstehung der byzantlnlschen Themenordnung (Byzantlnlsches Archlv X,
Munich 1959)
'Fragmente aus dem Vademecum elnes byzantlnlschen Flnanzbeamten',ln Poly-
chronlon. Festschrl/t Franz D6lger zum 75. GeburtstiJg (Heldelberg 1966),
pp.317-33
071yai n;~ Bv(avr,,;;~ ·/UTopia~ (Thessalonikl 1978)
Karayannopoulos, J. and G. Welss, Quellenkunde zur Geschlchte von Byzanz
(324-1453) (2 vols., Wlesbaden 1982)
Kartsonis, A. Anastasls: Th~ Malclng of an Image (Princeton 1986)
Kaidan, A. 'Vlzantljskle goroda v VII-IX vv.', Sovietslcaya Arkheologlja 21 ( 19 54},
164-88
Kaidan, A. and G. Constable, People and Power In Byzantium: An Introduction to
Modern Byzantine Studies (Washington D.C. 1982)
Kirsten. B. 'Die byzantlnlsche Stadt'. In Berlchtt zum XI. Inttrnatlonaltn Byzantl-
rdsttn-Kongress (Munich 1958), V, 3, pp. 1-48
Klt2lnger. E. Byzantine Art In tht Making. Main Lines of Stylistic Dtwlopment ln
Mediterranean Art, 3rd-7th Century (London 1977)
'Byzantine art in the period between Justinian and lconoclasm',ln &rlchtt zum
XI. Inttrnatlonalen ByzanUnlsttn-Kongress (Munich 19 58), IV, 1, pp. 1-50
'The cult of images in the age before iconoclasm', DOP 8 (1954), 85-150
Koder, J. Der Ltbensraum der Byzantlner (Vienna, Graz and Cologne 1984)
'Zur Bedeutungsentwicldung des byzantinischen Terminus Thema', ]6B 40
(1990) 155-65
Ktipsteln, H., ed. &sonderhelten der byzantlnlschen Feudalentwlcklung (BBA L. Berlin
1983)
'Zu den Agrarverhiltnlssen', In Byzanz lm 7. ]ahruhundert, eds. P. Wlnkelmann
et al., pp. 1-72
Konstantopoulos, K. Bv(avrur"a p,oAvf386f3ovAAa Tov iv All11vai~ 711Jv&llov
Nop,urp,aT,~v MoVUBlov (Athens 1917)
Kresten, 0. 'Datlerungsprobleme ''lsaurlscher'' Bherechtsnovellen. I. Coll.126', PM
IV {1979), 37-106
Kulakovsklj, J. Ist.orla Vl2antll, vol. Ill (Kiev 1915 and London 1973)
476 Bibliography
Kurbatov, G.L. Osnovnje problemy vnutrennego razvltlja vlzantljskogo goroda V IV-VII
vv. (Leningrad 19 71)
Laurent, V. 'L'CBuvre canonlque du conclle In Trullo (691-2), source prlmalre du
droit de l'egllse orlentale', RBB 23 (1965). 7-41
Lemerle, P. 'Bsqulsse pour une hlstolre agralre de Byzance: les sources et les prob-
l~mes', RH 219 (1958), 32-74, 254-84: RH 220 (1958), 42-94. (See now the
revised version ln Bngllsh, publlshed as The Agrarian History of Byzantium from
the Origins to the T\WUth Century: The Sources and the Problems (Galway 1979).)
'Invasions et migrations dans les Balkans depuis la fin de l'epoque romalne
jusqu'au Vllle siecle'. RH 211 (1954), 265-308
Le Premier humanlsme byzantln. Notes et remarques sur enseignement et culture a
Byzance des origlnes au r sikle (Paris 19 71)
Les Plus anciens recuells (See Mlracula S. Demetrilin the bibliography of primary
sources.)
Lllie, R.-J. Dle byzantlnlsche Realctlon auf die Ausbreltung der Araber (Miscellanea
Byzantlna Monacensla XXD. Munich 1976)
'Die zwelhundertjahrige Reform: zu den Anrdngen der Themenorganisation lm 7.
und 8. Jahrhundert', BS 45 (1984). 27-39, 190-201
'Kaiser Herakleios und die Andiedlung der Serben', Sudost-Forschungen 44
(1985). 17-43
• "Thraklen" und "Thrakesion". Zur byzantlnischen Provinzorganlsatlon am
Bode des 7. Jhdts.', ]OB 26 (1977), 7-47
Lltavrin, G.G. Vlzantljslcoe obJCestva I gosudarstvo v X-XI velca (Moscow 1977)
Loos, M. Dualist Heresy in the Middle Ages (Prague 1974)
'Quelques remarques sur les communautes rurales et la grande proprlete ter-
rlenne a Byzance, vne-xr siecles', BS 39 (1978), 3-18
Louggls, T.K. Jlo"iJL£0 yur ,..,, "o'"Cd"'""' efiA£t'ri ur17 8uipNe£a 'TCIJV Aeyop,ivC~Jv
cneO'Te£vt!Jv a£t!JvC~Jv (Athens 1985)
Ludwig, C. 'Wer hat was in welcher Absicht wie beschrieben?' in Varia U (Poikila
Byzantina VI. Bonn 1987), pp. 149-227
'Kaiser Herakleios, Georgios Pisides und die Perserkriege'. in Varia ill (Poikila
Byzantina XI. Bonn 1991), pp. 73-128
Maas, M. John Lydus and the Roman Past (London 1992)
Macrtdes, R. 'The Byzantine godfather', BMC:S 11 (1987), 139-62
Magie, D. Roman Rule ln Asla Mlnor (Prlnceton 1950)
Magoullas, H.J. 'The lives of Byzantine saints as a source of data for the history of
magic In the sixth and seventh centuries A.D.: sourcery, relics and Icons', B 37
(1967), 228-69
Magulre, H. 'Truth and convention ln Byzantine descriptions of works of art', DOP
28 (1974), 113-40
Earth and Ocean: The Terrestrial World in Early Byzantine Art (London, Pa. 198 7)
Malingoudls, Ph. Oi Slaboi sti Mesalonild Ellada (Athens 19 8 8)
Mango, C. 'Antique statuary and the Byzantine beholder', DOP 17 (1963), 53-75
(repr. in C. Mango, Byzantium and its Image V)
'The Brevfarium of the Patriarch Nicephorus'. in Byzantion: Tribute to Andreas N.
Stratos(Athens 1986), ll, pp. 545-8
Byzantium: The Empire of New Rome (London 1980)
Byzantium and lts Image (London 1984)
Le Dtveloppement urbaln de Constllntlnople (Ive-vu~ slecles) (Paris 1985)
The Art of the Byzantine Empire. Sources and Documents (Bnglewood CllfTs, N.J.
1972)
Bibliography 477
'The Life of St Andrew the Pool reconsidered', RI vista di Studi Blzantlnl e Slavl 11
( =Miscellanea A. Pertuslii, Bologna 1982 ). pp. 29 7-313 (repr. In C. Mango,
Byzantium and Its Image Vffi)
'Who wrote the Chronicle of'lbeophanes?', ZRVI18 (1978), 576-87 (repr. In
C. Mango, Byzantium and Its lmagt XI)
Martln-Hlsard, B. 'La domlnaUon byzantine sur le littoral oriental du Pont Bwd.n
(milleudu VIr-VIIrsiecles)'. Byzantlnobulganca 7 (1981) 141-54
Marx, K. Pre-Capltallst Economic FormaUons, ed. B. Hobsbawm (London 1964)
Mathew, G. Byzantine Aesthetics (London 1963)
Momlgllano, A. ed. The Conflict between Paganism and Christianity In the Fourth
Century (Oxford 1963)
Moravcslk, Gy. Byzantlnoturcica, vol. I (third edn, Berlin 1983)
Morrlsson, C. 'Byzance au VIr siecle: le temoignage de la numismatlque', in
Byzantion: Tr1buu to Andreas N. Stratos (Athens 19 8 6). I, pp. 149-63
Miiller-Wlener, W. 'Von der Polls zum Kastron', Gymnasium 93 (1986), 435-75
Murphy, F.X. and P. Sherwood, Constantinople ll et Consltlntlnople Ill (Paris 1974)
Nelson, J. 'Symbols In context: rulers' Inauguration rituals In Byzantium and the
West In the early Middle Ages', Studies In Church History XDI (1976), 97-119
Nesbltt, J.W. 'Double names on early Byzantine lead seals', DOP 31 (1977), 111-21
Noth, A. (with Lawrence Conrad),· The Barly Arable H1stoncal Tradition. A Source-
Cr1t1cal Study (Studies in Late Antiquity and Early Islam 3. Princeton 1994)
Obolensky, D. The Byzantine Commonwealth. Eastern Europe S00-1453 (London
1971)
Ohme, H. Das Concll1um Qunlsextum und seine B1schofsUste. Studien zum
Konstantinopeler Koru:n von 6 92 (Arbeiten zur Klrchengeschichte UV. Berlin-
NewYork 1990)
Olkonomld~. N. Les Llstes de presiance byzantlnes des IX'-X' slecles (Paris 1972)
'De l'lmp6t de distribution a l'lmpOt de quoti~ a propos du premier cadastre
byzantln (r-9e slecles)', ZRVI 26 (1987), 9-19
'Les Premiers mentions des themes dans le chronlque de Theophane', ZRVI16
(1975), 1-8
'Middle Byzantine provincial recruits: salary and armament' In Gonlmos. Neopla-
tonlc and Byzantine Studies presented to Leendert G. Westerlnlc at 75, eds.
J. Duffy and J. Peradotto (Buffalo, N.Y. 1988)
'Silk trade and production In Byzantium from the, sixth to the ninth century: the
seals ofkommerklarlol', DOP 40 (1986), 33-53
Olster, D. The PoUt1cs of Usurpation ln the Seventh century: rhetoric and revolution Jn
Byzantium (Amsterdam 1993)
Onlans, J. 'Abstraction and Imagination in late Antiquity', Art History 3 (1980), 1-23
Ostrogorsky, G. 'Byzantine cltles In the early middle ages', DOP 13 (1959), 47-66
·oas Steuersystem im byzantinlschen Altertum und Mlttelalter', B 6 (19 31 ),
229-40
'Die Chronologie des Theophanes lm 7. und 8. Jahrhundert', BN] 7 (1930), 1-56
'Die Uindllche Steuergemelnde des byzantlnlschen Retches lm X. Jahrhundert'.
vsw 20 (1927), 1-108
Geschlchte des byzantlnlschen Staates (Handbuch der Altertumswlssenschaft, XII. 1.2
= Byzantlnlsches Handbuch, 1, 2, Munich 1963)
Patlagean, B. 'Byzance et le blason penal du corps', In Du chdtlment dans la cite:
suppllces corporels et pelne de mort dans le monde antique (Rome 1984).
pp.405-26
478 Bibliography
Sharf. A. Byzantine Jewry from JusUnJlm to the Fourth Crusade (New York 1971)
'The Jews, the Montanlsts and the Bmperor Leo Ill', BZ 59 (1966}, 37-46
Studlen zum 7. Jahrhundert: see Wlnkelmann et al.
Slmon, D. 'Byzantlnlsche Hausgemelnschaftsvertrige', in Beltrdge zur europdlschen
Rechtsgeschlchtt und zum gelttndtn Zlvllrecht. Festgabe fur J. Sontls (Munich
1977}, pp. 91-128
'Provlnzlalrecht und Volksrecht', FM I (1976}, 102-116
Rechtsfindung am byzantlnlschen Relchsgericht (Frankfurt a. M. 19 73)
'Zur Bhegesetzgebung der lsaurler', PM I (1976}, 16-43
Spain Alexander. S. 'Heracllus, Byzantine imperial ideology and the David plates',
Speculum 52 (1977). 217-37
Speck, P. 'Wunderheillge und Bilder: Zur Prage des Beginns der Bilderverehrung', in
Varfa m (Polkila Byzantlna XI. Boon 1991) 163-24 7
'Das TeufelsschloS. BUderverehrung bei Anastasios Sinaites?', in Varia V (Poikila
ByzantinaXEm,Bonn1994)295-309
'Die Interpretation des BeUum Avaricum und der Kater M£x~f.'-11'£', in Varia 11
(Poildla Byzantlna VI. Bonn 19 8 7), pp. 3 71-402
Das getdlte Dossier. Beobachtungen zu den Nachrichten uber die Regierung des Kaisers
Htraklelos und dlt seiner Sohne bei Theophanes und Nllcephoros (Poildla Byzantina
IX.Bonn 1988)
lch bbt's n1cht, KaJser Konstllntln Jst es gewesen. Dle ugenden vom Bnjlu~ des Teufels,
da ]uden und des Moslem auf den llconolcslamus (Polkila Byzantina X. Bonn 1990)
'Der ..zwelte" Theophanes. Elne These zur Cbronographle des Tbeopbanes', in
Varia V (Poildla Byzantlna xm. Bonn 1994), pp. 43 3-8 3
Spieser, J.-M. 'la vllles en Grece du nr au VIr siecle', in Villes et peuplement dans
l'myrlcumprotobyzantln (Rome 1984), pp. 315-38
Starr, J. The Jews In the Byzantine Bmplre, 641-1204 (Athens 1939)
Ste Crolx, G.B.M. de. The Class Struggle In the Ancient Greek World (Oxford 1981)
Stein, B. 'Bin Kapitel vom persischen und vom byzantinischen Staate', BN] 1
(1920). 50-89
Hlstolre du Bas-Bmpire, 2 vols. (I: Paris and Bruges 1939 and Amsterdam 1968;
ll: Paris and Bruges 1949 and Amsterdam 1968)
Studlen zur Geschlchte des byzantlnlschen Relches vornehmlich unter den Kaisern
Justlnus ll und Tlberlus Konstantlnus (Stuttgart 1919)
Stratos, A.N. Byzantium In the Seventh Century (Bog. trans.), 1:602-34 (Amsterdam
1968): 11: 634-41 (Amsterdam 1972): Ill: 642--68 (Amsterdam 1975): IV:
668-85 (Amsterdam 1978): V: 686-711 (Amsterdam 1980)
Svoronos, N. 'Notes sur l'orlglne et la date du Code Rural', TM 8 (1982), 487-500
'Recherches sur le cadastre byzantin et la ftscallte aux Xle-xne slecles: le
cadastre de Thebes', BCH 83 (1959), 1-166 (repr.ln N. Svoronos, Etudes sur
l'organlsatlon lntirleure, la socltti et l'iconomle de l'emplre byzantin Ill (London
1973)
Teall, J. 'The Byzantine agricultural tradition', DOP 25 (1971), 34-59
'The grain-supply of the Byzantine empire', DOP 13 (1959), 87-139
TIB Tabula Imperil Byzantlnl: vol. I, J. Koder, F. Hlld, Hellas und Thessalia (Vienna
1976): vol. 11, F. Hlld, M. Resde, Kappadolclen (Kappadolcla, Charslanon. Sebastla
und Lylcandos) (Vienna 1981): vol. 01, P. Soustal (with J. Koder), Nlkopolis und
Kephallenla (Vienna 1981): vol. IV, K. Belke with M. Restle, Galatla und Lylcao-
nlen (Vienna 1984) ( = Denkschrlften der osterr. Akad. der Wlssenschaften
CXXV. CIL, a. CLXXII)
480 Bibliography